Beyond the High Road
Cormyr Saga Book Two Beyond the High Road Troy Denning Scanned by
Dreamcity Proofread and formatted by BW-SciFi/Dreamcity Ebook version
1.1 Release Date: February, 1th, 2004 Prologue One man could not kill so
many. It was not possible. The murderer's trail led down to a gnarled fir
tree, where an entire company of Purple Dragons lay strewn across the
landscape as still as stones. There were more than twenty of them, sprawled
alongside their dead horses in every manner of impossible contortion. Arms and
legs hooked away at unexpected angles, torsos lay doubled back against the
spine, heads rested on shoulders staring in the wrong direction. Many had died
with their shields still hanging from their saddles. A few had fallen even
before they could draw their weapons. Emperel Ruousk unsheathed his sword and
eased his horse down the hill, keeping one eye on the surrounding terrain as
he read his quarry's trail. There remained just one set of tracks, each print
spaced nearly two yards apart. After a hundred miles, the murderer was still
running-an incredible feat for any man, let alone one who had been roaring
drunk when he fled. The trail of the Purple Dragons paralleled the killer's at
the regulation distance of one lance-length. The hoof prints ran in strict
double file, with no stray marks to suggest the presence of outriders or point
scouts. The commander had taken no precautions against ambush, no doubt
thinking it a simple matter to capture a drunken killer. Emperel would not
make the same mistake. As he neared the site of the massacre, a murder of
crows rose from among the bodies and took wing, scolding him raucously. He
watched them go, then stopped to make certain the killer was not lying in
ambush among the corpses. The area reeked of rotting flesh. Clouds of black
flies hovered over the dead bodies, filling the air with an insane drone. The
soldiers' breastplates were cratered and torn and streaked with sun-dried
gore. Their basinets were either staved-in or split open. Some helmets were
missing, along with the heads inside. Many shields had been smeared with the
vilest sort of offal, completely obscuring the royal crest of the purple
dragon, and several men had died with their own eyeballs in their mouths. One
had been strangled with his own entrails. Emperel began to feel nauseated. He
had seen dozens of slaughters in the Stonelands, but never anything so sick
and angry. He rode over to a headless corpse and dismounted, then kneeled to
examine the stump of the neck. The wound was ragged and irregular and full of
gristle strings, just like the stump of the tavern keeper's neck in Halfhap.
According to witnesses, the murderer had simply grabbed the poor fellow
beneath the jaw and torn off his head. Emperel stood and circled through the
dead bodies, taking care to keep his horse between himself and the gnarled fir
at the heart of the massacre. With a twisted trunk large enough to hide ten
murderers, the tree was a particularly huge and warped specimen of an
otherwise regal species. Its bark was scaly and black, stained with runnels of
crimson sap. Its needles were a sickly shade of yellow. The tangled boughs
spiraled up to a cork-screwed crown nearly two hundred feet in the air, then
withered off into a clawlike clump of barren sticks. On the far side of the
tree, Emperel discovered a large burrow leading down beneath the trunk. The
soil heaped around the opening was lumpy and dark, with lengths of broken root
jutting out at haphazard angles. A string of ancient glyphs spiraled up the
trunk above the tunnel opening, the letters as sinuous as serpents. He did not
recognize the language, but the shape of the characters struck him as both
elegant and vaguely menacing. Emperel studied the burrow for several minutes,
then approached and tethered his horse to the tree. The hole itself was oval
in shape and barely broad enough for a man to enter on his belly. There were
several boot prints in the dirt outside, but the walls and floor of the tunnel
had been dragged smooth by a passing body. Emperel lay down beside the
entrance and peered into the darkness. The interior was as black as night. He
could hear a muffled sound that might have been a man's snoring, and the musty
air carried an undertone of rancid sweat. Emperel scanned the massacre once
again. Seeing nothing but flies and corpses, he withdrew a black weathercloak
from his saddlebags and slipped it over his armor, closing the throat clasp to
ready the cape's protective enchantments. As a confidential agent of King
Azoun IV, he had access to all of the standard magic in the Royal Armory, and
today he was glad for it. He clamped a pair of steel bracers on his wrists,
slipped an amethyst ring onto his finger, traded his steel sword for a magic
dagger, then dropped to his belly in front of the dank hole. The snoring
became an erratic rumble, and the smell of sour sweat grew rife. Emperel
inhaled one last breath of fresh air, then crawled into the darkness, moving
slowly and silently. The hole was musty, cramped, and lined with broken root
stubs as thick as his wrist. Though there was little room to fight-or retreat,
Emperel gave no thought to trying to outwait his quarry. Before beheading the
tavern keeper, the murderer had been boasting about how he would ruin King
Azoun, and such traitors received no respite from Emperel Ruousk. They
received only justice, as quick and sure as an Agent of the Realm possessed of
all the magic and might implied by that title could deal it out. A few feet
into the tunnel, the darkness grew so thick Emperel could no longer see the
dagger in front of his nose. He paused and whispered, "King's sight." The
amethyst on his ring twinkled faintly, then Emperel began to perceive the
passage walls in hues of blue and crimson. The warmth of his body made his
flesh glow red, while the dagger in his hand shone silver with magic. A dozen
feet ahead, the tunnel opened into a small, oblong chamber surrounded by
dangling amber strands-the tips of shallow roots. Strangely, there was no sign
of a taproot, an absence that did much to explain the fir's twisted form. As
Emperel neared the entrance to the little chamber, he saw the murderer lying
on his back, glowing crimson against the violet pallor of a stone floor. If
not for the crust of gore covering him from head to foot, Emperel would have
sworn it was the wrong man. The man's eyes were closed in blissful sleep, his
lips bowed in an angelic smile and his arms folded peacefully across his
chest. He looked too emaciated to have slaughtered a whole company of
dragoneers. His arms were as slender as spears, his shoulders gaunt and
knobby, his cheeks hollow, his eyes sunken. Suddenly, Emperel understood
everything-where the man had found the strength to run so far, how he had
slain an entire company of dragoneers, why he had defiled their bodies so
wickedly. Sweat began to pour down Emperel's brow, and he considered returning
to Halfhap for help-but what good would that do? The vampire had already shown
that he could destroy superior numbers, and Emperel had the advantage now. He
continued forward to the end of the tunnel, the smell of his own perspiration
overpowering the fetor of the musty lair. Though his stomach was queasy with
fear, he reminded himself that safety was just a gesture away. All he need do
was slip a hand into his weathercloak's escape pocket, and he would be
standing beside his horse, outside in the brilliant sunlight where no vampire
could follow. He crawled silently into the chamber and pulled his legs in
after him. As Emperel stood, something soft and wispy crackled in his ears.
His heart skipped a beat, and he found himself biting his tongue, not quite
sure whether he had let out a cry. He glanced down and found the murderer as
motionless as before, hands folded across his haggard chest, mouth upturned in
that angelic smile. Trying not to think of what dreams could make a vampire
happy, Emperel raised a hand and felt a curtain of gossamer filament clinging
to his face. It was stiff and sticky, like the web of a black widow
spider. Emperel experienced the sudden sensation of hundreds of little legs
crawling down his tunic. Hoping the feeling was all in his mind, he stooped to
get his head out of the web, then removed a gauntlet from his belt and slipped
the steel glove onto his right hand. When presented palm outward, the glove
became the holy symbol of his god, Torm the True, and it would keep any
vampire at bay. Next, he drew his hand axe from its belt loop and, using the
enchanted dagger, began to whittle the wooden butt into a sharp stake. Though
it seemed to Emperel that the sound of his breathing filled the chamber with a
bellowslike rasp, the vampire continued to sleep. The silver-glowing dagger
peeled the axe's seasoned handle away in shavings as thick as coins, and it
was not long before Emperel had sharpened it to a point. He sheathed his
dagger again, then kneeled beside the vampire and raised the stake. His arm
was trembling. "Torm, guide my hand," he whispered. A bead of sweat dropped
from his brow and landed on the vampire's shoulder. The monster's eyelids
snapped open, its angry eyes shining white in Emperel's enchanted
vision. Emperel brought the stake down, ramming it deep into the vampire's
ribcage. Blood, icy cold and as black as ink, seeped up around the shaft. An
ear-piercing shriek filled the chamber, then something caught Emperel in the
breastplate and sent him tumbling across the stone floor. He passed through a
curtain of gossamer filament and crashed into a dirt wall, his head spinning
and chest aching. When he looked down, his mouth went dry. There was a
fist-shaped depression in the center of his breastplate, and he had not even
seen the murderer's hand move. Emperel spun to his knees-he was too dizzy to
stand-and struggled to gulp some air into his lungs. A few paces away, the
vampire lay on its side, writhing in pain and slowly pulling the stake from
its chest. Emperel's jaw fell. He had slain more than a dozen vampires, and
not one had done such a thing. Had he missed the heart? The vampire's white
eyes swung toward the wall. Emperel raised a finger, pointed at its gaunt
hands, and shouted, "King's bolts!" Emperel's bracers grew as hot as embers
and sent four golden bolts streaking across the crypt. The magic struck the
vampire's hands with a brilliant golden flash, then sank into its flesh and
spread up its arms in a pale saffron glow. The vampire jerked the stake from
its heart, then struggled to its feet and turned toward Emperel. Gouts of dark
blood pumped from the hole in its chest, but it did not seem to care. It
merely hefted the axe and stumbled forward. Emperel jumped to his feet and
stepped to meet the monster, drawing his magic dagger and boldly thrusting the
palm of his steel gauntlet into its face. "Back," he commanded, "in the name
of Torm!" The vampire slapped the offending arm down so forcefully that the
steel gauntlet flew from Emperel's hand. "Do I look undead to you?" Emperel's
mouth went dry, and he brought his magic dagger up, driving the silver-shining
blade into the thing's stomach and up toward the heart. The vampire-or
whatever it was-closed its eyes and nearly collapsed, then reached down and
clamped Emperel's hand. "How... treacherous," it hissed. Emperel tried to
twist the blade, but found the thing's grasp too powerful to fight. Struggling
against a rising tide of panic, he pulled away, then slammed an elbow into the
side of its head. The blow did not even rock the monster. "By the Loyal Fury!"
Emperel gasped. "What manner of devil are you?" "The worst kind... an angry
one." The killer slammed Emperel into the wall, unleashing a cascade of
pebbles and loose dirt, then pulled the dagger free. The silvery glow had all
but faded from the enchanted blade, and as Emperel watched, the weapon grew
cold and utterly black. The murderer tossed it aside and staggered forward,
dark blood now pouring from two wounds. Unable to believe what he was seeing,
Emperel raised his ring finger and said, "King's light!" The amethyst setting
burst into light, filling the chamber with a blue-white glow. Caught by
surprise, the murderer closed its eyes and turned away, momentarily blinded.
Emperel, who had known what to expect, leaped forward, drawing his sword and
slamming a foot into the back of his foe's knee. The murderer hit the floor
rolling, tangling legs with Emperel and sweeping him off his feet. Emperel
landed hard, his head slamming against the stone floor. His vision narrowed
and his ears began to ring, then his foe was on him, tearing at his throat and
denting his helmet. He raised his arm to ward off the blows, and the murderer
caught hold of his hand. His ring finger gave a sickening crack, then a
terrible pain shot up his arm. Emperel cried out and brought his sword hand
up, slamming the pommel into his attacker's head. The killer went sprawling,
ripping the weathercloak off Emperel's shoulders and pulling the magic ring
off his finger-no, not off. In the murderer's hand was something thin and
bloody, with the white nub of a knucklebone protruding from the red stump.
Emperel's ring was still attached, illuminating the killer's head in brilliant
blue-white. Its face was mantislike and skeletal, with ovoid eyes as red as
embers and an impossibly slender chin. Even in the light, the creature's
complexion remained shadowy and dark-but not so dark Emperel failed to
recognize something familiar in its arrow-shaped nose and upturned lip. He
brought his sword around, placing the tip between himself and the
man-thing. "Do I ... I know you!" The murderer's eyes narrowed to red slits
and it hissed, "Not for long." Emperel heaved his aching body to its feet and
advanced a single step, bringing his sword to a high guard. The killer smirked
and retreated the same distance, closing one fist around the stolen ring. A
sigh of satisfaction slipped from its lips, and the amethyst's light began to
flow into its hand, filling the tiny chamber with eerie fingers of
light. Emperel felt a chill between his shoulder blades. The murderer was
absorbing the ring's magic-just as it had absorbed the magic bolts from his
bracers and drained the magic from his dagger. The chamber began to dim
rapidly. Realizing he would soon be trapped in total darkness without his
weathercloak or any other means of escape, Emperel glanced at the exit
passage. The murderer stepped over to block the tunnel mouth. Perfect. Emperel
sprang forward to attack, allowing himself a confident smile as the last light
faded from the ring. His sword had no magic at all, and when the blade hit
home, the murderer groaned and fell into the darkness. Emperel spun on his
heel, bringing his sword down in a vicious backhand slash. Sparks flew as his
blade clanged off the stone floor. He pivoted away, blindly weaving his weapon
in a defensive pattern. A gentle thud sounded beside him, so soft he barely
heard it over the whisper of his flying blade. He spun toward the noise,
bringing his sword around in a hissing arc. The blade bit into the corner of
the tunnel entrance, sending a spray of dirt and pebbles clattering down onto
the stone floor. A low moan sounded deep within the tunnel, followed by the
scrape of leather on dirt. Emperel flung himself into the passage, blindly
whipping his sword to and fro. He struck nothing but dirt and roots. A moment
later, his horse screamed, and the murderer was gone. 1 They sat swaying in
unison, the four of them quietly watching each other as Princess Tanalasta's
small carriage bounced across the High Heath toward Worg Pass. The shades were
drawn tight against blowing dust, and the interior of the coach was dim, dry,
and warm. The Warden of the Eastern Marches sat at an angle across from
Tanalasta, square and upright in his polished field armor, his steely eyes
focused curiously on the wiry priest at her side. The priest, Harvestmaster
Owden Foley of Monastery Huthduth, rested well back in the shadows, his
slender head turned slightly to smirk at a portly mage whose moon-spangled
silks touted him as one of Cormyr's more powerful war wizards. The mage,
Merula the Marvelous, perched at the edge of his seat, bejeweled hands folded
atop the silver pommel of his walking cane. He was staring at Tanalasta with a
busby-browed glare that could only be described as rather too intense.
Tanalasta sat studying the Warden of the Eastern Marches, a gangly,
horse-faced man who was still somehow handsome in his scarlet cape and purple
sash of office. She was thinking that a princess could marry worse than
Dauneth Marliir. Tanalasta did not love Dauneth, of course, but she liked him,
and princesses could rarely marry for love. Even if he was five years her
junior, Dauneth was loyal, brave, and good-looking enough for a noble, and
that should have been enough. A year ago it would have been, but now she
needed more. With her thirty-sixth year approaching and all of Cormyr waiting
for her to produce an heir, suddenly she had to have bells and butterflies.
Suddenly, she had to be in love. It was enough to make her want to
abdicate. Seeming to feel the pressure of her gaze, Dauneth looked away from
Owden. "My apologies, Princess. These mountain roads are difficult to keep in
good repair." "A little bumping and jarring won't hurt me, Dauneth." Tanalasta
narrowed her eyes ever so slightly, a face-hardening device she had spent many
hours practicing in the reflection of a forest pond. "I'm hardly the porcelain
doll you knew a year ago." Dauneth's face reddened. "Of course not. I didn't
mean-" "You should have seen me at Huthduth," the princess continued, her
voice now light and cheerful. "Clearing stones out of fields, leading plow
oxen, harvesting squash, picking raspberries, hunting wild
mushrooms..." Tanalasta paused, thinking it better not to add "swimming naked
in mountain lakes." Merula the Marvelous raised an eyebrow, and she felt a
sudden swell of anger. Could the wizard be reading her thoughts? "You were
hunting wild mushrooms, milady?" asked Dauneth. "In the forest?" "Of course."
Tanalasta returned her gaze to Dauneth, still struggling to decide how she
would deal with the wizard's intrusion. "Where else does one hunt for
mushrooms?" "You really shouldn't have," Dauneth said. "The mountains around
Huthduth are orc country. If a foraging mob had come across you...." "I wasn't
aware that protecting me was your purview, Dauneth. Has the king told you
something he has yet to share with me?" Dauneth's eyes betrayed his surprise
at the woman returning from Huthduth. "No, of course not. The king would
hardly confide in me before his own daughter, but I do have a... a reason to
be concerned with your safety." Tanalasta said nothing, allowing Dauneth a
chance to make himself sound less presumptuous by adding some comment about a
noble's duty to safeguard a member of the royal family. When the Warden
remained silent, she realized matters were worse than she had expected. With
King Azoun turning sixty-three in two days and Tanalasta on the far side of
thirty-five and still unmarried, people were starting to wonder if she would
ever produce an heir. Certain individuals had even taken it on themselves to
hurry things along-most notably the Royal Magician and State
Pain-in-the-Princess's Arse, Vangerdahast. The crafty old wizard had no doubt
arranged to celebrate the king's birthday at House Marliir for the purpose of
advancing Dauneth's courtship. That would have been fine with Tanalasta, who
knew better than anyone that her time to produce an heir was fast running out.
In the past year, the princess had grown more conscious than ever of her duty
to Cormyr and Dauneth had proven himself both a loyal noble and a worthy
suitor in the Abraxus Affair fifteen months before. Nothing would have made
her happier than to summon the good Warden to the altar and get started on the
unpleasant business of producing an heir and the princess had made up her mind
to do exactly that when she received word of the celebration in Arabel. Then
the vision had come. Tanalasta quickly chased from her thoughts all memory of
the vision itself, instead picturing Merula the Marvelous trussed naked on a
spit and roasting over a slow fire. If the wizard was spying on her thoughts,
she wanted him to know what awaited if he dared report any particular one to
the royal magician, Vangerdahast would hear of her vision soon enough, and
Tanalasta needed to be the one to tell him. Merula merely continued to glower.
"Something wrong, milady?" "I hope not." Tanalasta drew back a window flap and
turned to watch the High Heath glide by. It was a small plain of golden
checkerboard fields divided into squares by rough stone walls and dotted with
thatch-roofed huts. The simple folk who scratched their living from the place
had come out to watch the royal procession trundle past, and it was not until
the princess had waved at two dozen vacant-eyed children without receiving a
response that she realized something was wrong. She turned to the
Harvestmaster beside her. "Owden, look out here and tell me what you think. Is
there something wrong with those barley fields?" The thin priest leaned in
front of her and peered out the window. "There is, Princess. It's too early
for such a color. There must be some sort of blight." Tanalasta frowned.
"Across the whole heath?" "So it appears." Tanalasta thrust her head out the
window. "Stop the carriage!" Merula scowled and reached for his own drape to
countermand the order, but Tanalasta caught his arm. "Do you really want to
challenge the command of an Obarskyr, wizard?" The wizard knitted his bushy
eyebrows indignantly. "The royal magician's orders were clear. We are to stop
for nothing until we have cleared the mountains." "Then proceed on your own,
by all means," Tanalasta retorted. "Vangerdahast does not command me. You may
remind him of that, if he is listening." The carriage rumbled to a stop, and a
footman opened the door. Tanalasta held out her hand to Dauneth. "Will you
join me, Warden?" Dauneth made no move to accept her hand. "Merula is right,
milady. These mountains are no place-" "No?" Tanalasta shrugged, then reached
for the footman's hand. "If you are frightened...." "Not at all." Dauneth was
out the door in an instant, jostling the footman aside and offering his hand
to Tanalasta. "I was only thinking of your safety." "Yes, you did say you have
reason to concern yourself with me." Tanalasta gave the Warden a vinegary
smile, then allowed him to help her out of the coach, prompting a handful of
peasants to gasp and bow so low their faces scraped ground. Outside, it was a
warm mountain afternoon with a sky the color of sapphires and air as dry as
sand, and the princess was disappointed to note they had already crossed most
of the heath. The foot of Worg Pass lay only a hundred paces ahead, where the
barley fields abruptly gave way to a stand of withering pine trees. Tanalasta
motioned the peasants to their feet, then turned to Harvestmaster Owden, who
was climbing out of the carriage behind her. "Do you think your assistants
could do anything to save these fields, Harvestmaster?" Owden glanced toward a
large, ox-drawn wagon following a few paces behind the princess's carriage. A
dozen monks in green woolen robes sat crammed into the cargo bed among
shovels, harrows, and other implements of Chauntea's faith. They were eyeing
the blighted fields and muttering quietly among themselves, no doubt as
concerned as Tanalasta by what they saw. Owden motioned his assistants out of
the wagon. "It will take a few hours, Princess." "A few hours!" Merula hoisted
his considerable bulk through the carriage door with surprising ease. "We
can't have that! The royal magician-" "-need not know," Tanalasta finished for
him. "Unless he is spying upon us even as we speak-in which case you may
inform him that the Crown Princess will spend the afternoon
walking." Tanalasta eyed the Purple Dragons guarding her carriage, one company
mounted on their snorting chargers ahead of the procession and the other
bringing up the rear, lances posted and steel helmets gleaming in the sun. At
the end of the official column followed a long line of merchant carts taking
advantage of Tanalasta's escorts to ensure a safe passage through the
mountains. Sighing at the futility of trying to find a little privacy with her
suitor, Tanalasta turned to Dauneth. "Will you join me, Warden?" Dauneth
nodded somewhat uncomfortably. "Whatever the princess wishes." Trying not to
grind her teeth in frustration, Tanalasta took Dauneth's arm and led him past
the long file of riders to the front of the column. Though her shoulders were
draped in a silken cape of royal purple, underneath she wore a sensible
traveling smock and a pair of well-worn walking boots, and it was not long
before they reached the foot of Worg Pass. She sent the company captain ahead
with two scouts and instructed the rest of the company to follow twenty paces
behind, but she could not quite make her getaway before Merula the Marvelous
came puffing up from behind. "I trust ... the princess will not object to...
company," Merula panted. "Of course not. Why should she?" asked Owden Foley,
appearing from the other side of the horse column. The weatherworn priest
winked a crinkled eye at the princess, then looped his hand through Merula's
arm. "My friend, what an excellent idea to join them. We could all do with a
nice, brisk walk. Nothing like a stroll to get the heart pumping and keep the
fields in water, is there?" Merula scowled and jerked his arm away. "I thought
the princess asked you to attend to the peasants' fields." "And so I am,"
Owden replied, digging a good-natured elbow into the wizard's well-padded
ribs. "That's why one has monks, is it not?" "I wouldn't know," grumbled
Merula. Owden merely grinned and continued to prattle on about the wholesome
benefits of mountain sunlight and pine-fresh air. Tanalasta smiled and
silently thanked the priest for coming to her rescue. With the Harvestmaster
expounding about the benefits of mountain life, Merula would find it
impossible to eavesdrop on her conversation-or her thoughts. Tanalasta led the
way up the road at a lively gait. The pass climbed steeply along the flank of
a lightly forested mountain, and soon enough the sound of Merula's hulling
breath faded from her hearing-though it was replaced by the somewhat lighter
panting of the Warden of the Eastern Marches. "If I may say so, Princess, you
have changed much since..." Dauneth paused, no doubt as much to summon his
tact as to catch his breath, then continued, "Since the last time I saw
you." Tanalasta eyed him levelly. "It's all right, Dauneth. You can say
it." "I beg your pardon?" "You can say, 'since Aunadar Bleth made a fool of
you,'" Tanalasta said lightly. She continued up the road. "The whole kingdom
knows how he tried to marry me and steal the crown. Really, it's insulting to
behave as if I'm the only one unaware of it." Dauneth's face reddened. "You
were under a terrible strain. With your father poisoned and-" "I was a damned
ninny. I nearly lost the kingdom, and it was nobody's fault but my own."
Despite the steep climb, Tanalasta betrayed no sign of fatigue as she spoke. A
year at Huthduth had conditioned her to harder work than hiking. "At least I
learned that much from Vangerdahast. I swear, I don't know why he didn't tell
Father to name Alusair crown princess." Dauneth cocked an eyebrow. "Perhaps
because he saw what you would make of the experience." The Warden grew
thoughtful, then added, "Or, since we are speaking frankly, maybe it is
because he knows your sister. Can you see Alusair as queen? No noble son would
be safe. If she wasn't getting them killed in a war, she'd be entrapping them
in her boudoir." Tanalasta let her jaw drop. "Watch your tongue, sir!"
Smiling, she cuffed Dauneth lightly on the back. "That's my baby sister you
are maligning." "So the crown princess wishes to acknowledge her own
weaknesses and remain blind to those of everyone else?" Dauneth shook his head
sagely. "This will never do. It runs contrary to the whole spirit of sovereign
tradition. Perhaps I should have a talk with old Vangerdahast after
all." "That will hardly be necessary," Tanalasta lowered her voice and leaned
closer. "All you need do is mention it in front of our companions. I've no
doubt Vangey knows everything the moment Merula hears it." "Really? Dauneth
glanced back at the pudgy wizard, who looked almost as weary of climbing as he
did of Owden's nature lecture. "I didn't realize the royal magician was such a
voyeur." "That's just one thing you'd need to accustom yourself to,
if..." Tanalasta let the sentence hang, as reluctant to reveal her condition
for giving her hand to Dauneth as she was to commit herself to giving it. The
Warden was too good a military man not to press for an advantage when he saw
the opportunity. "If what, milady?" Tanalasta stopped climbing and turned to
face Dauneth, bringing the whole procession of guards and merchants to a
clamorous halt. Only Merula and Owden continued to climb, the wizard more
eager than ever to eavesdrop, and the priest just as determined to fill his
ear with valuable nature lore. Trying to ignore the fact that she was being
watched by a thousand eyes, Tanalasta took Dauneth's hand and answered his
question. "If we are to do what my father and Vangerdahast want us to, but
first we must trust each other enough to speak honestly and openly." Dauneth's
face grew serious. "I am sure the princess will find me a very honest
fellow." "Of course. No one can doubt that after the Abraxus Affair, but
that's really not what I meant." Noticing that Merula's huffing was growing
audible again, Tanalasta turned up the road and started to climb. They were
almost at the summit now. At any moment, she expected to crest Worg Pass and
see the bulky towers of High Horn in the distance. Dauneth clambered to keep
up. "So what did you mean, Princess?" "Tanalasta, please. If you can't even
call me by name…" "I didn't want to take liberties." Dauneth's voice had grown
defensive. "You haven't invited me to." "I am inviting you to now." "Very
well. Then what did you mean, Tanalasta?" Tanalasta rolled her eyes, wondering
how she could say what she meant without making it seem a command, and without
sounding like the same ninny who had nearly let Aunadar Bleth steal a kingdom
from beneath her nose. The princess had little doubt that Dauneth, raised in
the fine tradition of noble families everywhere, would find her wish to marry
for love as laughable as Vangerdahast found it. On the other hand, it was she
who wanted to speak honestly and openly, and she could hardly demand such a
thing of Dauneth if she was unwilling herself. Tanalasta took a deep breath
and began. "First, Dauneth, there must be trust and respect." Dauneth's lips
tightened, and Tanalasta saw that she had gotten off to a bad start. "Oh no,
Dauneth! I have the utmost trust and respect for you. Everybody does."
Tanalasta paused, choosing her next words carefully. "What I mean to say is...
well, it must be mutual." Dauneth frowned. "I do trust you, Prin-er,
Tanalasta. Of course I respect you." "If that were true, you would not be
lying to me now." "Milady! I would never lie-" "Truly?" Tanalasta allowed her
voice to grow sharp. "You still respect my judgment after the Abraxus Affair?
You would trust the kingdom to the care of someone so easily
manipulated?" Dauneth started to reply automatically, then his eyes lit with
sudden comprehension. "I see your point." Tanalasta felt a hollow ache in her
stomach, which she quickly recognized as the pang of wounded pride-and
evidence that Dauneth was listening well. She forced a smile, but could not
quite bring herself to take Dauneth's arm. "Now you're being honest. Thank
you." "I wish I could say it was my pleasure, but it really isn't. This is
truly what you want from me?" "It's a start." "A start." Dauneth sounded
somewhat dazed. He plucked at the fabric of her woolen traveling frock. "If I
am being honest, would you also like me to tell you that gray really isn't
your color?" Tanalasta swatted his hand away. "I said honest, not brash!" she
chuckled. "After all, I am still a princess, and I expect to be
courted." 2 Tanalasta bustled down the Family Hall of House Marliir, one hand
tugging at her gown's brandelle straps, the other holding her skirts off the
floor. The corridor seemed a mile long, with an endless procession of white
pillars supporting its corbeled arches and a hundred oaken doors lining its
walls. On the way down from High Heath, she had stopped so often to restore
blighted fields that the journey had taken an extra day, and she had arrived
just that morning to discover that the ball gown she'd had sent up from Suzail
was a size too large. There had been no chance to see to her father's birthday
gift. She could only trust that Harvestmaster Foley had been able to arrange
things on his own. At last, Tanalasta came to a door with two Purple Dragon
guards standing outside. They snapped to attention, clicking their feet and
bringing their halberds to their shoulders. Tanalasta stopped and raised her
arms over her head. "Anything out of place, gentlemen?" she asked, executing a
slow twirl. "Loose threads, anything showing that shouldn't?" The guards
glanced at each other nervously and said nothing. "What's wrong?" Tanalasta
looked down. The gown was an amethyst silk with a tapered bodice and a scooped
neckline, and she could imagine something peeking out that a modest princess
would prefer to keep hidden. "Tell me." The youngest guard extended his arm,
shifting his halberd to the stand ready position. "Nothing's wrong, Princess."
The glimmer of a smile flashed across his lips. "You look... well, stunning.
I'd be careful about, showing up the queen." Tanalasta's jaw went slack.
"What?" The older guard shifted his halberd to the stand ready, then
stammered, "B-beg your pardon, princess. Lundan meant no offense. It's just
that we haven't seen you in Suzail for quite some time, and a lot has, er,
changed." "Truly?" Tanalasta broke into a broad smile, then kissed both men on
their cheeks. "Chauntea bless you!" She pulled the ribbon from her brown hair,
setting her long tresses free to cascade down her back, then nodded. The dazed
guards opened the drawing room door, and she entered the chamber to find
Dauneth Marliir standing at the marble fireplace with her father and
Vangerdahast. The three men were deep in conversation, each sipping a glass of
spirits and chuckling quietly at some joke that Tanalasta hoped did not
concern her tardiness. Surprisingly, Vangerdahast had made a special effort to
dress for the occasion. He had combed his long beard into a snowy white mass,
and his ample girth was cloaked in an indigo robe with yellow comets' that
actually seemed to streak across the silk. Dauneth wore a gold-trimmed doublet
that was a perfect complement to Tanalasta's amethyst gown-a coincidence she
felt certain had not been left to chance. King Azoun wore a linen tunic and
velvet cape in the Royal Purple, with Symylazarr the royal Sword of Honor,
hanging in its bejeweled scabbard at his side. With stony features and
piercing brown eyes, her father looked as handsome as ever-even if the royal
beard had a few more gray streaks than a year ago. "By the Morninglord!" The
gasp came not from the fireplace, but from the wall left of the door. "Can
that be my Tanalasta?" The princess turned to see her mother rising from an
elegant chair with gold-leafed spindles. Despite the guard's warning,
Tanalasta saw at once that she did not need to worry about upstaging the
queen. Wearing a simple violet dress that only served to emphasize her
exquisite carriage, Filfaeril was as stunning as ever. With ice-blue eyes,
alabaster skin, and hair the color of honey, she always seemed to be the most
beautiful woman in the room, even when she was not trying-and today she was
trying. The queen took Tanalasta by the shoulders and studied her. "The
mountains agree with you, my dear. Dauneth said you had changed-but he didn't
say how much!" The princess feigned disappointment. "No? And I had so hoped to
smite him with my dusty traveling clothes." Tanalasta hugged her mother, then
whispered, "And speaking of the good warden-what is he doing here? I thought
only the family was to gather in the drawing room." "Vangerdahast's idea, I'm
afraid." The queen's whisper was sympathetic, but she stepped back with a
cocked brow. "Is that a problem?" Tanalasta sighed. "Not really-but I had
hoped to have a few words with you and the king. There's something I must
tell-" "Princess, you look absolutely bewitching!" Tanalasta looked up to see
Dauneth leading her father and Vangerdahast away from the fireplace. Giving up
any hope of a private moment, she smiled and presented her hand. "Thank you,
Dauneth, but what did we say about my name?" The warden blushed and kissed her
band. "Forgive me, Tanalasta." The approving glances that shot between
Vangerdahast and Azoun did not escape Tanalasta's notice. She curtsied to her
father and said, "I apologize for being tardy, but we made a rather alarming
discovery on the way from Huthduth." "Yes, yes, Dauneth has told me all about
the blighted fields." Azoun took his daughter's hand, then gave her a gently
reproachful smile. "A princess really shouldn't trouble herself with such
things. That's why we have wizards, you know." "Oh?" Tanalasta looked to
Vangerdahast, who was eyeing her up and down, appraising her as a man might a
horse. "The royal magician has determined the nature of the problem?" "The
royal magician has more important things to do than watch barley grow,"
Vangerdahast replied, "but Merula the Marvelous has assured me that this
'blight' is not serious-certainly no reason to keep the king
waiting." "Merula? What does that wand waver know about farming?" Despite her
tone, Tanalasta was secretly relieved. Had the royal magician already
discovered the nature of the problem, the value of her gift would have been
less apparent. She smiled at her father. "If you want to know what's
happening, you must ask Harvestinaster Foley-" "As I certainly will," Azoun
interrupted, "if you will be good enough to introduce us-after the party." "Of
course," Tanalasta said, secretly delighted. Even for her, it was not easy to
arrange an introduction without first winning the consent of the royal
magician, and the king's willingness to meet Owden Foley without
Vangerdahast's approval bode well for her gift. "I doubt the blight will
overrun Cormyr during the celebration," she conceded. "I do apologize for
keeping you waiting." The king's smile broadened. "Are we running late? I
really hadn't noticed-and even if I had, the wait was well worth it." He
turned to Vangerdahast, "Don't you think so, old wizard?" The royal magician
regarded Tanalasta sourly, then said, "She has lost weight, though I don't
find it healthy for a woman to be so bony… especially not at Tanalasta's
age." Filfaeril slapped the wizard's shoulder. "Vangerdahast! Tanalasta was
hardly large when she left." "There's no need to defend me, Mother," Tanalasta
said. She forced a smile and patted the wizard lightly on his ample belly.
"Vangey and I understand each other, don't we, Your Portliness?" Vangerdahast
eyes widened. "I see you have gained in cheek what you have lost from other
places. If you will excuse me, I have an important matter to attend to." The
wizard retreated across the room to sprawl on a burgundy settee, where he put
his head back and closed his eyes. Filfaeril smiled approvingly, but the
expression on Azoun's face was more pained. "I wish you wouldn't antagonize
him, Tanalasta. He is going to be your-" "My Royal Magician… I know."
Tanalasta took a deep breath, then launched into a prepared response. "While
it would behoove us all to remember that it is the magician who serves the
crown and not the reverse, there is no need to lecture me on Vangerdahast's
virtues. My regard for him is as deep as your own-even if I no longer choose
to quietly abide his slights." The king raised his brow, but Tanalasta took
heart from the surprised twinkle in her mother's eye and refused to back down.
After the Abraxus Affair, she and Vangerdahast had spent a few months
traveling together, and the ordeal had been enough to convince the princess
she could no longer allow the royal magician to intimidate her. While he had
helped her learn the ways of the world and forget her humiliation at the hands
of Aunadar Bleth, he had also attempted to dampen her emerging interest in
Chauntea and steer her down 'more appropriate' paths of inquiry. The trip had
finally come to a bad end when the princess rebelled and declared her decision
to enter the House of Huthduth. She could only imagine what Vangerdahast had
told her parents about the decision, but she felt certain he had been less
than candid about his own part in the events that caused it. At last, the king
laid a hand on Tanalasta's shoulder. "I see you have found some iron in those
mountains," he said. "That is good, but if you wish to make a fist of it, you
mustn't forget the velvet that covers it." Tanalasta tipped her head, deciding
it wiser not to put the king into a bad mood by protesting such a gentle
rebuke. "I will bear your advice in mind, Father." "Good." The king smiled,
then led her toward the settee, where Vangerdahast still sat with his head
back and eyes closed. "Now let's see if we can locate your sister and get this
party underway." The mage lifted his head. "We'll have to start without
Alusair, I'm afraid." "Start without her?" demanded Filfaeril. The queen
narrowed her pale eyes. "Where is she?" "I-er-I don't know, exactly." His face
reddening, Vangerdahast hefted himself off the settee. "Still in the
Stonelands, perhaps. I have just contacted her, but all she said was 'not now,
Old Snoop.'" "Then go get her! We decided to have the king's party in Arabel
so-"Filfaeril caught herself and glanced in Dauneth's direction, then began
again, "When we decided to accept Raynaar Marliir's kind invitation to host
the celebration, it was to make it easier for both our daughters to
attend." "So it was, Majesty" Vangerdahast said, inclining his head, "but I am
afraid Alusair has removed her ring again." Tanalasta saw Dauneth's eyes flick
to the signet rings on the hand of each royal. "I have a thirst, Dauneth." She
took the warden's arm and directed him toward the door. 'Would you fetch me a
sherry?" "You needn't send him away, Tanalasta." The king toyed briefly with
his signet ring, then continued, "I think we can trust Dauneth with our little
secret. Besides, the warden knows more about this situation than you do." As
if to prove the king correct, Dauneth turned to Tanalasta and said, "Emperel
is missing." "Missing?" Tanalasta asked, feeling slighted that the king had
not seen fit to send word of this to her in Huthduth. Emperel was the
confidential guardian of the "Sleeping Sword," a secret company of brave young
lords put into magical hibernation as a precaution against an ancient prophecy
forecasting Cormyr's destruction. That the king trusted Dauneth with this
covert knowledge was a sign of his confidence in the man, and also of his
faith that the good warden would one day be his son-in-law. "What
happened?" "That is what Alusair went to find out," said Azoun. He turned to
Vangerdahast. "Should we be concerned about her?" "Of course!" the wizard
snapped. "The girl will never learn. You know how many times I have told her
not to remove her ring. What if it was an important matter?" "The matter is
important," said Filfaeril. "This is Azoun's sixty-third birthday. Alusair's
absence speaks volumes, and not only to us." "Let us not overstate matters,"
said the king. "I'm sure she has a good reason for not being here." Tanalasta
bit her tongue, knowing it would only make her seem jealous to point out the
double standard. It was perfectly fine for Alusair to vanish into the
Stonelands and forgo his birthday celebration without so much as a word of
apology yet it would not do for the crown princess to speak sharply to
Vangerdahast. It was no wonder Tanalasta felt more at home in Huthduth's
austerity than in the luxury of her family's palace. The king offered his arm
to Filfaeril, then turned toward the great double doors leading into the
ballroom. "Vangerdahast, you will have to enter alone," the king said, "and do
keep trying to reach Alusair. I'm sure she would contact you if she needed
help, but with Emperel missing...." Vangerdahast nodded. "I'll pass word when
I reach her." The royal magician extended his hand toward the door, producing
several loud raps. From the other side came the barked command of a guard and
the muffled blare of trumpets, then the doors swung open. The king and queen
stepped through to a thunderous roar of applause. Dauneth stepped to
Tanalasta's side and offered her his arm. "If I may." "Of course." Tanalasta
looped her hand through the crook of his elbow and stepped into House
Marliir's famous Rhodes Room. The huge ballroom was so packed with nobles that
she could see nothing of its renowned treasures, save the gold-leafed capitals
of its marble columns and the luminescent vault of its alabaster cupola. Her
parents were about ten steps ahead, strolling down a plush purple runner that
demarcated the Aisle of Courtesy, a small lane to be kept clear for the royals
alone. They were simply nodding and waving as they passed the lesser nobles in
the rear of the room, but their progress would slow to a crawl as they stopped
to exchange pleasantries with the important nobles waiting in the front of the
chamber near the Royal Rostrum. Tanalasta forced a smile and followed, acutely
conscious of' the rising brows and appraising gazes that greeted her passage.
She did not doubt that even the lowest baron present knew how Aunadar Bleth
had tricked her into falling in love with him, then tried to seize the throne.
Their applause was polite but subdued, a sure sign of the concern they felt
over what would become of Cormyr when she took her father's place. The
princess continued to smile and nod, calling upon memories of green mountain
meadows to remain calm and composed. The first step to restoring her
reputation was to appear confident in herself, and to do that she had to be
relaxed inside. As they progressed up the Aisle of Courtesy, the wool tabards
and linen smocks of the lesser nobles gave way to embroidered capes and
chiffon gowns. Brass closures and pewter brooches began to appear in strategic
locations, often decorated with brilliant tiger eyes or ghostly moon crystals.
Dauneth greeted these men and women by name, and Tanalasta would say what a
pleasure it was to make their acquaintance. They never failed to return her
smile with somewhat dazed expressions, a sign the princess took to mean she
was making a better impression than expected. Tanalasta and Dauneth reached
the high nobles at the front of the room, where the air smelled of sweet
lavender oil and lilac water. The chamber seemed lit by the twinkle of
sparkling rubies and gleaming sapphires, and the low murmur of self-important
voices reverberated in the pit of her stomach. The men wore feathered caps and
doublets of brilliant silk, while the women had gowned themselves in veritable
yards of lace and gossamer. Unlike the lower nobles standing farther back, the
lords and ladies gathered here knew the royal family well, and they did not
hesitate to compliment the queen's appearance or congratulate Azoun on another
year. Tanalasta thought of mountain brooks and pushed her smile wider, then
entered the gauntlet. She turned first to the families of five young nobles
who had tried to assassinate her late in the Abraxus Affair, both to show she
held no grudges and to prove she did not fear them. The dukes managed to
stammer out their compliments, but the duchesses were so stunned they could
hardly return her greeting. Tanalasta took her leave graciously, then breathed
a sigh of relief and led Dauneth down the aisle to more comfortable territory.
Her friends the Wyvernspurs were next, Cat looking resplendent in pearl-white,
Giogi as flamboyant and affable as always in gold-trimmed velvet. "By the
Lady, Princess!" Giogi embraced Tanalasta warmly, then stood back to admire
her with a frankly lascivious gaze. "What happened? You've become a real
beauty!" "Giogi!" Cat slapped her mate on the shoulder, then stepped to the
edge of the purple carpet to wrap her strong arms around Tanalasta. "Forgive
my husband, Princess, you know what a clod he can be." "I will take Giogi's
compliments over a Bleth's flattery any day," Tanalasta laughed. She motioned
to Dauneth. "You remember the good warden, I am sure." Cat's eyes twinkled as
she took in Dauneth's gold-trimmed doublet, noting how it complimented
Tanalasta's amethyst gown-and how close its indigo fabric came to the royal
purple. "As handsome as ever." Cat squeezed Tanalasta's hand, then leaned
close to whisper, "You're a lucky woman, my dear." Tanalasta raised a brow,
but said nothing about the hastiness of her friend's assumption. "We'll talk
later, Cat." "I'm looking forward to it." Cat released her hand and curtsied.
"I want to hear all about your adventures in Huthduth." "Adventures?" Giogi
asked, looking confused. "Isn't Huthduth a monastery?" "It is." Cat elbowed
him in the ribs. "Take your leave, Giogi." Giogi bowed. "Until later,
Princess." Tanalasta acknowledged the bow with a friendly nod, then continued
up the Aisle of Courtesy. They had now closed to within a few paces of the
Royal Rostrum, where Tanalasta was delighted to see the tall, white-haired
figure of Alaphondar Emmarask standing slightly apart from the crowd. As the
Sage Most Learned of the Royal Court, Alaphondar was Tanalasta's instructor in
law, philosophy, history, and almost everything else. The two had become far
more than friends over three decades of study, though never in the way
sometimes whispered in the royal halls. Hoping to have a few words with him
about the blight that had delayed her journey from Huthduth, she pulled
Dauneth gently forward-only to have a stumpy little woman step onto the Aisle
of Courtesy and block her way. "Princess Tanalasta, your beauty exceeds even
the wildest claims of my son." So shocked was Tanalasta that she required a
moment to comprehend what she was seeing. The woman was draped in organdy and
pearls, with sapphires dangling from her earlobes and rubies glittering on
every available digit-even her thumbs. Her powdered hair was piled into a
spiraling tower and held in place by eight diamond hairpins arranged in a
moonlike crescent. Clearly, the woman was a dame of the realm, yet she behaved
as though she knew no better than to block a royal's path. A pair of
bodyguards slipped past the princess and took positions to both sides of the
woman, awaiting some sign of how to handle the situation. Tanalasta glanced at
Dauneth, whose reddening face confirmed the duchess's identity, then decided
not to have the woman removed. The warden disengaged himself politely and went
to his dauntless mother's side. "Your Highness, may I present my mother, Lady
Merelda Marfiir." Tanalasta sensed a spreading circle of silence and knew that
half the nobles of the realm were watching to see how she handled the delicate
situation-and also to judge the progress of Dauneth's courtship. The princess
did not gesture the duchess to rise, but neither did she insult the woman by
signaling the guards to return her to her proper place. "Lady Marliir, how
kind of you to present yourself." As Tanalasta spoke, she glimpsed her parents
at the base of the rostrum, watching in shock. "I have been looking for you. I
wish to express my gratitude for hosting the king's birthday party." Merelda
flushed in delight. "Not at all. The pleasure is mine," she said, rising
without invitation. If the woman heard the gasps that surrounded her, her
fleshy smile did not betray it. "I am so happy to meet you, my dear. Dauneth
has told me so much about you." "Indeed?" "Oh yes." Oblivious to the ice in
Tanalasta's voice, Merelda glanced around to be certain her fellow noblewomen
were watching, then took her son's hand and stepped forward. "He speaks of you
all the time, and only in the fondest terms, I assure you." Dauneth's face
turned as red as the rubies on his mother's fingers. "Mother, please." He
clasped her hand tightly and tried unsuccessfully to draw her toward the edge
of the carpet, where Raynaar Marliir stood looking on in helpless
mortification. "Are you trying to disadvantage me with the princess?" The
question drew a round of good natured chuckles from everyone but Tanalasta,
who was fast losing patience with Lady Marliir Evidently, the woman believed
she could bend Tanalasta to her will as easily as had the traitor Aunadar
Bleth. The princess glanced in her parents' direction, silently signaling them
to give her some help before she was forced to embarrass their hostess. The
king started to turn toward the rostrum, which would trigger the trumpet blast
calling the party to order, then glanced over Tanalasta's shoulder at
Vangerdahast and suddenly stopped. "I am so looking forward to-" "Don't say
it, please," Tanalasta warned. Her sharp tone was due as much to her ire at
having her signal overridden by Vangerdahast as her impatience with Lady
Marliir. "It would be embarrassing-" "Embarrassing? My dear, Dauneth dances
better than that." Merelda threw her head back and joined the other nobles in
a round of laughter, then caught Tanalasta's hand between hers. "But if you
don't approve of his footwork, you will have plenty of time to correct
it-won't you?" The silence grew as thick as smoke, and Tanalasta found it
impossible to control her mounting anger. If the king insisted on allowing
Vangerdahast to countermand his daughter's wishes, then it would be up to him
to deal with the consequences. The princess jerked her hand from the woman's
grasp, and put on her most guileless smile. "I am sorry, Duchess Marliir. I
cannot follow your meaning. Are you under the impression that Dauneth and I
are betrothed?" A quiet murmur filled the room, and Lady Marliir's smile
stiffened into a cringe. Her jaw began to work fitfully, trying to string a
series of disjointed syllables into some sort of explanation, but Tanalasta
refused to give the woman a chance to push her further. She looked to the
guards, but Dauneth was already pressing his mother into the grasp of her
flabbergasted husband. Duke Marliir clamped onto his wife's elbow and turned
toward the nearest exit. As soon as King Azoun saw what was happening, he cast
the briefest glance in his daughter's direction, so quick that only the most
astute of observers would have noted the inherent reproach. Tanalasta returned
the gesture with an innocent shrug. She had no wish to sour her father's mood,
lest it affect how he received the birthday gift she had brought from
Huthduth, but she had to stand up for herself. If that created a problem, it
was Vangerdahast's doing and not hers. Azoun pasted a stiff smile on his face,
then disengaged himself from Filfaeril. "Lady Marliir, one moment if you
please." The Marliirs stopped and slowly turned, Raynaar's face flushed with
embarrassment and his wife's white with mortification. Merelda curtsied deeply
and did not rise. "Y-yes, Majesty?" The king came down the aisle and took her
by the hands. "It has just occurred to me that I have done you a small
injustice." He drew Merelda to her feet. "The royal protocol chamberlain
should have invited you and Lord Marliir to walk the carpet with us." The
woman's eyes grew round with surprise, and another murmur, much louder than
the last, filled the ballroom. "He should have?" "Quite right," Azoun said. "A
hostess should be honored-especially the hostess of such a grand and lovely
ball. I do hope you will pardon the oversight. The protocol chamberlain really
is a most dutiful fellow, and it would be a shame for him to spend the rest of
the tenday in a dungeon." The joke drew the appropriate response from everyone
near enough to hear it. Lady Marliir blushed and glanced around to make
certain everyone had seen her reputation restored, then Azoun kissed her hand
and returned to Filfaeril's side. The crown princess smiled diplomatically and
tried not to show her seething anger. The party had been spared an unseemly
scandal, but at no small cost to Tanalasta's prestige. She could only hope her
father would seize the opportunity to undo the damage when she presented her
birthday gift. Dauneth returned to Tanalasta's side and rather stiffly offered
her his arm. Feeling as ill at ease as he did, she slipped a hand through his
elbow and followed her parents onto the Royal Rostrum. The trumpets blared,
calling the party to order, and the ballroom quieted as they ascended the
stairs. Tanalasta's anger gave way to thoughtfulness, and she began to wonder
if someone had suggested to the poor woman that she push matters along. Of
course, her suspicions fell instantly upon Vangerdahast. The old wizard had
never been above helping destiny along-especially when Cormyr's fate depended
on it. They reached the top of the rostrum and found four purple-cushioned
thrones, flanked by a pair of simpler chairs for Dauneth and Vangerdahast.
Azoun and Filfaeril sat in the middle thrones, and Tanalasta sat in the one to
her father's right. The royal magician dismissed the extra throne with a
half-muttered word and a flick of his wrist, then pulled his chair to the
queen's side and dropped onto it heavily. He did not look in Tanalasta's
direction. Once they were all seated, Dauneth formally welcomed the guests to
his family's home, glossing over the scene of a few moments earlier with an
apt joke about the hearing of would-be grandmothers. The announcement that
Princess Alusair would not be in attendance was greeted with a murmur of
profound disappointment, but the warden quickly recaptured the crowd's
enthusiasm by drawing them into a rousing cycle of sixty-three hoorays-one for
each of Azoun's years. So thunderous were the cheers that they soon had
Vangerdahast casting nervous glances at the ballroom's alabaster cupola. Once
the cheers were finished, Dauneth asked the high nobles to clear a space in
front of the rostrum, then brought on a company of singing acrobats. Within
minutes, everyone in the room, from the lowliest lord to the king himself, was
crying in laughter. Though Tanalasta could not forget Lady Marliir's behavior,
she did find herself able to forgive it-especially given that someone in the
royal party had most likely put her up to it. By the time the show ended, the
spectators were so exhausted from laughing that many had sunk to the floor
holding their ribs. As the performers cartwheeled and back-flipped out of the
chamber, Dauneth invited the high nobles to ascend the rostrum in turn and
present their gifts to the king. After the mirth of the acrobats, it was a
welcome chance for the audience to relax and refresh themselves, and a
pleasant drone descended over the chamber as Azoun opened the artfully wrapped
packages. For the most part, the gifts reflected the families that had given
them. From the seafaring Dauntinghorns there was an intricately modeled cog of
pure gold, with silken sails that furled or unfurled at the tug of a tiny
chain. The Hawklins presented an archaic sword crafted in forgotten Netheril,
too ancient and brittle to wield in combat, but a valuable addition to the
king's collection in Suzail. Cat and Giogi Wyvernspur produced a huge white
stag captured in their Hullack Forest, tame enough to eat from a man's hand,
yet so proud it allowed only the king to approach it. Azoun thanked each giver
profusely, displaying the offering and expressing his appreciation so
sincerely that no one in the crowd could doubt how deeply the present had
touched him. Tanalasta quickly lapsed into a performance of look, exclaim, and
applause that required only a small fraction of her attention-a routine shared
by many high nobles as they circulated through the front of the room,
conversing quietly and congratulating each other on the genius of their gifts.
At the base of the rostrum, Merelda was the center of much attention, even
from the aloof Huntsilvers and the ever-envious Illances. Once the process
seemed well underway, Dauneth returned to his seat and leaned over to speak
quietly with Tanalasta. "I apologize for my mother's eagerness. As you can
see, she was quite taken with the idea of our marriage." Despite her anger,
Tanalasta forced herself to smile and speak in a teasing voice. "Of course you
have said nothing to encourage her." Dauneth withdrew slightly, apparently
sensing the pique behind her tone. "I would never presume!" "No?" Tanalasta
pushed her lip out in a parody of a pout. "What of those 'wild claims' about
my beauty? Are you telling me you said no such thing?" Dauneth looked
confused. "Of course, I find you ravishingly beautiful, but in truth-" "Say no
more, Dauneth. There are some things a princess should not hear." Tanalasta
laughed lightly, then laid a hand on his arm. She glimpsed Lady Marliir
drawing Alaslyn Rowanmantle's attention to the gesture, but did not draw back.
If she wanted Dauneth to relax, she had to seem relaxed herself. "Besides, I
do not think your mother was the only one eager to push us along." Dauneth
glanced uneasily toward her parents and Vangerdahast, then said cautiously, "I
am sure everyone wants to see you happily wed." "Truly? I was under the
impression that Vangerdahast just wants to see me wed-happily or not."
Tanalasta gave another laugh. "Really, his schemes are so
transparent." Dauneth avoided looking in the wizard's direction. "I am sure he
is only thinking of the kingdom's welfare." "So he is the one!" "The one
what?" Dauneth asked. "The one who convinced your mother to behave as she
did." Continuing to hold Dauneth's arm, Tanalasta smiled in Merelda's
direction. "I know Lady Marliir's reputation, Dauneth. She is hardly the kind
to blunder in such a matter." Dauneth looked as relieved as he did surprised,
and Tanalasta knew that in his eagerness to vindicate his mother, he would
take her bait. She waited quietly and continued to look in Merelda's
direction, nodding pleasantly when Lady Marliir flashed a puzzled
smile. Finally, Dauneth said, "Now that you mention it, I did see her talking
to the royal magician earlier this morning. He must have told her to behave as
though we were betrothed." "And what did he tell you?" Tanalasta's tone was
casual. Dauneth turned in his seat. "I beg your pardon?" "I thought we were
going to be honest with each other, good warden." Tanalasta removed her hand
from his arm, then said, "I know Vangey too well to think he would execute
only half a plan. When were you to ask me?" Dauneth closed his eyes for a
moment, then sighed. "During our dance. I was to whisper the question in your
ear. But I knew nothing about my mother. That surprised me as much as it did
you." "Which does nothing to excuse your own behavior." Tanalasta cast a
furious glance across the rostrum at Vangerdahast, who remained oblivious to
her anger and watched in weary amusement as the king set a silver clockwork
cat after a golden mouse. "Why, Dauneth?" "Why what?" "Why would you do this?"
Tanalasta was struggling to hold back tears of rage. "I know you didn't do it
for the throne-not after the loyalty you showed during the Abraxus Affair. So
why did you betray me?" "I..." Dauneth looked away Tanalasta noticed several
nobles watching from the ballroom floor. She ignored them. "Tell me." When
Dauneth looked back to her, his face was stern. "I did not betray you. If
anyone is a betrayer here, it is you." Tanalasta raised her brow, shocked.
"Me?" "To your duty," Dauneth said. "If you do not produce an heir, the
Abraxus Affair will be a mere game compared to what follows your father's
passing." "My reign will follow my father's passing," Tanalasta said. "And
without an heir of your own, your reign will be one of plots and intrigues,
with every noble family maneuvering to claim the throne upon your death.
Sooner or later, one of them will see an advantage in assassinating you, and
Cormyr will have a usurper for a king-or a war to unseat him." "And you think
to prevent this travesty by getting a child on me? I think not. I will have a
husband I can trust-or none at all." The hurt showed in Dauneth's eyes. "I
meant no offense, milady, nor do I say this for my own good, but you must take
a husband, and soon. If you are angry with me, there are plenty to choose
from." He pointed into the crowd below. "There is Amanthus Rowanmantle if you
fancy someone handsome, or one of the Silversword boys if you like wit, and
perhaps even Dier Emmarask if you prefer someone who shares your love of
learning." "Thank you for the suggestions," Tanalasta said, struck by the
absurdity of Dauneth recommending his own rivals. "If I were to choose a
husband I did not love, it would probably be you. Even if I cannot trust you,
you are loyal to Cormyr and that counts for much." "Thank you, milady." A
hopeful light returned to Dauneth's eyes. "Do you really have time to think of
love? We must think of Cormyr." "I am thinking of Cormyr." Tanalasta started
to rebuke the warden for trying to argue her into marrying him, then realized
there was no point. She did not love Dauneth, and she was not going to marry
him. "I am always thinking of Cormyr." "If that is true, you will-" "Dauneth,
please don't presume to tell me what is good for Cormyr." The warden flushed
and looked away, clearly aware that he had been doing just that. Tanalasta
wanted to explain to him, to tell Dauneth of the vision she had experienced at
Huthduth, but how could she expect him to understand something she could
barely put into words? The revelation had been one of those slippery things
that a sharp mind could twist into a thousand meanings, but in which a true
heart perceived only one. How could she trust Dauneth to trust her feelings,
when he had already proven that she could not trust him? "I'm sorry, Dauneth,
but it must be love. I really cannot abide less." A look of exasperation came
over the warden, then he nodded and said, "Very well, milady. I shall fall in
love with you on the morrow." Tanalasta's jaw dropped, then she caught the
note of self-mockery in his voice. "I wish it were that easy, good warden,"
she laughed. "I truly do." After a moment, she stopped laughing and gently
took his hand. "But I fear your feelings would go unrequited. You don't
respect me in your heart, and after Vangerdahast's meddling, I can never trust
you as a woman should her husband. Forgive my bluntness in this matter, but
you deserve to know. Your loyalty to Cormyr demands it." Dauneth's face fell,
and he sagged away from Tanalasta in shock. The nobles below did not seem to
notice. They gasped in awe as Azoun displayed a four-foot dragon carved from a
single crystal of amethyst, then applauded Ayesunder Truesilver as he
descended the rostrum beaming with pride at the king's superlative words of
royal gratitude. Seeing that there were no more nobles waiting to ascend the
stairs, Dauneth gathered himself together, then went forward to express his
admiration for the many treasures strewn across the rostrum. After swearing
that it would take a whole caravan of war wizards to return the hoard safely
to Suzail, he invited Alaphondar Emmarask to present his gift. The Sage Most
Learned ascended the rostrum and presented the king with a massive
leather-bound volume entitled, The Dragon Rides: A Complete and Accurate
Account of the Life of Azoun IV of Cormyr, Volume Sixty-Two. Filfaeril drew a
raucous round of chuckles by remarking that she hoped it was not "completely
complete," then Vangerdahast stood to present his gift, pulling a simple
switch of willow from the billowing sleeve of his robe. The king accepted the
stick with a somewhat puzzled look. "We thank you, Magician," said Azoun.
"What kind of wand is it?" "None, Majesty. It is a plain switch." Vangerdahast
looked directly at Tanalasta, then added, "I think you shall soon have need of
it." Much to Tanalasta's dismay, the wizard's wry response sent the room into
convulsions of laughter. She could do little except pretend to enjoy the joke
and fume inwardly. If Vangerdahast could not bend her to his will through
tricks and traps, then he seemed determined to undermine her prestige with
outright mockery. The princess could imagine the campaign continuing until her
father died, and no matter that it would weaken her own crown when she
ascended the throne, The old staff swinger believed that only he knew what was
good for Cormyr. Usually, he did, and if that had been so this time, Tanalasta
would have married Dauneth on the morn. But this time the royal magician was
wrong, this time, the future of Cormyr was not a matter of the mind, but of
the heart, and she was not sure that Vangerdahast even had a heart. Once the
mirth faded, Dauneth turned to the princess and cocked a querying eyebrow.
Though he was careful to maintain an expression of practiced congeniality, the
rest of his face was at odds with his broad grin. Hoping the audience could
not read his disappointment as clearly as she, Tanalasta smiled and
nodded. Dauneth extended an arm. "Lords and ladies, I give you the Princess
Tanalasta Obarskyr." Tanalasta took a deep breath, then rose to a polite
ovation and stepped to the front of the rostrum. "Thank you." The princess
needed to say this only once to silence the applause. "As you know, I have
been in retreat at Huthduth for the last year. While the royal magician seems
to fear that I have been somehow corrupted by Chauntea's humble monks-"
Tanalasta was interrupted by a round of nervous laughter as she waved at the
switch lying across her father's knees, then continued, "Let me assure you
nothing could be further from the truth. The mountains were a place of great
peace and harmony for me, and my gift is to bring some of that bounty to King
Azoun IV, and through him, to all of Cormyr." Tanalasta waved toward the
entrance of the ballroom, where Owden Foley stood beneath the Grand Arch with
a silk-wrapped gift box the size of a peasant hut. As the crowd turned to
look, the Harvestmaster took up a golden rope and began to haul the gift
across the floor. At first, his progress was labored and slow, for he seemed
able to drag the huge box only a few paces before stopping to rest. Several
minor nobles volunteered their help, which he gladly accepted. The lords began
to haul on the cord, and the box flew toward them so fast that they fell to
the floor in a heap. A puzzled silence descended over the chamber, until Owden
returned to take the golden rope. Claiming that earls and counts were too
clumsy for such dangerous work, Owden shooed them away to a chorus of
laughter, then resumed his labored trek toward the rostrum. This time,
however, the box seemed to have a will of its own, sometimes flying toward him
so fast that he barely kept from being run over, other times refusing to budge
no matter how he pulled, cursed, or kicked at it. By the time he reached the
rostrum and climbed the stairs to present the cord to Tanalasta, the ballroom
was shaking with laughter. Tanalasta beamed, for she and Owden had worked out
the act together, spending much of her last tenday in Huthduth choreographing
every move. She thanked the Harvestmaster for his hard work, then presented
the rope to her chuckling father. "You have but to pull the cord, Sire." "If I
dare!" Azoun chuckled. He stood as though bracing himself for an onslaught,
then jerked the cord. The walls of the box fell instantly away, revealing
twelve guilty-looking monks on a small pedalcart crowded with large
earthenware kettles. As the audience erupted into guffaws, two of the priests
leaped off the cart and placed a pair of pots on the lowest step of the
rostrum, then spoke a quick prayer to Chauntea. By the time they had finished,
two more monks were placing another pair of pots on next step. As this duo
spoke their prayers, a pair of small trees sprouted from the first two kettles
and began to grow before the eyes of the astonished crowd. Another team of
priests ascended the rostrum and placed their pots on the third stair, and so
it continued until a pair of pots had been placed on every step. The trees
blossomed as they grew, drawing gasps of wonder and delight from everyone in
the room save Vangerdahast, who regarded the whole display with an air of wary
impatience. The last blossoms had barely appeared before the limbs of the
first trees began to grow heavy with fruit. Smiling in delight, the king
descended three steps and plucked a pear from the branch, then bit into it
with relish. "The sweetest fruit I have ever tasted!" he announced. The king
used his sleeve to wipe the juices from his beard, then climbed the stairs
back to Tanalasta. "A most excellent gift, Princess. We thank you for this
wondrous orchard of mountain fruit trees!" Tanalasta smiled and curtsied. "You
are very welcome, Majesty, but I fear the trees will fade as quickly as they
grew. It is not the orchard I am giving you. It is the priests." Azoun's smile
grew confused. "The priests?" He looked from her to Harvestmaster Foley to the
twelve monks waiting to collect the dying trees, then finally leaned close to
Tanalasta's ear. "I don't understand, my dear. Surely, you don't mean to say
that you have brought me slaves?" "Hardly." Buoyed by the success of Owden's
entrance, Tanalasta spoke loud enough for the crowd to hear, "I have persuaded
Harvestmaster Foley and his priests to return home with us to establish the
Royal Temple of Chauntea." Azoun's expression changed from one of confusion to
one of shock, and Vangerdahast stepped to the king's side at once. "The Royal
Temple of Chauntea?" the old wizard gasped. "She can't be serious!" "I am
quite serious." Tanalasta ignored the ire in Vangerdahast's voice and spoke
directly to the nobles below. "The Royal Temple is established to ensure the
health of all lands in Cormyr. We shall start with those blighted fields right
here in the north." 3 The music of the final allemande still rippling through
his mind, Vangerdahast sat hunched in one of the Marliirs' overstuffed wing
chairs, frowning peevishly at the cold ache in his old joints. The clatter
outside had all but died as the last of the guests' carriages departed the
courtyard below, and still Azoun insisted on pacing back and forth between him
and the warmth of the crackling fire. "See here, Majesty, you're going to have
to quit that." Vangerdahast wagged a gnarled finger at his liege's feet. "An
old man needs his fire." Azoun stopped directly in front of the hearth and
faced him. "What could she be thinking?" "I wouldn't know," Vangerdahast said.
"Perhaps His Highness forgets that he forbade me from reading her mind?" "That
doesn't mean you don't," said Filfaeril, rising from where she had been
resting on the royal magician's bed. Vangerdahast ignored the queen's remark
and muttered a few arcane syllables, then made a series of quick gestures with
his fingers. Azoun did not seem to notice as he floated away from the
fireplace, then slipped around to stand beside the chair. "I'm beginning to
worry about what kind of queen Tanalasta is going to make," said Azoun. "First
Bleth nearly tricks her into giving away the throne-" "Tanalasta was not the
only one fooled by Aunadar," said Filfaeril. Still dressed in the violet gown
she had worn to the ball, she took a seat in the chair next to Vangerdahast.
"As I recall, we were quite keen on the man ourselves. Had I not slipped him
into the library at an opportune moment, nor had you invited him on the hunt
that day, Tanalasta would never have given him a second look." A pained look
came to the king's eye. "Just because a man wants to know his daughter's
suitors does not mean he is thrusting them on her." "No more than we have been
thrusting poor Dauneth on her." Filfaeril shot a glance at Vangerdahast, who
pretended not to notice and continued to gaze into the fire. "It is no wonder
his mother assumed more than she should have." Azoun nodded. "Yes, I suppose
that mess was my fault-but a father can encourage, can't he? I only want to
see her happy." "Happily married," Filfaeril said, "and pregnant with an
heir." Azoun shot his wife a rare frown. "Happy first." "Regardless of the
cost to Cormyr?" the queen asked. Azoun thought for a moment, then said, "The
price of the realm's good does not have to be Tanalasta's happiness. Perhaps
it is time I realized her calling may not lie in being a ruler." Vangerdahast
was so surprised that he nearly choked on his own saliva. Of course, the same
thought had been in the back of everyone's mind since Tanalasta's
embarrassment in the Abraxus Affair, but this was the first time Azoun had
voiced it aloud. Filfaeril did not seem so shocked. She merely raised a brow,
then spoke in an eerily neutral voice. "That would be a big decision." "But
not necessarily a hard one. Tanalasta is thirty-six years old. By the time you
were her age, she was already fifteen, and Foril would have been..." Azoun did
not finish, for neither he nor his queen liked to dwell on the loss of their
young son. "Perhaps Tanalasta would be happier without the burden of producing
an heir." "Perhaps," Filfaeril allowed. "She is approaching the age when the
choice may no longer be hers, and we must also think of the
kingdom." Vangerdahast's heart sank. Until now, the queen had always been
Tanalasta's greatest supporter, maintaining that the princess would grow into
her responsibilities when the time came. If even Filfaeril had lost faith in
her eldest daughter, then what support could Tanalasta have left in the rest
of the kingdom? Azoun stepped over to the hearth and stared into the flames,
blocking Vangerdahast's heat. "Tanalasta isn't the same. She may have been
naive before that Bleth trouble, but she was hardly stupid. Now ..." The king
let the sentence trail, shaking his head in dismay. "Embarrassing Lady Marliir
like that was bad enough." "Majesty, we must recall that Tanalasta had
some-ah-help in that," Vangerdahast said. "I seem to recall shaking my head as
you turned to start up the rostrum." Azoun regarded Vangerdahast with a look
of puzzlement. "I thought you were at odds with the crown princess." "I do not
always agree with you either." "Nor do the two of you seek every opportunity
to vex each other," said Filfaeril. "So why are you defending her
now?" "Because fairness demands it," said Vangerdahast. "She was merely
standing up for herself in an unfair circumstance." "Unfair?" Filfaeril's eyes
narrowed to ice-blue slits. "What game are you playing at now, old trickster?
You were the one who said we should give destiny a push and ask the Marliirs
to host the king's party." Vangerdahast felt the heat rising to his face, but
it was impossible to disguise the reaction with both royals watching him so
closely. In a voice as casual as possible, he said, "I may have pushed rather
too hard, milady." "'Rather too hard?'" Filfaeril demanded. "If you cast any
spells on them-" "Of course not!" Vangerdahast was truly indignant. "Would I
use magic to manipulate the princess's emotions?" "Only as a last resort,"
Azoun growled. "So tell us what you did do." "It was but a little thing."
Vangerdahast held up his hand, pressing together his thumb and forefinger to
illustrate. "Merely a matter of a few words, really." "Whispered into whose
ear?" Filfaeril asked. "Lady Marliir's?" "For one," Vangerdahast said. "But
that really isn't important." "No wonder Tanalasta has so little use for you!"
The king shook his head in disbelief. "That doesn't excuse this royal temple
nonsense. Half the nobles in the land will convert to Chauntea merely to win
favor at court, and the other half will take up arms to defend their own
faiths. How can she expect me to let this happen?" "Because if you don't, her
reputation will be ruined," Filfaeril said. She went over to stare into the
flames, and now Vangerdahast was completely blocked off from the warmth of the
fire. "Forgive me for saying so, Azoun, but I think we're the dense ones here.
Our daughter knows exactly what she's doing." Azoun furrowed his brow. "Let us
assume that is so-but to what purpose?" "To force our hand, of course," said
Filfaeril. "Obviously, she does not wish to be queen." Vangerdahast was up and
standing between the royals in an instant. "Let us not leap to conclusions,
milady! No one has heard Tanalasta say any such thing." The queen whirled on
him with a vehemence that, until that moment, had been reserved for poisoners
and plotters. "What do you care, you old meddler? You've never wanted
Tanalasta to be queen, not since the day she crawled onto Alaphondar's lap
instead of yours." Vangerdahast forced himself to stand fast in the face of
her fury and in that moment he saw the first hint of frailty he had observed
in the queen's character in more than forty years of knowing her. It was not
the princess who had reservations about ascending the throne, but Filfaeril
herself who wanted Tanalasta to rebuff the crown. The queen simply could not
bear the thought of the grief and sacrifice her bookish daughter would suffer
in having to become something so much larger than she was by her own
nature. Had the old wizard known her feelings a year earlier, before leaving
on his journey with Tanalasta, perhaps he could have honored her wishes.
Filfaeril was the closest thing he had to a sister or a wife or a mistress,
and he would not have hurt her for all the treasure in the Thousand Worlds,
but it was too late now. Screwing on his most enigmatic glower, the wizard met
the queen's furious gaze with an angry conviction he did not quite feel. "What
you say simply is not true, milady. If I have been hard on the princess, it is
only because you and the king have been too soft on her." Filfaeril's eyes
flashed white. "What are you saying, Magician?" "That you spoiled your
daughter, Majesty-a sin pardonable enough, except that she happened to be the
crown princess of Cormyr." "How dare you!" Filfaeril's hand flew up so quickly
that it would surely have sent Vangerdahast sprawling, had Azoun not caught
her wrist. "Not yet, my dear." Azoun's eyes were as angry as those of his
wife. "First, I'd like him to explain himself." Breathing an inward sigh of
relief, Vangerdahast turned to the king and inclined his head. Azoun, at
least, would not strike unless he meant to kill. "It is simple enough,
Highness," he said. "Between childhood and adulthood is rebellion. You and the
queen have been loving parents but not stern, and so your daughters had no one
to rebel against. I am privileged to be that person for Tanalasta." "So you
have been deliberately provoking her?" Filfaeril demanded. "Quite,"
Vangerdahast said, almost proudly. "I would say I've done rather well,
wouldn't you?" Again, Azoun's quick hand was all that kept the queen's fist
from knocking the old wizard off his feet. Vangerdahast's heart broke a little
as he realized that the fury in her eyes would not soon fade. Still, one
sometimes had to pay a steep price for always being right. "I want it
stopped," said Azoun. "It isn't working anyway." "I'm afraid it can't be
stopped." Vangerdahast did not relish saying that to the king. "Now that it
has been stirred, Tanalasta's fury will not simply fade away-not when it has
been corked up inside her for twenty years. This thing will have to run its
course now, and it's better that she is angry at me than at you. That way, we
avoid the possibility of treason." "Have you lost your mind?" Filfaeril
screeched. "Treason? From Tanalasta?" "That won't happen," Vangerdahast
assured her. "As I said, matters are well under control. Tanalasta will
develop into a splendid queen." "Like bloody hell she will!" Azoun said. "I
suppose the next thing you'll tell me is that I should let her have this Royal
Temple of Chauntea?" "Of course not. I didn't expect that." Vangerdahast was
struggling to keep hold of his own patience. "But I'll have to be the one to
deal with it. If you start trying to deny her at this stage-" "I am the king!"
Azoun roared. "I'll do what's best for Cormyr, and if that means telling the
crown princess she can't have a royal temple to play with, then I will!" "To
'play with?'" Vangerdahast rolled his eyes. "That's what I'm talking about.
She's not a little girl, Majesty. She's a thirty-six year old princess who
needs a suitable husband-and fast." "I don't like this, Azoun." Filfaeril
turned from the fireplace and started across the room, toward the door that
led to their suite of rooms. "What does a wizard know about raising children?
I understand my daughter. She doesn't want to be queen, and I say we don't
make her. Alusair is a year younger anyway." "Alusair?" Vangerdahast gasped,
finally losing control of himself. "And who is going to make her be queen? She
doesn't want it at all, and I couldn't even begin to address her
problems." "Vangerdahast's right about that, I'm afraid." Azoun was speaking
to his wife's departing back. "If we don't want to make Tanalasta do it, it's
hardly fair to make Alusair do it either." "Then perhaps you will have to
father another heir, my husband, one that Vangerdahast can mold into a proper
monarch." Filfaeril's voice was as icy as her glare. "But I fear you will need
a younger queen for that. One a decade the junior of your daughters, so you
can be certain of the matter." Filfaeril turned and pulled the door shut
behind her. Azoun sighed and sank into the chair she had vacated, then tossed
his crown onto the floor and began to rub his forehead. "Vangerdahast, please
tell me that you have some idea what you're doing here." "Of course, Sire. You
may recall that I helped guide you through-" The wizard was interrupted by
nervous rapping at the door, then Alaphondar Emmarask poked his head into the
chamber. His long white hair was more disheveled than usual, and the
expression on his face was atypically frazzled. "Pray excuse my interruption,
Sire, but a rather spontaneous flood of high priests seems to be, well,
appearing in the Marliir courtyard." "No doubt offering to establish Royal
Temples of their own," Azoun surmised. The Sage Most Learned glanced at the
floor. "I would say they are doing rather more than offering." "And so it
starts." The king exhaled heavily, then snatched his crown off the floor. "Is
there anything else?" "Yes, sire. Merula the Marvelous begs leave to consult
with Vangerdahast regarding the hazard that will be caused by a subversion of
the War Wizards in favor of a religious-" "Tell Merula I will speak with him
later," interrupted Vangerdahast, "and assure him the War Wizards' influence
is not threatened." Azoun glanced at Vangerdahast from the corner of his eye.
"Quite sure of ourselves, aren't we?" "Quite," the wizard replied, voicing
more conviction than he felt. The Sage Most Learned still did not
leave. "Something else?" Azoun asked. "I'm afraid so, Majesty. Duke Marliir is
demanding an audience," said Alaphondar. "He's angry about being asked to host
a party so Princess Tanalasta could announce she would not be marrying his
son." "Of course. Show him in." Azoun sighed heavily, twirling the crown on
his fingers, then looked up at Vangerdahast. "Lord Magician, by the time we
finish today, I am sure you will have a plan for untangling this brilliant
mess you've made." "Of course, Sire." Vangerdahast took the crown, then placed
it on Azoun's head at an angle just jaunty enough to make it appear the king
had been celebrating his birthday a little too hard. "Whatever you command." *
* * * * The stables smelled of straw and leather and predawn dew, and of the
many other joys of honest labor that had remained so carefully hidden from
Tanalasta throughout much of her life. She would miss the odor of toil when
she returned to Suzail, but at least she would know where to find it again
when the palace's bouquet of perfume and prevarication grew overwhelming.
Tanalasta slipped the breast collar over the mule's neck, then buckled it into
place and passed the reins to Harvestmaster Foley, sitting above her on the
driver's bench. The rest of the priests were kneeling in the wagon cargo bed
with their tools and gear, eager for the day's work to begin. The crunch of
approaching feet sounded from the stable yard outside. Tanalasta turned to see
her parents advancing through the early morning gloom, Vangerdahast and the
usual entourage of guards in tow. Though the sun would he up in less than half
an hour their eyelids remained heavy with sleep and their hair uncombed. "The
king and queen," Owden gasped, "and they don't look happy." "I wouldn't read
much into their appearance," Tanalasta said. "It's not the palace's custom to
rise before the sun." Not so long ago, Tanalasta too would have regarded a
predawn rising as an interruption of the choicest pillow time. "I'm sure
Vangerdahast spent the night bending their ears about the royal temple." A
distressed look came to Owden's face, but Tanalasta gave him a reassuring
smile and went outside to meet her parents. "Your Majesties, I did not expect
to see you up so early." "No? Then you were hoping to sneak out under cover of
darkness?" The king made his query sound like a joke, but there was a bitter
edge to the question, and Tanalasta could sense the schism between her parents
and the royal magician. Though the trio was normally close-knit, Azoun and
Vangey barely looked at each other, and her mother stood a little apart from
both of them. Tanalasta curtsied, acknowledging the irritation in her father's
tone. "It is the custom of Chauntea's folk to start early." As Tanalasta
spoke, the royal guards formed a small circle around the group, lest any of
the Marliir stable boys scurrying through the gray morning pause to eavesdrop.
"We have had disturbing news from Tyrluk. The blight has broken out in ten
places around the village, and the crop was already half lost before the
messenger left town." Owden Foley stepped gingerly past a guard to come up
beside Tanalasta. "At that rate, Majesty, every field between the High Road
and the Storm Horns will be a total loss within the tenday." "That is why we
keep the royal granaries full." Azoun ignored the Harvestmaster and continued
to focus on Tanalasta. "We have not seen the princess in over a year. I would
really rather she didn't run off-" "Within a tenday, you say?" Vangerdahast
interrupted, stepping past Azoun toward Owden. "That is exceedingly fast, is
it not?" Owden nodded grimly. "The fastest I have ever seen. If we do not move
quickly, the whole of Cormyr could lose its crop." "Truly?" Vangerdahast ran
his fingers through his long beard, then turned to the royal couple.
"Majesties, we may have a situation here worthy of our closest
attention." Azoun frowned in confusion. "Just yesterday, you told me that
Merula the Marvelous-" "I fear Tanalasta may have been right about him,"
Vangerdahast said, again interrupting. "Unless you want a dragon blasted apart
or a company of orcs put to sleep, Merula the Marvelous is a bit of a wand
waver." The king and queen exchanged perplexed glances, then Filfaeril asked,
"I beg your pardon?" "Merula wouldn't know a blight from a blotch," said
Vangerdahast. "He assured me the disease would never escape the mountains, and
the next day here it is in Tyrluk. When it comes to plants, we might be better
to put our faith in the judgment of the good Harvestmaster." Tanalasta
wondered what trick Vangerdahast was working now, then frowned as the old
pettifogger turned to address Owden. "Harvestmaster Foley, what would you say
is the origin of this blight?" "It appeared first in the mountains, and it
molds the roots just below the surface." Owden rubbed his chin thoughtfully,
then said, "It may very well be some sort of cave fungus-carried by orcs, I
imagine. The filthy creatures spend a lot of time crawling about in caverns,
and a wandering band would explain why the disease seems to be jumping
around." "Excellent observation, Owden... if I may be so informal," said
Vangerdahast. "Of course, Lord Magician," said Owden. "Vangerdahast, please,
or Vangey if you prefer. We really don't stand on ceremony in private." The
old wizard cast a sidelong glance at Tanalasta, then added, "As you may be
aware, sometimes I am even referred to as 'that damned old
staff-swinger.'" "Really? I hadn't heard that," said Owden, lying beautifully.
Tanalasta had spent her first tenday or so at Huthduth complaining about the
wizard and doing very little else, and she considered it a tribute to the
harvestmaster's patience that she had not been asked to leave. "The princess
always referred to you in a rather fatherly fashion." "How kind of you to say
so." Suspicious of Vangerdahast's polite tone, Tanalasta studied her parents
for hints as to why the royal magician was trying to befriend Owden. Even in
the rosy dawn light now spilling across the stable yard gate, their
expressions betrayed nothing beyond the same confusion she felt. Vangerdahast
turned to the king. "Majesty, perhaps we should send word to High Horn to
triple their orc patrols and see to it that the beasts are kept far clear of
Cormyr. If I may borrow a few scouts from the Purple Dragons, I'll also have
the War Wizards send out teams to seal the mouths of any caverns the orcs have
been inhabiting." "And you'll claim it was the War Wizards who stopped the
blight," Tanalasta surmised. "I see what you're doing, you old
thief." Vangerdahast turned to her with an innocent expression. "I am trying
to stop the blight," he said. "I thought that was what you wanted." "Of
course," said Tanalasta, "but if you think you can use Owden's knowledge to
steal the credit from the Royal Temple…" "Vangerdahast isn't stealing the
credit from anybody," said Azoun. "There isn't going to be any Royal
Temple." "What?" Tanalasta whirled on her father so fast that several
bodyguards glanced reflexively over their shoulders. "You let Vangerdahast
talk you out of it without hearing me first? That's hardly fair." "Actually,
Vangerdahast never said a word against the Royal Temple," said the king. "Your
mother and I had barely retired from the ball before high priests began to
fill the Marliir's foyer, all insisting that the palace establish royal
temples to their own gods and goddesses." "Why shouldn't we?" Tanalasta asked
evenly. Owden stood at her side looking serene. They had decided earlier that
their best strategy in an argument would be for Owden to maintain an air of
patient confidence. "As long as each church pays its own costs, what harm can
it do to curry the favor of the gods?" Filfaeril regarded Tanalasta as though
she were mad. "Curry favor from the Prince of Lies? Or the Maiden of Pain?"
The queen shook her head in disbelief. "Perhaps you should be Loviatar's first
royal acolyte. You're certainly causing your parents enough
anguish." Tanalasta fell silent, not because she had failed to anticipate the
argument, but because she was surprised to hear the queen voicing it instead
of Vangerdahast. Before, her mother had always supported her against the
wizard, and it shook her confidence to see the normal order of things
reversed. She smiled at a gawking stable boy stumbling past with two buckets
of warm goat's milk, then returned her attention to the queen. 'The term
'royal' implies the sponsorship of an Obarskyr does it not?" Tanalasta did not
put as much acid as she had planned into the question, for she could not quite
bring herself to speak to the queen in such tones. "I have faith enough in our
family to think that even Cyric's new Seraph of Lies could not arrange such a
thing." "And I share that faith," said Azoun. In contrast to Filfaeril, the
king spoke in a patient, if firm, voice. "But other considerations take
precedence. First, you know how the nobles make a vogue of anything we
do." "There are worse fads to start," Tanalasta said. "Perhaps, but we must
also think of the War Wizards. They will take it as a grave insult to their
skill and loyalty if the crown suddenly finds it necessary to establish
another corps of magic-users." "And the crown princess should not need to be
told of the War Wizards' importance to the realm," added the queen. The dawn
had finally turned yellow, and in its golden light Filfaeril looked more like
an angry celestial seraph than Tanalasta's mother. "Nor of the dangers of
undermining their value by creating a divisive atmosphere. Already this
morning, I have heard several wizards refer to your priests as 'spell-beggars'
and 'mommy's boys.'" Vangerdahast gave Owden an apologetic nod. "No offense,
of course. I'll have a word with them about such epithets." "Not necessary,"
said the harvestmaster, not quite managing to mask the indignity in his voice.
"Their jealous-ah-resentment is understandable." Vangerdahast only smiled at
what everyone knew to be an intentional slip of the tongue, and Tanalasta
began to fear that her mother's argument had merit. If Owden could not handle
Vangerdahast on his best behavior, she shuddered to think of the enmity that
would be unleashed when the old guttermouth gave himself free rein. Tanalasta
addressed herself to the queen. "If the crown must fear the consequences of
the War Wizards' anger, then perhaps they are not as great an asset to the
realm as we believe." She smiled in Vangerdahast's direction. "I am sure we
may be confident of the royal magician's ability to keep them under control.
Really, it would be a shame to let petty politics prevent us from doing what
is best for the realm. Vangerdahast himself has pointed out that only the
priests of Chauntea can deal with crises such as this." Even on his best
behavior, this was a bit too much for Vangerdahast. "That is not quite what I
said, young lady. A small crop blight is hardly a crisis for a kingdom like
Cormyr." "Nor do we want to make it seem like one," said Azoun. "Creating a
new organization to respond to it is bound to do just that. It could cause a
general panic that would lead to hoarding, thievery and profiteering. I'm
sorry Tanalasta. You'll have to announce that Chauntea called Owden and his
priests back to Huthduth." "But she hasn't," Tanalasta said. "The goddess
wouldn't do such a thing." "It's no reflection on Owden or Chauntea, or even
on your decision to venerate the All Mother," said Filfaeril. "This simply
isn't the time to establish a royal temple. You shouldn't have announced it
without discussing it with us first, and I'm sure you know that. Trying to
force this onus is unforgivable-as unforgivable as Vangey's attempt to
embarrass you into taking a husband before it is too late." "Too late?"
Tanalasta fairly shrieked the words, for her mother had touched a tender
chord. She turned to Vangerdahast. "So that's how it is. You would turn my own
parents against me to get what you want." Vangerdahast arched his bushy
eyebrows, and something like sorrow seemed to flash in his dark eyes. "I am
sorry, milady, but I have no idea what you mean." "A marriage for a royal
temple. Is that to be the agreement?" Tanalasta looked to her parents. "If a
child is the only thing I am permitted to give the realm, then at least let me
do that well. Trust me, it would be better to leave my field fallow than to
plow it with a man I do not love." Azoun paled and glanced around the stable
yard, then, with a few quick nods, signaled the guards to clear it.
Filfaeril's reaction was different. Though her eyes filled with tears, she
flashed Tanalasta the same icy glare that had crushed razor-tongued duchesses
and iron-willed army marshals. "Your father's decision has nothing to do with
anything Vangerdahast may have said." Filfaeril's voice cracked, but she
stepped closer to her daughter and continued in an even harsher tone. "The
king is thinking of Cormyr. It is time for you to stop being so selfish and do
the same thing." Vangerdahast's eyes grew wide. "Your Majesty, you mustn't." A
small wad of cotton appeared in the wizard's hand, but Filfaeril's hand was
clamped on his wrist before he could speak his incantation. "Vangerdahast!"
Filfaeril's tone was threatening. "If you cast that silence spell, even Azoun
will not have the power to keep your head on your shoulders." The wad vanished
into the wizard's sleeve. "Filfaeril, I beg you. You're making a
mistake." "Perhaps, but she has had twenty years to find a husband she likes."
The queen turned back to Tanalasta. "Now she will settle for Dauneth
Marliir." Owden Foley stepped to the queen's side. "Your Majesty, if I may,
there is something you should know." "Owden, no!" Tanalasta grasped the
harvestmaster's shoulder and shoved him toward a guard. "This man is
dismissed." "Not yet," said the king. He gestured to Owden. "Is there
something we should know about Tanalasta's condition?" "'Condition,' father?"
Tanalasta said. "If there were something I thought you should-" "I was talking
to Owden," said Azoun. Tanalasta glared at the priest furiously. "You heard
the king's command." Owden swallowed hard, then looked back to Azoun. "Sire, I
think you should know that your daughter thinks of nothing but Cormyr. In
fact, when Lady Marliir's invitation arrived at Huthduth, she told me that she
would be returning to Cormyr to wed a man she did not love." "Then why isn't
she?" demanded Filfaeril. "I'm afraid that is my fault." Owden looked at his
feet. "I advised her that she would be a better queen for Cormyr if she waited
until she found a man she loved." Tanalasta had to struggle to keep her
surprise hidden, for she had not realized quite how effective a liar the
harvestmaster could be. The truth was that Owden had wished her well and said
that by all accounts Dauneth Marliir was a fine man. Then she had sneaked out
for one last hike and experienced her vision, and there had been no need for
Owden Foley to convince the princess of anything. Filfaeril narrowed her eyes
at the harvestmaster's explanation. "Under the circumstances, your advice
could be considered treason." "Or sound advice." Azoun cast a stern eye in the
direction of both Filfaeril and Vangerdahast. "That is for Tanalasta to
determine, and Tanalasta alone. What is not for her to decide is the fate of
the royal temple. She will announce that Chauntea's priests have been called
back to Huthduth." Vangerdahast shook his head vehemently. "But Your
Majesty..." Azoun raised his hand. "And we will trust our war wizards to deal
with the blight. Even if they take somewhat longer to stop it, the people of
Cormyr will take comfort from their presence." Tanalasta's thoughts began to
spin. Filfaeril's harsh words had left her so hurt and disoriented that she
found it impossible to concentrate, and she could not help feeling she must
have done something terrible to make the queen so angry with her. Nor could
she take comfort from Vangerdahast's unexpected support. She had seen his
cobra's smile charm too many foes to fall prey to its poison herself. Azoun
nodded to Owden. "We thank you for coming all this way, Harvestmaster, but you
may take your priests and return to Huthduth. Tanalasta will see to an
explanation." Owden's face showed his disappointment, but he bowed deeply to
show his obedience, then turned and grasped Tanalasta's hands in farewell. As
the harvestmaster said his good-byes, his words barely registered, for she
suddenly felt her mother's gaze and looked over to see Filfaeril's pale eyes
glaring at her. The ice in the queen's expression caused her to recoil
involuntarily, and Tanalasta's earlier fury returned tenfold. No matter what
her mother believed, the princess was doing the best thing for Cormyr, and
allowing anyone to tell her otherwise would bring disaster down on the
kingdom. When Owden started toward the stable, Tanalasta caught him by the
arms. "Harvestmaster Foley, the king is wrong. I am not going to explain your
departure." Azoun's face grew instantly stormy. "You are defying
me?" Tanalasta glanced toward her mother and noticed the queen's lower lip
beginning to quiver, then nodded. "I must follow my convictions,
Sire." Owden's face grew as pale as the king's was red. "Princess Tanalasta,
there is no need to argue-" "But there is, Harvestmaster," said Tanalasta.
"Cormyr has need of you and your priests-now, and in the future." "I am king,"
Azoun said in that even voice he used when he was angered almost beyond
control. "My convictions determine what Cormyr needs." "And what happens when
you are gone, father? Am I to have Vangerdahast rouse you from your rest to
see what is best for the realm?" Tanalasta shook her head. "I must do what I
believe to be right-now, because I am certain of it, and in the future,
because I will have no other choice." Vangerdahast sighed heavily and muttered
something indiscernible, and Filfaeril's hand rose to her mouth. The anger
vanished from her eyes, only to return a moment later when she looked in
Vangerdahast's direction. Azoun merely stared at Tanalasta, his eyes growing
steadily darker as he tried to bring his temper under control. Finally, he
said, "Perhaps I can spare you that burden, Princess. I have two
daughters." Tanalasta struggled to keep from staggering back. "I know
that." "Good," said the king. "Vangerdahast has been unable to contact
Alusair. You will take your priests and ride into the Stonelands to find her.
You will tell her that I have something important to say to her. She is to
return to Arabel in all possible haste, and she is to guard her life as
carefully as that of any crown heir." With that, Azoun spun on his heel and
marched back toward the manor house, leaving Vangerdahast and Filfaeril
standing gape-mouthed behind him. Tears began to trickle down the queen's
face. She started to reach out for Tanalasta, then suddenly pulled her arms
back and whirled on the royal magician. "Damn you." Her voice was calm and
even and all the more frightening. "Damn you for a lying child of
Cyric!" Vangerdahast's shoulders slumped, and he suddenly seemed as old as
Cormyr itself. "I told you it was too late," he whispered. The rims of his
baggy eyes grew red and wet, and he looked at his wrinkled old arms as though
it took a conscious act of will not to grasp the queen's hands. "I'll go with
her. I'll be there every step of the way." "Should that comfort me?" The queen
glanced again at Tanalasta, then turned and scurried after Azoun. Tanalasta
stood where she was, trying to puzzle out what had just happened, and felt
Owden grasp her arm. She quickly shook him off. To her astonishment, she did
not need his support. She felt stronger than at any other time in her
life. 4 There would be no turnips for LastRest this year. A mat of ash-colored
mold covered the field, filling the air with a smell of must and rot so foul
that Tanalasta had to cover her mouth to keep from retching. Little mounds of
gray marked where the stalks had pushed up through the earth, but nothing
could be seen of the plants themselves. At the far edge of the field, a free
farmer and his family were busy loading the contents of their hut into an
ox-drawn cart. "By the Sacred Harrow!" cursed Owden. "What an
abomination!" "It is a sad sight," agreed Tanalasta. She motioned the
commander of her Purple Dragon escort to set a perimeter around the area, then
urged her horse forward. "Strange we have seen no other sign of blight in the
area." "Strange indeed," said Owden, following her along the edge of the
field. "Why would the orcs raid this grange, when it is so much closer to town
than others we have passed?" "Perhaps they had a taste for turnips,"
Vangerdahast said, riding up beside Tanalasta. "I doubt even orcs know why
they raid one farm instead of another." "I am not as interested in why as
whether," said Tanalasta. She had noticed the orc track a mile earlier, in the
bed of a rocky creek they had been crossing. Over Vangerdahast's rather feeble
objections, the princess had led the company upstream, following a patchy
trail of overturned stones and sandy hoof prints to within a few paces of the
blighted field. Now that she saw the farmer's undamaged hut, however, she
wondered if the place had been raided at all. She pointed at the little house.
"It's not like orcs to spare such a defenseless target." "Now you are troubled
that they didn't raze some shack?" Vangerdahast looked to the heavens for
patience. "Aren't you wasting enough of our time without fretting over such
things? The king sent us north to find Alusair-" "And you are certain these
farmers can't help us?" Tanalasta stared at the old wizard evenly "I know why
the king sent us north, and it has less to do with finding Alusair than
getting me out of Arabel. I doubt he would object to our taking the time to
determine if these orcs are the ones spreading the blight." "Very well,"
Vangerdahast sighed, giving up the argument far too easily, "but we won't be
going after them." Tanalasta studied the wizard thoughtfully. She had spent
the last two days alternately trying to puzzle out his game and feeling oddly
pleased with herself. She did not know whether her father had been serious
about naming a new heir, but she now realized she did not care. As they had
ridden out of Arabel, an unexpected sense of relief came over her, and she
took the feeling to mean she had never wanted to rule Cormyr at all. Later, as
she grew accustomed to her new status, she began to experience vague
sensations of loss and came to understand that what she felt was not relief,
but pride. For the first time in her life, she had staked her whole future on
her own conviction. The possibility that in the process she had thrown away a
kingdom did not frighten her-it made her feel strong. Once Tanalasta came to
that realization, it grew easier to focus on Vangerdahast's strange behavior.
Given his attitude toward her recently, she would have expected him to endorse
her replacement as heir. Yet he seemed quite disturbed by the king's
pronouncement, and since then he had been almost civil to her. She would have
to be careful. Vangerdahast was definitely plotting something, and he was at
his most dangerous when cordial. After a time, Vangerdahast raised one of his
bushy eyebrows and asked, "Well? Do we have a bargain, or must I slip you into
a bag of holding for the rest of the trip?" "That won't be necessary,"
Tanalasta replied. "I'm no orc-hunter. I only want to find out what they did
to this grange." As Tanalasta and her company rounded the corner of the field,
the farmer sent his family into the hut, then turned to curtly salute his
visitors. Despite his tattered tunic and mane of untrimmed hair, the princess
felt certain he had once been a soldier-probably an ex-Purple Dragon who had
accepted a tract of frontier land in lieu of mustering out pay. As she
approached the man, Tanalasta slipped her signet ring into her pocket, then
returned his salute somewhat awkwardly. As a princess, she normally ignored
military protocol, but her company was traveling disguised as a Purple Dragon
patrol. Like Vangerdahast and Owden, Tanalasta wore the black weathercloak of
a war wizard, while the twelve priests behind her were dressed in the capes
and chain mail of common dragoneers. The farmer's eyes seemed to absorb all
this in an instant, then he returned his gaze to Tanalasta. "Hag Gordon at
your service, Lady Wizard. Didn't hear there was a new patrol assigned to
Gnoll Pass." "There isn't," Tanalasta replied. She could tell by Hag's tone
that he had already deduced this was no ordinary company. "And you were with
the...?" "The Hullack Venomeers." Hag's eyes shifted pointedly to the
badgeless capes worn by Owden's priests, then he added, "Milady." Tanalasta
sensed that she was missing some subtlety of military decorum, but she could
hardly reveal the true nature of her company. Even had she known Hag's loyalty
to be beyond question, there was no need for him to know that the crown
princess-or former crown princess-was riding about the realm protected only by
a small escort of Purple Dragons. One simply did not reveal that sort of
information casually. Tanalasta gestured toward the far end of the man's
field. "We were passing by when we noticed orc tracks in the creek." "Orcs?"
Hag's eyes widened. "There are no orcs this side of the pass." "I know an orc
track when I see one," Tanalasta insisted. "Even underwater. They love to
wade. It makes it harder for the hounds to stay on their trail." Hag raised
his brow and studied her with a thoughtful air, and that was when Tanalasta
realized her mistake. She turned to Owden and Vangerdahast. "The orcs didn't
cause this," she said, waving at the blighted field. "At least not the ones
we've been following." Owden frowned, looking from the princess to the ruined
field. "It must be. The coincidence is-" "Just a coincidence-or related in
some way we don't understand," she said. "Even in a slow current, the tracks
in the stream couldn't be more than a few hours old." "And my turnips started
molding a tenday ago," added Hag, clearly making the connection between
Tanalasta's inquiries and the condition of his field. "What are you looking
for?" "As a former sergeant in the Hullack Venomeers, you should know better
than to ask such questions," said Vangerdahast. While the rebuke failed to
intimidate Hag, it did impress Tanalasta. It seemed impossible that even
Vangerdahast could know the rank of every man who had served in the Purple
Dragons. The wizard continued to glower at the man. "Had it been any of your
concern, we would have explained the company's lack of insignia." "And would
you also have explained why your dragoneers carry maces where they should have
swords? Whatever happened to my field, it's happening to others, and old
Bolt-and-Blow must be scared to death." Vangerdahast's face darkened to deep
burgundy. "Bolt-and-Blow, Sergeant Gordon?" "The royal magician," Hag
explained. Tanalasta had to bite her cheeks to keep from bursting into
laughter, but Vangerdahast's complexion only continued to darken. If the
sergeant realized how perilous it was to anger this particular war wizard, he
showed no sign. "Everyone knows how old Ringfingers clutches the reins of
power." As he said this, Hag glanced at Vangerdahast's bejeweled hands, then
stepped even closer. "He'd never muster a whole company of priests if this
thing didn't scare him. If he's scared, so am I. So what happened to my
field... sir?" Vangey turned to Tanalasta, eyes bulging like red-veined
eggshells, and said nothing. He didn't have to. One of her father's many
misgivings about establishing a royal temple had been causing a needless
panic, and now she could see why. "I wouldn't read too much into the
composition of the Badgeless Maces," said Tanalasta. Again, a glimmer of a
frown flashed across the free farmer's face, and the princess could not help
feeling that she was making some error of protocol that aroused the man's
suspicions. "But as a former dragoneer, you are obliged to serve at the
crown's recall. Must I invoke that obligation to secure your cooperation?" Hag
seemed no more intimidated by Tanalasta's threat than he had by Vangerdahast's
blustering. "That duty is invoked by royal writ. If you can produce one, then
I will gladly obey your command. Otherwise, I am entitled to as many answers
as I give." "Royal writ!" Vangerdahast spewed, reaching into his robe. "I'll
writ you into a-!" "The world has no need for more toads, Sir Wizard."
Tanalasta motioned for Vangerdahast to hold his attack, then turned back to
the stubborn farmer. "While I'm sure we can trust a former dragoneer to hold
his tongue, can the same be said for his children?" Tanalasta glanced toward
the hut, where the man's family was peering through the cracked door. Hag's
eyes lit with sudden comprehension, and he nodded gravely-exactly as the
princess had hoped he would. She had not lived nearly four decades in the
Palace of the Purple Dragon without developing at least some talent for making
people feel special. Hag gestured toward the nearest corner of his field.
"Come with me," he said, "there's something you'll want to see." "Of course."
Tanalasta smiled and dismounted, thankful that at least some of her palace
experience proved useful outside Suzail. She motioned to Owden and, somewhat
reluctantly, Vangerdahast to follow. "Hag, since you have already deduced the
true nature of our 'Purple Dragons,' would you care to have them do what they
can to restore your field? I doubt they can save this year's harvest, but
perhaps they can keep the blight from ruining the soil." Hag's dismay showed
in his face, and Tanalasta could tell that it had not even occurred to him
that the field might be ruined forever. "I'd be grateful for whatever they can
do," he said. "It'll be hard enough doing city work this year without knowing
I have to clear another field before spring." Owden nodded to his priests.
They dismounted and began to sort through the small assortment of tools piled
in the farmer's cart, having left their own shovels and hoes back in Arabel.
Despite the offer of help, Hag still did not seem inclined to volunteer any
information. He led Tanalasta and her two companions to the corner of his
field, then stopped and looked at them expectantly. Tanalasta put her hands
into the pockets of her weathercloak. "You must swear on your honor as a
Purple Dragon to hold what I tell you in the strictest confidence." With a
practiced motion, she slipped on two of the handful of magic rings that
Vangerdahast had pressed on her before setting out from Arabel. "You may not
tell even your wife." "I swear," said Hag. "Not even my wife." "Good. Clearly,
you have realized by now that I am no war wizard, and that many of those
traveling with me are not normal Purple Dragons." Vangerdahast cleared his
throat gruffly. "Milady, I hardly think this is wise-" "But it is my decision,
Lord Wizard." Tanalasta removed her hand from her pocket, displaying to Hag
the hardened gold band of a Commander's Ring of the Purple Dragons. "I have no
doubt that you also recognize this, and what it must mean for someone who
wouldn't know a troop from a tulip to be wearing it." "I know what it is, as
you say," said Hag, "but I can't imagine why you'd be wearing one." "Of course
you can." Tanalasta motioned to the twelve priests already poking around at
the edge of his field. "You've already guessed, and with little enough help
from us. We're trying to stop this blight before it becomes a serious problem
for Cormyr. To do that, we need to find the orcs who are spreading it." Hag
cocked an eyebrow and thought for a moment, then said, "I suppose it doesn't
really matter who you are." "Not if you value your tongue," Vangerdahast
threatened. The free farmer nodded reluctantly, then picked up a long stick.
"You'll be wanting to see this." Talking as he worked, Hag began to scrape the
mold away from the soft soil underneath. "He must have snuck up on us. The
dogs didn't start barking until he was already in the field, and by the time I
saw him, he was halfway across." "Who?" asked Owden. "Whoever left that." Hag
pointed to a track he had uncovered. It was shaped like a man's bare foot,
save that it was half-again too long, with the narrow line of a claw mark
furrowing the ground in front of each toe. "No orc made that track," Tanalasta
said. "He looked more like a beggar," said Hag. "A tall beggar, with a huge
ragged cape and some sort of tattered hood. I was going to invite him to sleep
in the goat shed, until he turned and I saw his eyes." "His eyes?" Tanalasta
asked. "They were full of blood." Hag hesitated, then added, "And they...
well... they had to be shining." "Had to be?" Vangerdahast demanded. "Be
specific, sergeant." Hag's bearing grew a touch more proud and upright. "It
was dark, Lord Wizard. He was really only a shadow, but I could see his eyes.
They weren't bright, it's just that they were the only thing I could really
see." "Did he do anything threatening?" asked Tanalasta. Hag flushed. "Not
really... but he frightened me all the same. I set my dogs on him. They chased
him over to the corner by where you came in, and that was the last I saw of
them alive." "How were they killed?" Vangerdahast asked. "I couldn't say. In
the morning, my son found them sleeping on the stream bank. They wouldn't wake
up." "You sent your son to look for them?" Owden asked. "To call them," Hag
said, bristling at the note of disapproval in the harvestmaster's voice. "My
wife and I were busy in the field." "The blight?" Tanalasta asked. "A diagonal
stripe right where he walked. We pulled every turnip within two paces of his
footsteps, but the whole crop had wilted by evening." Hag gestured at the
field. "You know the rest." Owden and Vangerdahast exchanged worried looks,
then the harvestmaster said, "It appears I was wrong about the orcs. I'm
sorry." Vangerdahast laid a hand on the harvestmaster's shoulder. "I wouldn't
be too hard on myself. It was only a working theory, and a good one at that."
He turned to Hag. 'What else can you tell us about this vagabond?" Hag
shrugged. "Nothing. He came and went in the night, then everything just
died." "Came from where?" Vangerdahast demanded, scanning the rocky farmyard
around them. "Went to whence?" "It'll do no good to search for a trail now.
There was a good wind two days ago," said Hag. "Besides, I looked after and
found the dogs dead. The vagabond-or whatever he was-didn't leave any more
tracks." Tanalasta studied the surrounding area. The grange was located just a
few hundred paces north of the tiny hamlet of LastRest, near where The
Mountain Ride ascended the foothills of the Storm Horn Mountains into Gnoll
Pass. The vegetation was alternately scrub willow and thin copses of beech,
with plenty of boulders and stones to hint at the difficulty of clearing a
pasture. It would have been hard for anyone to approach the field through so
much brush without leaving some sign of his passage. 'Tm no scout, but I know
how to look for a trail," said Hag, correctly interpreting Tanalasta's
scrutiny of the area. "There were no broken twigs, no overturned stones-at
least not that amounted to a trail." Vangerdahast used his hand to trace a
path from the far corner of the field to where they were standing, then turned
to continue the line. He was pointing between two massive peaks just to the
left of Gnoll Pass. "The Stonelands," Tanalasta observed. Vangerdahast nodded.
"Well, I suppose that's no surprise. Nothing good has ever come from the
Stonelands." Owden turned to Hag. "Perhaps we can learn something about this
stranger from the death of your dogs. Would you mind if I had a look at
them?" "If you want to dig them up." Hag pointed toward a mound on the far
side of his goat shed. Vangerdahast frowned and looked to Tanalasta. "I'm sure
there is no need to remind you of our mission. We hardly have time to tarry
here all afternoon while the good harvestmaster digs up those poor
creatures." "Of course not," Tanalasta said, starting for her horse, and
motioning for the others to follow. "You and I will cross the Storm Horns with
all due haste. The Harvestmaster and his priests will stay here to learn what
they can from Hag's field, then set off after this vagabond." Now Vangerdahast
really scowled. "It's hardly necessary to send them back. Either one of us can
report-" "Those are my orders," Tanalasta said. "And if you care to argue
them, I can simply release the Badgeless Maces from the king's service. Of
course, then I would also have to confiscate their cloaks, leaving them to
ride about the realm asking questions and chasing vagabonds without any
disguise whatsoever." "You wouldn't!" "You think not?" Tanalasta reached her
horse and took the reins from the young priest who had been holding it, then
swung into the saddle. "Try me." Vangerdahast did his best to warp his
wrinkled face into a mask of outrage. "The king himself shall hear of
this." "I have no doubt. I suspect he might even be expecting it." Trying hard
to suppress a smile, Tanalasta turned to Hag. "You have the thanks of the
realm, and I hope the priests are able to save your field." Hag bowed low.
"And you have my thanks for trying. Rest assured that I shall keep your
secrets-all of them." "That is well for you," growled Vangerdahast, hoisting
himself into his saddle. "You may be certain that I will be listening." Hag
bowed again, and this time his face had finally grown pale with intimidation.
Tanalasta said her farewells to Owden, promising to meet him in Arabel within
the space of two tendays, then signaled the real Purple Dragons to close the
perimeter and resume their marching order. As they rode down the creek toward
the ford where Tanalasta had first noticed the orc tracks, Vangerdahast
splashed up beside the princess and said, "You should know I'm serious about
contacting your father. You can't keep flouting his wishes and expect him to
forgive you." "I'm more concerned about these orcs running around loose than
my father's forgiveness." Tanalasta gestured at the stream bed. "Have you sent
word to Castle Crag about them?" "I ... uh... certainly." "Really,
Vangerdahast?" Vangerdahast's cheeks reddened above his beard. "I'm confident
Lord Commander Tallsword has already sent a patrol to track them down." "I'm
sure be has." Tanalasta smiled to herself, then asked, "Tell me, when did you
hear about that field?" Vangerdahast looked confused. "Milady?" "Hag Gordon's
former rank," Tanalasta said. "How could you have known it, if Bren Tallsword
hadn't already told you about the blighted field? I only hope the good
sergeant wasn't part of the deception. I'd hate to think Harveatmaster Foley
will be running around smashing in vagabond heads for no good
reason." Vangerdahast sighed wearily. "Unfortunately, I fear the harvestmaster
will find plenty of reason. Bren Tallsword told me about the Gordon field
three days ago, but today was the first I had heard about the vagabond-and
yes, I have already contacted the Lord Commander and told him to watch for the
man." The old wizard smiled, then added, "I have also asked him to do his best
to keep your priest friends out of the king's sight." "It's not father's sight
that I'm worried about," said Tanalasta. "He has ears in as many places as you
do." Vangerdahast regarded her doubtfully. "A princess shouldn't
exaggerate." "What makes you think I am?" Tanalasta laughed. She fell silent
for a time, quietly appreciating the kind of moment that she had not
experienced with Vangerdahast since before her twentieth birthday, then said,
"It won't work, you know." "Princess?" Vangerdahast's wrinkled brow rose in a
parody of innocence. "I'm sure I have no idea what you mean." "I'm sure you
do, but you won't trick me into changing my mind. I'm old enough to know what
I believe in and what I don't." "Truly?" The expression that came to
Vangerdahast's face was one of genuine envy. "How nice that must be." * * * *
* Azoun eyed the plate of liver-smeared wafers in Filfaeril's hand and his
mouth instantly filled with a taste that could only be described as minted cow
dung. He and the queen were attending their fifth reception in as many days,
this one at the overdone mansion of the powerful Misrim merchant family, and
he had grown so weary of the local delicacy that he could not even look at it
without his gorge rising. Pretending to listen earnestly to young Count
Bhela's suggestion that the crown establish a system of cobble-paved merchant
roads across the realm, Azoun caught his wife's eye and turned his head ever
so slightly, signaling her to be rid of the ghastly stuff. Filfaeril grinned
viciously and glided to his side without stumbling or tripping or finding some
other excuse to let even one of the awful canapes slide off the tray. She
managed to interrupt young Bhela's diatribe with a flash of pearly teeth,
accomplishing with a single smile what the king had been attempting in vain
for the last half-hour, then pushed the platter forward. The smell of minted
grease filled Azoun's nose, and he suddenly felt so ill that it took an act of
will to keep his wineglass in his hand. "Liverpaste, my dear?" Filfaeril
asked. "It's quail." "Love one!" Azoun took a wafer and bit into it, then
chewed three quick times and swallowed quickly in a futile attempt to keep his
tongue from registering the taste. "Excellent. Won't you have one, Count
Bhela?" Bhela's eyes grew as round as coins. "Off your plate, Majesty?" Azoun
nodded enthusiastically. "I know your family well enough to trust you won't
slip me any poison." Bhela eyed the wafers with unconcealed longing and nearly
reached for one, then caught himself and shook his head. "It wouldn't be
right, Sire. I'm only a count." "Please, I insist." Bhela's expression grew
nervous, and be glanced around the room at all the other nobles who had been
glaring at him for the last quarter hour. "I beg you, Majesty. The superior
lords will consider me haughty," he said. "In fact, you really should allow me
to take my leave. They'll think I have been monopolizing your time." "Yes,
yes, of course. How mindless of me." Azoun dismissed him with a hearty clap on
the shoulder, then sighed wearily. "Do send me a study on that idea of yours,
Count. Imagine, cobbling an entire highway!" "Within a tenday, Your
Majesty." Beaming with pride, Bhela bowed deeply to both the king and queen,
then turned and strutted off to bask in the glow of his lengthy audience with
the king. Filfaeril took another minted liverpaste off the plate and offered
it to Azoun. He accepted the wafer with a smile, but held it between two
fingers and allowed himself a generous swig of wine, trying to wash the
lingering taste of the last one from his mouth. "Eat up, my dear," urged
Filfaeril. "You wouldn't want our hosts to think you fear poison." Azoun
lowered his glass, then concentrated on maintaining a pleasant smile as he
spoke to his wife. "Show some mercy. I'll never get through this without your
help." "I am helping. If we are to repair the damage done by Tanalasta, we
must be accessible to our nobles." Filfaeril looked across the chamber toward
a boorish man in yellow stockings and crossed garters. "Isn't that Earl Hioar?
He has a wonderful plan for clear-cutting the Dragon Wood. I'll fetch
him." Azoun stuffed the minted liverpaste into his mouth whole, then caught
Filfaeril by the elbow and said, "Not yet." Somehow, he managed to mumble the
words without spewing wafer over her damask gown. He chewed half a dozen times
and gagged the canapé down. "Tanalasta gave me no choice." "You always have a
choice. You're the king." Azoun allowed himself a quick scowl. "You know
better. And why are you angry with me, anyway? From the way you were inciting
her, I thought you wanted a new heir." "I want what is best for Tanalasta,"
Filfaeril countered. "Instead, you allowed Vangey to manipulate her into
defying you." "You helped." "Not knowingly." Without taking her eyes off
Azoun, the queen held out her free hand. A waiter scurried forward and placed
a glass of wine in it, which she sipped until he had retreated out of earshot.
"Vangey used me. Had I known how much she had changed, I would never have... I
just didn't know how much she had changed." "After the Abraxus Affair I should
think you would consider that a good thing," said Azoun. "She certainly does.
So do I, and so does Vangerdahast." "It will make her a stronger queen, yes,"
said Filfaeril, "but will it make her happy?" A pang of sorrow shot through
Azoun's breast, and he had to look away. He loved Tanalasta like any father
loves a daughter, but the truth of the matter was that he could not concern
himself with her happiness. The good of the realm demanded that he think only
of making her a strong ruler. That was a steep price indeed to demand of any
parent. After a moment, he said, "Tanalasta was my favorite, you know. Always
so eager to learn. You had only to tell her a thing once, and a year later she
would repeat it back to you word for word. And so sweet. How her guileless
smile would light the room...." "I remember." The queen's voice remained cold.
"I fear what we loved best in her is what Vangey destroyed." Azoun grew stoic.
"The royal magician did what is best for the realm." He forced himself to meet
Filfaeril's gaze, then said, "We were wrong to shelter the crown princess from
the harsher side of royal life. Even had Aunadar Bleth never set foot in
Suzail, Tanalasta's innocence would have served her poorly on the
throne." Filfaeril lowered her voice to an angry hiss. "And now that
Vangerdahast has stolen her innocence, you do not like the result? Now you
deny her the throne?" "She has not lost the throne yet," said Azoun.
"Tanalasta may still make a fine queen someday-provided she finds a man she
can abide as a husband and stops being so headstrong about this business with
Chauntea." Filfaeril's pale eyes grew as hard as ice. "You and Vangey are the
ones who made her. If you do not like what she has become, then it is your
fault and not hers." The queen finished her wine in a gulp, then held the
empty glass out for a servant. "Besides, how can you be sure she isn't right?
The blight is spreading, you know." "Yes, I know," said Azoun, "and Tanalasta
is defying me in that, as well. There are reports from the Immerflow to the
Starwater of Purple Dragons using Chauntea's magic to save blighted
fields." "Good." Filfaeril gave her glass to a waiter and waved him away, then
thrust another liverpaste under Azoun's chin. "Enjoy." Azoun had no choice but
to accept the loathsome thing. As he began to nibble at it, the queen flashed
a smile to Raynaar Marliir, signaling him to come forward. The king groaned
inwardly, though he knew there was no avoiding this moment. He had heard that
Marliir had put together an odd coalition of nobles, War Wizards, and high
priests who wished to discuss "the destiny of the realm." Though he suspected
they were less interested in discussing destiny than dictating it-specifically
that of the crown princess-he would have to listen politely. The loyalty of
the Marliir family was his strongest bulwark against Arabel's disagreeable
habit of rebelling at the kingdom's most trying moments. Azoun ran his tongue
over his teeth to cleanse them of liverpaste, then smiled as broadly as he
could. "Duke Marliir, how good to see you again. I trust Lady Marliir is
feeling better." "Sadly no," Raynaar answered curtly. "She is still bedridden
with ague, or else she would certainly be in attendance today." They had
exchanged similar greetings on each of the previous four days. After
Tanalasta's rejection of Dauneth, Merelda Marliir had fallen ghastly ill and
asked the royal party to depart her home for the sake of its own health.
Knowing he might well have to return to crush a revolt if he left so soon
after the stir Tanalasta had caused, Azoun had seized on the northern blight
as an excuse to remain another tenday, imposing on his Lord Governor, Myrmeen
Lhal, to house the royal party in the city palace. He had then invited all the
local notables to an extravagant state dinner. They had responded with a chain
of increasingly exotic liverpaste receptions that would, he was quite certain,
be the end of him. Of course, Lady Marliir had been too ill to attend any of
the events, and Azoun was quite certain she would continue to be ill until a
day or two after he left. Azoun allowed Marliir's response to hang in the air
long enough for everyone present to be certain he knew the truth, then said,
"Tell her that I certainly hope she feels better soon." Marliir cocked an
eyebrow at the lack of a "please," then turned to gesture at his odd gathering
of supporters. "I am sure Your Majesty knows these good people: Lady Kraliqh,
Merula the Marvelous, and Daramos the High, of the Lady's House here in
Arabel." "Of course." Azoun smiled at each in turn: the grave-looking Lady
Kraliqh, the rotund Merula, and the zealot-eyed Daramos. Of the three, he knew
the most about Daramos Lauthyr. The man was a fanatic, almost as dedicated to
the glory of his goddess Tymora as he was to establishing a central church in
Arabel, with himself as its divinely-ordained patriarch. Azoun took the
platter from his wife's hand, then held it out to Marliir's odd coalition.
"Liverpaste, anyone? They're quail." The offer seemed to disarm the four. They
exchanged a flurry of startled frowns, then Duke Marliir snatched a wafer off
the plate, and the other three followed suit. Unfortunately, there was one
left. Azoun pushed it toward Filfaeril. "Canape, my dear?" She smiled at him
adoringly, then took the plate from his hand and passed him the wafer. "No,
you can have it, my dear. I'll go and fetch more." Azoun accepted the wafer
and tried not to make a sour face as he bit into it. "Lovely, aren't
they?" "Quite," said Duke Marliir. "Your Majesty, there is something of great
import we must discuss." "Really?" Azoun swallowed, then asked, "What can that
be? If you are worried about this blight, I assure you the War Wizards have
the matter well in hand." "The blight is only a part of it," said Lady
Kraliqh. According to Azoun's spies, her dealings with Duke Marliir were
seldom limited to matters of business. "We are concerned more with the future
of the crown." "The future of the crown?" Azoun feigned a surprised look, but
took note of the lady's no-nonsense tone. She would not be put off easily with
platitudes or vague promises, and he decided not to try. "You are speaking of
Tanalasta, then." "We are concerned about her refusal to take a husband," said
Marliir. "Matters between her and Dauneth seemed to be progressing nicely.
There must be some reason she chose to dismiss him so out of hand. It was
embarrassing, really." "I am the cause of that confusion, Lord Marliir," said
Azoun. "I am so fond of Dauneth myself that others may have misinterpreted my
affection when I asked him to escort Tanalasta to the party. I apologize for
any embarrassment it caused, and I want everyone in Arabel to know I hold him
in the highest regard. In fact, I was thinking of naming him Lord High Warden
of the North." Azoun turned to Duke Marliir. "Do you think he would have time
for the extra duties?" Marliir's jaw dropped. "Of-of course." "Good." Azoun
could see by the man's astonished expression that he had won back the loyalty
of the entire Marliir clan. "Have him stop by the Arabellan Palace tomorrow,
and we shall discuss the arrangements." "That is very nice for Dauneth," said
Lady Kraliqh, "but it still does not address our concerns about the future of
the crown. After all, I know that when a woman reaches a certain age, it grows
difficult for her to bear children." "Truly? Then you must look very young for
your age-and Tanalasta is even younger than you appear. I doubt there is any
need to worry about her ability to provide an heir when she has not even tried
yet... or if she has, she has not seen fit to tell her father about it!" Azoun
winked as he said this last, drawing a raucous chuckle from everyone but Lady
Kraliqh. He looked away, trying to catch the eye of some other notable before
his growing irritation with the woman got the best of him. "If that is all you
are worried about," the king continued, "I believe I see-" "There is another
matter, Majesty," interrupted Merula. The wizard did not wait for an
acknowledgement before continuing. "This unfortunate business of the Royal
Temple. Perhaps the princess has not given thought to the question of where
the loyalties of her royal priests might lie. A servant with two masters
cannot help having divided loyalties." "And yet the realm might benefit
immensely by courting the blessing of the gods," said Daramos. "Tymora has
always shown great favor to Cormyr. Had she not taken refuge here during the
Time of Troubles, surely the realm would have suffered more than it did." "No
one can argue that her presence proved a blessing," agreed Azoun, "but I
hardly think that calls for a royal temple." The veins in Daramos's eyes grew
as wide as string, and before Azoun could finish what he had been about to
say, the high priest burst into a fit of righteous indignation. "After the
kindness Tymora showed your kingdom, you would insult her by establishing a
royal temple to Chauntea instead?" Daramos backed away, his face trembling and
turning crimson with a zealot's rage. "Do not anger the Lady, little king!
Fortune has two faces, and only one is pretty." The threat silenced the
reception almost instantly, and a trio of bodyguards stepped forward to flank
the high priest. "This is what I was talking about, Majesty," said Merula. As
the wizard spoke, he was returning a small glass rod to the sleeve pocket
inside his cloak. Apparently, he had feared for a moment that Daramos was
actually deranged enough to attack the king. "Priests cannot be trusted. They
must beg their spells from their gods, and so they always serve at the
pleasure of those fields masters." "We thank you for your opinion, Merula."
Silently, Azoun cursed Daramos's outburst, and wondered just how obsessed the
man was. Because of the goddess Tymora's stay during the Time of Troubles, the
Lady's House had almost as much power in Arabel as did his own governing lord,
and it simply would not do to have Daramos Lauthyr angry-not unless Azoun
wanted to crush another Arabellan revolt. He waved the guards back, then said,
"The Lord High Priest's point is well taken. Though the princess and I have
had little time to discuss the matter, there will be no royal temple in
Cormyr-to Chauntea or anyone else." The redness began to drain from Daramos's
face, but the man looked far from calm. "Of course you are right about the
other gods, Majesty, but Tymora has blessed the Obarskyrs for more than a
thousand years." "Which is why I would never dishonor her by establishing a
royal temple," said Azoun. Daramos looked confused. "Dishonor her?" "Tymora
took refuge here in Arabel during the Time of Troubles, but the capital of
Cormyr is Suzail," Azoun said. "I cannot help but think it would offend her to
establish a greater temple in the South. I was under the impression that she
wished your own temple to be the center of her faith." Daramos's eyes lit in
alarm. "I see what you mean, Majesty." Azoun shrugged sadly, then turned to
Merula. "I am afraid you are right, Merula. Cormyr will have to do without a
royal temple after all." A wry smile came to the wizard's lips, and he said,
"Then I guess you have only the War Wizards to rely upon for your magic." "It
would appear so," Azoun replied. "It is a good thing for the realm that they
have proven themselves so many times through the ages. I would hate to think
what might become of Cormyr without them." "It would be a travesty,
undoubtedly," said Lady Kraliqh. "Which brings us back to the question of
Tanalasta. There will be no Royal Temple while you reign, Majesty, but what of
when you are gone-may that be a hundred years from now?" Azoun forced a smile
and turned to the duchess. "Lady Kraliqh, you are so bad at guessing ages that
I am beginning to think your eyes have grown weak," he joked, trying to guess
what it would take to placate her. "Even with the many blessings of Daramos's
goddess, I doubt I will see another twenty years." "Which is all the more
reason to answer my question now." As Lady Kraliqh spoke, she stepped aside to
make room in the conversation circle for Filfaeril, who was returning with a
fresh platter of minted liverpaste. "Of late, Tanalasta has proven herself to
be a most intelligent and strong-willed princess. I doubt very much that even
you could bend her to your will from the grave. What do you intend to do about
that?" "Yes, Azoun," said Filfaeril, offering the canapé platter to Marliir
and the others. "What will you do then?" Azoun glanced around the little group
and saw that despite the concessions he had made already, he would find no
help from them. Tanalasta had returned from Huthduth stronger and full of her
own ideas, and that scared them far more than the possibility of someone like
Aunadar Bleth ruling from the shadow of her skirts. It scared him, too. "While
I am king, I'll rule the way I think best-and that includes choosing a fit
heir," he said, waving off the canapés "Once I have chosen, it will be up to
Cormyr to live with her queen." Filfaeril smiled, then thrust the platter into
the Lady Kraliqh's astonished hands. "Will you have someone take these away?"
she said. "The king hates minted liverpaste." 5 A searing wind full of grit
and ash howled south out of the Stonelands, rolling up the northern face of
the Storm Horns in throat-scorching clouds as thick as fog. Through the haze
came the distant clang of sword-on-sword and voices cursing in guttural Orcish
and civilized Common. Tanalasta could sometimes glimpse small gray figures
scurrying about hacking and slashing at one another. She recognized the
stooped postures of orcs pressing the attack and the more upright forms of men
defending an egg-shaped ring of blocky shapes that could only be wagons. The
orcs had caught the caravan at the edge of the plain, where the Stonebolt
Trail descended out of the mountains to start across the empty barrens toward
Shadowdale. The location was a favorite place for such raids, as it was where
the hot wind sweeping south out of the distant Anauroch Desert crashed into
the Storm Horn Mountains and dropped its load of airborne sand. The result was
a mile-wide band of boulder-strewn sandlands that slowed wagon travel to a
crawl. "A largely band of swiners," observed Vangerdahast. "Aye," agreed Ryban
Winter. A rugged-faced man of about Tanalasta's age, Ryban was the lionar of
her Purple Dragon bodyguard. He spit a mouthful of grit onto the ground, then
added, "Though this stonemurk makes it hard to be certain." "There are at
least two hundred of them," Vangerdahast said. He pointed at the ring of
wagons, the presence of which was the only visible indication of the Stonebolt
Trail's existence. "That is no small caravan. The orcs wouldn't have attacked
unless they outnumbered the guards." "Then the caravan must need help."
Tanalasta turned to the royal magician and added, "Are we going to do
something? Or is this just another of your ruses, Vangerdahast?" "What could I
hope to gain by something like this?" Vangerdahast cast her a menacing glance,
then turned to Ryban. "Take the princess and go around. I'll scare the swiners
off and join you in an hour." "Scare them off?" Tanalasta asked. "And let them
attack some other caravan? I think not. We'll destroy that orc band now-before
it gets to be an army." Vangerdahast scowled. "That is easier for a princess
to say than a wizard to do. Even I can't kill that many orcs without getting
the caravaneers, too." "You don't have to," said Tanalasta. "We have
twenty-five Purple Dragons with us. Lionar Ryban will stay here on the
mountain with twenty men while we ride around behind the orcs and drive them
up the hill away from the caravan." Ryban looked doubtful. "Two hundred
against twenty? In this murk?" "The murk will be to your advantage. The orcs
won't know how many of you there are," Tanalasta said. "You need only slow
them long enough for Vangey to come up from behind, then you'll want to ride
fast and furious anyway. I really don't see you sticking around to fire more
than a volley or two of arrows." Ryban raised his brow and turned to
Vangerdahast. "No," said the wizard. "Too much can go wrong. We can't take the
risk-not with the princess here." A cry arose from the battlefield, and
Tanalasta glimpsed a dozen orc silhouettes pushing a caravan dray onto its
side. A trio of men jumped out from behind the toppled wagon and laid into
their foes with sword and spell, then the scene vanished into the
stonemurk. "Would Alusair settle for just scaring them off?" Tanalasta
asked. "You are not Alusair." "And I am no longer the crown princess,"
Tanalasta said, prompting a startled look from Ryban. "We could talk all day
about what I am not, but that will not stop those orcs." She turned to the
lionar and held out her arm. "Give me a sword." Vangerdahast caught hold of
her wrist. "The king did not say he had made a final decision. I'm sure he is
eager to reconsider, if you'll only accommodate some of his views." "Would
those accommodations include relinquishing the Royal Temple?" Vangerdahast
nodded. "Of course, but the king has made it clear you must choose a husband
of your own liking." "How very kind of the king, but I think we can take his
decision as final. Unless he is willing to accommodate my views, I won't be
assuming the crown." Tanalasta turned to Ryban, wondering if she were speaking
too quickly. Her vision had foretold specifically only the consequences of
marrying badly, but she felt now that it concerned her ability to stand behind
all of her decisions. "You may give me that sword, lionar. Alusair is the one
who will be needing special protection now." Ryban glanced at
Vangerdahast. "Why are you looking at him, Ryban?" Tanalasta demanded. "I am
the royal here. You answer to me-as does Vangerdahast, when it suits him to
recall it." Ryban clenched his jaw at the rebuke, but drew his sword from its
scabbard. "As you command." He laid the blade across his forearm and offered
the hilt to her. Tanalasta leaned across the space between their horses and
took the heavy weapon from his hand, then traced a quick guarding pattern in
the air. The balance was not quite as refined as the epees she used in the
palace's gymnasium, but it was a well-made officer's blade that would serve
her nicely. When Ryban raised his brow, the princess laughed and said, "Don't
look so surprised, lionar. I may not be Alusair, but I am an Obarskyr. I've
been fencing since I could stand." Ryban's astonishment changed to concern.
"This will be a little different, milady. Have you ever fought orcs
before?" "Not unless you count Aunadar Bleth." Tanalasta chuckled at the
lionar's uncomfortable expression, then said, "Perhaps you care to offer a few
suggestions." "That would be a waste of time," growled Vangerdahast. He guided
his horse around so that he was facing Tanalasta, then plucked the sword from
her hand and returned it to Ryban. "She won't be needing this." Tanalasta
fixed him with her most commanding glare. "Then the king has changed his mind
about the royal temple?" "I doubt that very much, but if you insist on doing
this, I won't have you risking the lives of good men with this nonsense about
swinging a sword yourself." The wizard angled a gnarled finger down across the
hillside, to where a high outcropping of granite overlooked the west side of
the battlefield, and said, "You will wait down there with five of Ryban's best
men. if an orc comes within a hundred paces of you, the dragoneers will take
you-by force, if necessary-and flee westward at a full gallop. Do you
understand?" Tanalasta bristled at Vangerdahast's tone, but one glimpse of the
relief in Ryban's eyes confirmed that the lionar shared the wizard's concerns.
Silently, she thanked the goddess for sparing her what she felt certain would
have been more adventure than she really wanted. Though Tanalasta was
determined to play the reckless princess and force Vangerdahast's hand, she
was also smart enough to realize that ten-to-one odds might be a bit ambitious
for her first battle-even with the royal magician along to even things
out. Putting on a defiant air, Tanalasta turned to the lionar. "Is that your
recommendation as well, Lionar?" "It is," he said. "No offense to your fencing
skill, Princess, but swiners don't play by the rules. Your presence would be a
burden on us all." Tanalasta let her shoulders slump. "Very well." Her
disappointment was not entirely feigned, for she had often envied the
marvelous combat tales her younger sister brought home from each journey into
the Stonelands. "You may send two men to accompany me. If I am not to take
part in the fighting, you will have greater need of the extra swords than
I." Vangerdahast scowled at this reduction of guards, but reluctantly held his
tongue and nodded toward her saddlebags. "You have the rod and bracers I gave
you?" he asked. "And the rings as well?" Tanalasta put her hand into her cloak
pocket and found the rings in their special pouches, then slipped them
on. "Don't worry. I'll take every precaution." She waved her fingers to
display the rings. "I wouldn't want anyone to trouble themselves about me. In
fact, I can even recall that spell you taught me to keep bears at
bay." Vangerdahast looked surprised. "And it is prepared to use?" "If I must."
Tanalasta ran her hands through the necessary gestures. "You see? Our time
together wasn't altogether wasted." "Life never ceases to be a wonder-even at
my age." Vangerdahast shook his head in amazement. "Perhaps we'll make a war
wizard of you yet, if you remain determined not to be queen." With that, the
royal magician turned his horse away and galloped off to circle around behind
the battle. Ryban quickly sent three Purple Dragons along to offer
hand-to-hand support, then assigned a pair of riders to escort
Tanalasta. Tanalasta and her companions dismounted and led their horses across
the slope on foot. The foothills were as barren as the sandlands below, save
that the ground here was as jagged and rocky as the heart of the Stonelands,
and any orc who happened to glance up at a clear moment would see a trio of
riders crossing the hillside. Proceeding on foot hardly guaranteed that this
would not happen, but at least they would be harder to notice with a lower
profile. The princess did not worry at all about the clatter their horses made
on the rocky ground. Even she could barely hear it above all the clanging and
shouting below. As Tanalasta approached her assigned station, the stone-murk
grew steadily thinner, and she realized Vangerdahast had not chosen her post
solely to keep her out of harm's way. While the outcropping dropped away in a
sheer cliff on its three downhill sides, it was also close enough to the
fighting to offer a good view of the battle. She guessed there were close to
two hundred and fifty stoop-backed figures trying to clamber over an irregular
oval of toppled and burning wagons. Inside this defensive barrier stood no
more than fifty caravan guards, hacking at their attackers with swords, axes,
and the occasional lightning bolt or flame tongue, struggling to defend a
small knot of women, children, and cursing merchants huddled together in the
center of the circle. Several women and most of the merchants were clutching
wooden spears, ready to charge any swiners that broke through the guards'
perimeter. Judging by the number of bodies both human and orc that lay
scattered across the tiny circle, they had been called upon several times
already. The princess saw no signs of dray beasts. The creatures had either
been cut free or dragged away by the orcs. The trio tethered their horses out
of sight behind the rim of the cliff. Tanalasta opened her saddlebags, slipped
her bracers onto her wrists, and grabbed her little black baton, then led the
way forward on hands and knees. Though she had never had occasion to use
either the bracers or the baton before, she had practiced with them a few
times and knew how to use their magic. She considered it a testament to the
danger of the Stonelands that before leaving Arabel, Vangerdahast had made a
point of requisitioning so much magic for her from the armory of the Purple
Dragons. When he had dropped her off in Huthduth, he had given her nothing
more than a magic dagger-no doubt because he had expected her to contact him
within a tenday and demand to be instantly teleported home. Only the
determination to prove him wrong had given her the strength to abide that
first month of boredom, before she had discovered the joy of hard, honest
work. The princess reached the rim of the cliff to find a stream of orcs
pouring between two toppled wagons, stampeding over the fallen bodies of four
burly caravan guards. A quavering battle yell rose from the women and
merchants huddled together in the center of the circle, and they edged forward
to meet their foes. Tanalasta fingered her signet ring, then pictured the
royal magician's face inside her mind. "Vangerdahast?" He came into view, a
faint gray silhouette two hundred paces beyond the caravan, rising from behind
a sandy ridge, swinging a wooden staff over his head and flinging a ball of
fire into the air. The sphere arced over the wagons and crashed down in the
heart of the orcs' charge, licking out around their crooked legs and curling
skyward in a flash of scarlet. The swiners disintegrated into columns of sooty
black smoke and writhing heaps of ash, and on the wind came the anguished
squeals of the dying. A trio of blackened swiners stumbled from the
conflagration haloed in fumes and flame. A swarm of women and merchants were
on them instantly, thrusting and jabbing with their spears until the orcs
collapsed in burning heaps. Yes? Vangerdahast's voice came to Tanalasta inside
her head. I'm rather busy now, if it isn't important. The wizard leveled his
staff, and half a dozen forks of lightning struck down a mob of orcs trying to
overturn a heavy wagon. On the opposite side of the circle, Tanalasta noticed
another throng about to overpower a trio of weary caravan guards. Trouble on
the right-er, your left. Tanalasta spoke the words within her head. About half
way down. I can see everything from up here. Of course. Did you think I only
meant to rob you of the fun? Vangerdahast thrust his staff into its saddle
holster, then pulled something from the sleeve pocket of his robe and flicked
his fingers in the indicated direction. A yellowish mist appeared over the orc
throng and settled groundward. Any warrior touched by the haze let the weapon
slip from his grasp and collapsed in an unmoving heap. For the sake of the
caravan guards, Tanalasta hoped the cloud had been sleep magic and not a death
spell. The support riders finally appeared behind Vangerdahast, their bodies
pressed tight to the necks of their galloping mounts as the beasts struggled
in vain to keep pace with the royal magician's peerless stallion. The men
carried swords in their hands and wore bucklers fastened to their arms, but it
seemed to Tanalasta that by the time they caught the wizard, their poor horses
would be too exhausted to carry the fight. As Vangerdahast closed to within a
hundred paces of the battle, he drew his staff from its holster again. He
tucked the back end under his arm and began to swing the tip back and forth,
casting crackling bolts of lightning down one side of the wagon circle and
sizzling meteors along the other. Orcs dropped by the dozens, and soon the
ones at his end of the circle began to fall back in confusion. The weary
caravan guards paused long enough to glance in his direction and raise their
swords in thanks, then rushed to help their hard-pressed companions closer to
Tanalasta's end of the fight. It did not take the angry orcs long to determine
the source of their trouble. As Vangerdahast closed to within seventy paces of
the wagons, a large swiner on the right began squealing commands and shoving
his fellows toward the charging wizard. Ignoring the constant stream of death
flying at them from the end of Vangerdahast's staff, more than fifty orc
warriors streamed forward to place themselves between the royal magician and
the caravan. Vangerdahast veered off to attack from another angle. Wrong way!
Tanalasta warned. The leader's on the other side. If you can- I know... what
to do! Vangerdahast's retort was labored. I was winning... battles for
Cormyr... before your father was king! The royal magician reined his horse
around, angling across the plain toward the opposite side of the caravan. A
boisterous cheer rose from the orcs who had gathered to stop him, but
Vangerdahast quickly demonstrated their error by lobbing a fireball into their
midst. The wizard's support riders cut the corner and finally caught up to
their ward, taking positions to the rear and on both flanks. The orc leader
glared in Vangerdahast's direction, then pushed more of its fellows forward
and scurried off at an angle. When the wizard did not adjust his course,
Tanalasta realized that either his view was blocked or he was having trouble
separating the leader from the orcs around it. A pie slice to the right,
Tanalasta ordered. A pie slice? Despite his mocking tone, the wizard reined
his horse hard to the right. I said a slice, not a whole quarter! Tanalasta
corrected. The size of Vangerdahast's belly should have given her a clearer
idea as to what he considered a slice. The orc you want is larger than the
rest, with a blocky head and pointed muzzle. Got him! A bolt of lightning
crackled from the tip of Vangerdahast's staff, blasting apart a simple warrior
whom the leader happened to shove forward at that moment. The commander hurled
himself to the ground and disappeared into the swirl around him. The wizard
loosed another spell from his staff, engulfing the entire area in a huge
fireball. Vangerdahast and his companions reached the wall of swords and tusks
the leader had been shoving forward to stop them. The wizard paid the swiners
no attention at all, simply urging his mount onward as orcish steel shattered
against his horse's breast. His companions, lacking his magic shielding, had
to rely upon more conventional defenses, pushing through the wall in a flurry
of slashing blades and flashing hooves. Once they were past, Vangerdahast
wheeled around long enough to spray the orc wall with a stream of flame, then
worked his way toward the wagons at a walk, scattering orcs before him with
bolt and flame-and sometimes with a mere wave of the staff. The wizard's
escorts had nothing to do but sit on their horses and look mean. Their foes
did not dare approach close enough to engage. The caravan guards were just
starting to drag a wagon aside to let Vangerdahast into the circle when
Tanalasta noticed the orc commander crouching behind a small boulder, wetting
the tips of several long spears in an earthenware vessel. A handful of orc
warriors were peering over the top of the boulder, nervously watching
Vangerdahast and holding the spears their leader had already dipped. Vangey,
the leader's still alive, Tanalasta warned. Behind you about twenty paces, a
little to the left. The wizard stopped his horse and gestured for the
merchants to close their perimeter. Small slice or a large one? About an
eighth of the pie, Tanalasta replied. Behind that boulder where they're
bunching up. Be careful. They've got spears, and they're dipping the tips in
something. Vangerdahast's only reply was a chuckle. He returned his war staff
to its saddle holster, then took the shield from one of his support riders and
passed his hand over it. Tanalasta could not see what he was sprinkling on it,
but she did see his lips moving as he uttered the incantation. The orcs began
to regain their wits, forming a broad semi-circle around Vangerdahast and his
three companions. Vangerdahast paid them no attention, continuing to pass his
hand over the buckler and mouth arcane syllables. This seemed to distress his
foes far more than his death-flinging staff, a fact Tanalasta suspected the
wizard of intentionally playing up. While he undoubtedly knew many spells that
took this long to cast, he was far too cunning to use one in the middle of a
combat. A nervous squalling began to arise from the ranks of the orcs. Twice,
a handful of brave warriors attempted to initiate a general charge, only to
stop dead in their tracks the moment the royal magician looked in their
direction. At last, Vangerdahast pressed his hand to the face of the shield
and fell silent. I take it Ryban and his company are ready? Tanalasta glanced
up the slope, where she could barely see the silhouettes of Ryban and his
Purple Dragons. They were spread across the crest of the hill with their
horse-bows in hand and their quivers hanging from their saddle horns. To a
man, they were craning their necks toward the plain, peering through the
stonemurk to track what little they could of the battle's progress. They're
ready, Tanalasta said. You might even say eager. Vangerdahast nodded, then
began to swing the shield back and forth, as though he were a water diviner
seeking the best place to dig a well. Each time the shield swung past, the
orcs in the semi-circle would mewl in alarm and cower on the ground. Then,
once it had drifted past, they would leap to their feet and make a great show
of shouting and waving their swords at the wizard. Unfortunately, the rest of
the tribe was experiencing no such reluctance. Axe-wielding warriors were
slowly returning to the sections of perimeter Vangerdahast had cleared
earlier, while the orcs at Tanalasta's end of the caravan seemed to be hurling
themselves at the wagons more ferociously than ever. Already, Tanalasta could
see exhausted guards kneeling in wagon beds or bracing themselves against the
wheels, using both hands to swing swords that even she could have wielded with
one hand. Tanalasta was about to urge Vangerdahast to get on with the attack
when she glimpsed a large bird streaking out of the western sky. The creature
was a mere blur in the stonemurk, and the princess could tell little about it,
save that it appeared far larger than any eagle she had ever seen and flew
faster than a falcon on the hunt. It descended in a steep dive, then suddenly
circled away from the battle and vanished behind a sandy ridge. "What was that
thing?" Tanalasta asked. "What thing?" asked one of her guards. "Didn't you
see it?" She pointed in the direction the bird had vanished. "It was a huge
bird, twice the size of an eagle-and fast. Very fast." "Probably just a
vulture, Princess," said the second guard. "They're drawn to the smell of
battle." "This was larger than any vulture," Tanalasta retorted. "And vultures
aren't that fast." The guards exchanged knowing glances, then the first said,
"The stonemurk has a way of playing tricks on your eyes, milady. It's nothing
to worry about." Though it angered her to be condescended to, especially when
neither guard had seen what she was talking about, the princess saw no use in
arguing. Whatever the thing was, it had apparently wanted no part of the
battle. Tanalasta swallowed her irritation and returned her attention to
Vangerdahast, who finally seemed to be tiring of theatrics. As the wizard
swung his ensorcelled shield past the ore commander's hiding place, he slowed,
then swung the buckler back toward the boulder and stopped. The orcs around
the leader began to trill nervously. The leader sat up to peer over the top of
the boulder. Vangerdahast set his heels to the flanks of his mount, and the
big stallion sprang to a gallop so quickly the wizard was halfway to the
boulder before his escorts urged their own mounts after him. The orc commander
rose and began to gesture wildly at Vangerdahast. The spearmen rushed out from
behind the boulder and arrayed themselves before their leader, jamming the
butts of their weapons into the ground and angling the tips toward the
wizard's charging horse. In the name of the king! Vangerdahast started to haul
back on the reins, then seemed to change his mind and dropped his shield,
pressing himself close to the neck of his mount. You said spears, not
pikes! Before Tanalasta could reply, one of her guards cursed, "By the iron
glove!" "Is he trying to impale himself?" demanded the other. Tanalasta
cringed and started to look away-then recalled how the orcs' brittle swords
had snapped against the horse's chest earlier. "He'll be fine," she said,
expecting the wizard to barrel straight through the barricade of poisoned
tips. Instead, the magnificent stallion leaped skyward, then continued to
gallop through the air as though its hooves were on solid ground. As the horse
passed over the astonished orcs, Vangerdahast pulled something from his pocket
and sprinkled it on his foes. The terrified swiners dropped their pikes and
leaped to their feet, brushing at their scalps and screeching in fear. They
did not die until Vangerdahast's support riders arrived to cut them down in a
tempest of whirling horses and slashing steel. So furious was the attack that
Tanalasta did not realize until an instant later that only two escorts were
involved in the assault. The third lay back at the wagon circle, his chest
opened by a gaping wound visible even from the princess's perch. The man's
horse was a few feet from the body, stumbling around in fear and tossing its
head. Tanalasta had no time to ask her companions if they had seen what
happened. Vangerdahast's mount dropped down behind the orc leader, prompting
the huge swiner to turn and sprint across the sandy ground so fast it took
even the royal magician's powerful horse a full second to catch up. By then,
Vangerdahast had once again drawn his staff from its saddle holster and
lowered it like a lance. Tanalasta expected to see some spell blast the orc's
skull into a spray of blood and bone, but Vangerdahast simply aimed his lance
at the back of his quarry's head and allowed the momentum of his charge to
drive it home. The leader sailed half a dozen paces before finally crashing to
the ground in a limp heap. The royal magician reined his horse to a stop and
wheeled around to face the caravan. The orcs began to scatter, wailing and
screeching as though their demonic lord had risen from the pits of the Abyss.
A couple of well-placed fireballs helped the panic along, then the swiners on
Vangerdahast's side of the battle broke and fled en masse. The wizard threw up
a pair of fire curtains to force them toward Ryban's hiding place on the
mountain, then started around the caravan to rout the warriors on the opposite
side of the caravan. A black streak shot from beneath a burning dray wagon,
then seemed to explode into a crescent-shaped phantom of darkness. Before
Tanalasta registered that this was the same huge bird she had seen earlier,
the shadow sprang into the air and struck one of Vangerdahast's escorts full
in the flank. The rider's torso simply fell off, leaving the man's terrified
horse to gallop off with his seat still in the saddle and his boots still
jammed into the stirrups. The phantom was on the second escort even as the man
turned to see what had become of his companion. The dragoneer vanished beneath
the thing's black wings, still struggling to bring his sword around. His horse
emerged an instant later, saddle gone and blood pouring from three long gashes
in its flank. "Helm guard us!" gasped one of Tanalasta's guards. "'What is
that thing?" "You called it a vulture," Tanalasta remarked bitterly. When
Vangerdahast continued forward, oblivious to what had just happened behind
him, she pictured his face in her mind. Vangerdahast, behind you! It's some
sort of demon, or... Tanalasta did not finish, for even as she sent the
warning, the phantom was spinning to look in her direction. The thing seemed a
grotesque fusion of woman and wasp, with a powerful torso, impossibly small
waist, and long sticklike limbs folded into inhuman shapes. Its hair was as
smoky and black as its eyes were white and blazing, and the princess could
just make out the crescent of a yellow-fanged smile. Tanalasta, stay
still. The princess glanced back to Vangerdahast and saw the wizard struggling
to wheel his galloping horse around. He leveled his staff at the phantom and
unleashed a brilliant bolt of emerald light, but the creature was already
launching itself into the air. The streak blasted to ground where the thing
had been half an instant before, hurling the mangled remains of the second
rider in every direction. The phantom's wings pounded the air, catapulting it
over the caravan toward Tanalasta's hiding place. Already, the princess could
see a pair of naked female breasts and ten ebony talons curling from the ends
of the thing's slender fingers. A small flaming orb sizzled up from
Vangerdahast's direction to strike the creature full in the flank. It veered
slightly, then lowered its dark wings and streaked away, leaving the wizard's
sphere to explode into a roiling ball of flame. As the thing drew closer, the
princess could make out the narrow blade of a nose and a long haggish chin
smeared with red gore. An unaccustomed fury rose up inside Tanalasta, and
suddenly she could think of little more than slaying her foe. She jumped to
her feet and thrust a hand into her cloak pocket, in her excitement fumbling
for the steel Peacemaker's rod Vangerdahast had given her. To her amazement,
she felt no fear at all, only a thrilling blood-lust that filled her with a
strange euphoria and muddled her thoughts. Could this be the battle rapture
Alusair was always talking about? One of Tanalasta's guards grabbed her collar
and pushed her toward the horses. "Run!" The dragoneer's shove brought
Tanalasta back to her senses, and she was seized by a queasy terror as she
recalled how easily the phantom had slain Vangerdahast's escorts. She stumbled
back two steps, then stopped when her guards drew their swords and stepped
forward to meet the phantom at the edge of the cliff "Don't be fools-retreat!"
Tanalasta yelled. She released the steel rod and pulled her hand from her
pocket, then began to fidget with one of the rings Vangerdahast had given her
in Arabel. "Now!" The guards did not obey. They merely roared their battle
cries and raised their swords, and it was too late. The phantom swooped over
the rim of the outcropping, impaling one man on along talon and batting the
other off the cliff and continuing toward Tanalasta at lightning speed. She
pointed her ring at the ground, commanding, "Dragon's wall!" Tanalasta felt a
sharp pain in her finger, then a shimmering wall of force sprang up between
her and the phantom. A muffled whump reverberated across the outcropping, and
the creature was hanging in the air before her, its night black wings spread
across the horizon on the other side of the magic barrier. The phantom gave an
ear-piercing scream, and its white eyes turned human and ladylike. The
darkness drained from its face, revealing the visage of a handsome noblewoman
about the same age as Queen Filfaeril. Tanalasta staggered away from the
inexplicable apparition, so shocked and terrified that she forgot to
run. Vangerdahast's voice came to her. Tanalasta? The phantom pulled its head
free of the magic wall and turned toward the wizard. Tanalasta's heart sank as
she realized the implications. The creature could hear their
thought-talk. Answer me! The phantom pulled a wing free of the barrier, and
Tanalasta's sense of danger came flooding back. Quiet, you old fool! The
princess turned toward the horses. Then suddenly Vangerdahast was there before
her, sitting on his stallion between her and her own horse, swaying and
blinking with teleport after daze. Tanalasta glanced back and saw the phantom
springing over the top of her magic wall, its face once again a mask of
gore-dripping darkness. Tanalasta spun around, stretching an arm in its
direction and slapping the opposite hand down on her wrist bracer. "King's
bolts!" A searing pain shot through her hand, and four bolts of golden magic
streaked toward the phantom's chest. The creature's wing curled around in a
blur of darkness, and the bolts erupted against it in a series of dazzling
yellow flashes. The appendage turned briefly translucent, revealing a fanlike
network of finger-thick bones, then began to darken again. Vangerdahast's
staff tapped Tanalasta's shoulder. "You have proven your point, Princess," he
said. "Now why don't you leave your old fool to have his fun with this nasty
wench?" Too tired to trade banter, Tanalasta merely nodded and sprinted to her
horse, pulling herself into the saddle as the wizard's first spell cracked
across the outcropping behind her. She leaned down to free the reins of the
dead guards' mounts, then glimpsed the phantom hurling toward Vangerdahast in
a blazing ball of white fury. He turned his staff horizontal and raised it in
front of him. A hedge of silver-tipped thorn bushes sprang up to intercept his
shrieking attacker. Tanalasta started to turn her mount toward the rest of the
company, but saw a horde of orcs streaming up the mountain and realized she
would never reach them alive. Praying to the goddess that Ryban could see what
was happening on the outcropping, she turned in the opposite direction and
urged her mount to flee. The terrified beast sprang up the rocky slope as
though it were a mountain goat, and the last thing Tanalasta heard behind her
was Vangerdahast's astonished curse: "What gutterspawning succubus hatched
you?" 6 The royal wizard was frightened, of course-only a fool wouldn't have
been-but he was also mad with fury. His heart was hammering in his chest,
pounding like it had not pounded in seventy years. Every beat urged him to
battle, to pelt the phantom with bolt and blaze, to attack and keep attacking
until he reduced the thing to a scorch mark on the cliff top. Never before had
Vangerdahast experienced such a combat rage, and he did not understand where
it came from now. Vangerdahast had warned Azoun a dozen times that battles
were won not through anger, but through cold, emotionless calculation, and now
here the wizard was himself, fighting as hard to control his own emotions as
to defeat the enemy. It was unnerving, really. The remnants of his last
harmless lightning bolt were still tracing crooks of transparency across the
phantom's leathery wing, and the wizard caught himself lowering his staff to
cast the same useless spell again. Damned unnerving. Vangerdahast threw his
staff down and slipped a hand into the sleeve of his robe. In the second he
needed to find the tiny pocket where he stored his spider web, the phantom
peered over its furled wing and sprang. Vangerdahast's mount bolted, nearly
catapulting him from the saddle. The phantom banked, herding the terrified
horse toward the rim of the cliff. The wizard pulled his hand from his sleeve,
flicking a ball of web in the dark thing's direction, then yelling his
incantation. At the first sound of Vangerdahast's voice, the phantom furled
its wings and dropped to the ground. As it fell, a huge tangle of sticky
fibers blossomed around it, completely engulfing the creature in an amorphous
mass of white filaments. Vangerdahast's horse drew up short at the edge of the
outcropping, pitching him forward out of the saddle. Cursing his mount for a
witless coward, the wizard made a desperate grab for the beast's mane as he
tumbled over its head, then found himself plummeting toward a sandy dune a
hundred feet below. Vangerdahast experienced a fierce nettling as his
weathercloak's magic triggered itself, then the cape's lapels spread outward
to create a sort of crude sail. He fluttered to the ground not far from the
guard who had been batted off the outcropping earlier. The poor fellow had
landed headfirst in the sand, burying himself to the shoulders, then snapping
his neck as he fell onto his back. A bloody crease angling across his
breastplate marked where the phantom's powerful wing had struck. Vangerdahast
spun away and pulled a wing feather from inside his robe. Still consumed by
his strange fury he uttered a quick spell and extended his arms, then sprang
into the air, telling himself that be had a good reason for returning to the
battle before checking on Tanalasta. He needed to know where the phantom had
come from. He needed to know why it had aided a petty tribe of orcs. He needed
to kill the thing before it shredded his magical web. He needed that most of
all. The wizard rose swiftly, flying close to the outcropping so his foe would
not see him. As he ascended, he heard clanging swords and whinnying horses
farther up the mountainside. For some reason he could not fathom, Ryban had
engaged the orcs instead of fleeing them as planned. Cursing the man for an
over-brave dunce, Vangerdahast touched the throat clasp of his weather-cloak.
When the brass began to tingle beneath his fingers, he pictured Ryban's
face. Unless you are defending Tanalasta already, disengage and go to
her! Can't find the princess, and wouldn't run if we could, came Ryban's
reply. See you in Everwatch! The throat clasp became cold and dead beneath
Vangerdahast's fingertips, and he grew faintly aware of feeling both mournful
and perplexed. It was not like the lionar to neglect his duty, nor to think he
could reach Everwatch by disregarding an order. Everwatch was the celestial
palace of Helm the Watcher, and only the most faithful guardians could expect
to spend eternity there. Vangerdahast circled around to come up on the
opposite side of the outcropping from where he had plunged off, then stepped
onto the cliff top. He found his magic web dissolving into a gummy morass of
translucent gray silk, beneath which lay the form of a shapely female spine
flanked by the bases of two leathery white wings. Little more could be seen of
the figure. It seemed to be curled into a ball, with its neck and shoulders
hunched forward, its legs drawn up in front of it, and its wings wrapped
securely around its body. Vangerdahast crept forward, fighting to regain
control of his emotions before he attacked. The butt of his war staff was
sticking out from beneath the gummy mess. The phantom did not seem to be
struggling, but the web was dissolving far too quickly, shriveling down around
the creature like some sort of cocoon. He summoned to mind the incantation of
a spell as deadly as it was quick and stopped five paces away. The white wings
twitched, then a breathy voice rasped, "Well done, wizard. Not many capture a
ghazneth and live to tell of it. What is it you wish?" "Ghazneth?" "Is that
your wish?" the phantom asked. "To know what I am?" The web continued to
contract around the ghazneth-or whatever the monster was. Vangerdahast aimed
his finger at the phantom's back. "Among other things, yes." "What other
things?" The ghazneth's voice was beginning to sound vaguely human-feminine,
actually, with an oddly archaic Cormyrean accent. "You receive only one wish,
you know." "I am not the one with a death finger aimed at my back,"
Vangerdahast replied. "Nor do I want any wish of mine granted by the likes of
you. I will ask and you will answer. If you are honest, perhaps I will send
you back to the hell you came from, rather than allow your rotting corpse to
pollute this land." The ghazneth's wings flexed ever so slightly-just enough
for Vangerdahast to notice that the thing was not as trapped as it would have
him believe-then it said, "A wish for no wish. An odd thing to desire, but
granted." "I asked for nothing," Vangerdahast snarled, all too aware of how
the phantom was trying to twist his words around. The trick angered the wizard
so greatly he nearly unleashed his death spell. "I owe you nothing." "Not
true." The web had contracted now to a mere glove around the ghazneth's body.
Vangerdahast stepped forward to retrieve his war staff, then quickly stepped
back when he noticed the black beginning to creep along the edges of the
creature's wings. "You owe me more than you know, Vangerdahast," the ghazneth
continued, "and you are going to pay-you and Cormyr." "Vangerdahast? You honor
me too much, ghazneth. I'm just a simple war wizard." "Be careful of the lies
you tell," said the ghazneth. "Or you'll end up like me." "As unnecessary as
that advice is, I'll certainly keep it in mind," Vangerdahast said, more
determined than ever to deny his name. The thing was beginning to sound like a
demon, and it was never a good idea to admit one's name to a demon. "Where did
you say you knew Vangerdahast from? I'll be glad to inform him of his
debt." "I may speak of the matter with Vangerdahast and no other." The
ghazneth's body began to glisten with a glossy sheen, all that remained of
Vangerdahast's dissolving web spell. "But you may tell him this much: if he
doesn't pay, Cormyr will." "How?" When the creature did not respond at once,
Vangerdahast snarled, "Answer! My patience is wearing as thin as my
web." "What a pity-then it is gone!" The phantom rolled toward Vangerdahast,
raising one wing to shield itself and another to push against the ground. The
wizard leaped back, placing himself well out of wing's reach. He had time to
glimpse the sour, thin-nosed visage of an older woman, then the ghazneth's
eyes turned from blue to white and its face vanished into a veil of darkness.
He pointed his finger at its chest and spat out the command word that
unleashed his deadly spell. The ghazneth's upper wing started to furl down to
protect itself, but Vangerdahast had barely spoken before a white circle
blossomed in the creature's torso. The phantom screeched and clutched at its
chest, its long talons scratching deep furrows into its naked breast. The
flesh beneath its hand grew pale and soft and began to ooze up between its
fingers like hot wax. The wizard shrugged. "So you were right. I am
Vangerdahast." He should have known better. The ghazneth's hand dropped from
its chest, revealing a jagged void where the breastbone had erupted from the
inside out, through the hole showed a tangled snarl of veins and a lump of
oozing fungus shaped vaguely like a heart. Vangerdahast stumbled back,
surprised to feel a rising panic. He could not recall the last time he had
experienced such a thing-certainly long before Azoun took his crown. The
ghazneth ambled forward on its waspish legs. Vangerdahast forced himself to
think. So the thing's heart had moldered away. That didn't mean it was
indestructible. It was either undead or demonic, and he had ways to deal with
both. All he had to do was guess which and sneak another spell or two past
those magic-absorbing wings without letting the thing slit him from groin to
gullet first. The ghazneth scuttled two steps to the side, placing itself
between Vangerdahast and the battle still raging between the orcs and Ryban's
Purple Dragons. The wizard wondered whether the time had come to make use of
what many war wizards considered the weathercloak's most useful device: the
escape pocket. He reached for the secret fold in the cloak's lining, then
realized fleeing was not an option. Tanalasta was still somewhere nearby, and
the creature would be too likely to notice her if it took to the air
again. The ghazneth stretched its wings, cutting off every avenue of escape,
save those that involved flying or leaping off the cliff. Vangerdahast's panic
became determination, and he found the peacemaker's rod sheathed inside his
weathercloak. A common tool available to every lionar in the Purple Dragons,
the little club was hardly as powerful as many of the slender wands still
tucked into their pockets inside his cloak, but it did have the advantage of
swiftness. The ghazneth started forward, keeping a careful eye on the wizard's
hand. Vangerdahast allowed it to herd him back toward the cliff edge, praying
the thing did not realize he could fly. There was no reason it should. The
creature had been imprisoned inside the web spell when he tumbled over the
cliff, and it had been facing the wrong direction when he
returned. Vangerdahast reached the rim of the cliff and stopped. The ghazneth
gathered itself to spring, and he pulled the black peacemaker's rod from
inside his cloak. "Last chance to surrender. Otherwise, there won't be enough
left of you to make a good pair of boots." He leveled the steel club at the
ghazneth, and predictably enough, the phantom brought its dark wing around to
absorb the coming fireball. Vangerdahast flung himself backward off the
outcropping and was instantly flying again. He performed a quick reverse roll
and came soaring up straight along the cliff face, returning to the same place
he had just been. The ghazneth appeared in the same instant, hurling itself
over the edge with wings stretched wide. Vangerdahast smashed the peacemaker's
rod into its mangled chest, then cried, "Go east!" The ghazneth shot skyward
as though launched from a catapult, then banked eastward and streaked off
screeching in confusion and rage. Vangerdahast chuckled lightly, and stepped
back onto the outcropping. It would take the creature a good half hour to
recover from the rod's repulsion magic. That would be plenty of time for him
to reunite with Tanalasta and be long gone. He returned the peacemaker's rod
to his pocket, then reached for his signet ring. * * * * * Crouching behind
the last dune before the barren expanse of the Stonelands proper, Tanalasta
watched the phantom streak eastward over her head, then slipped her signet
ring into a secure pocket in her weathercloak. The last thing she needed was
to have Vangerdahast contact her now. The creature had already proven it could
hear their ring-talk, and whatever the old wizard had done to the thing, she
did not want it venting its anger on her. The phantom faded to a dot and
disappeared entirely, and only then did Tanalasta return to her horse. She
started back across the dunes toward the outcropping, taking care to stay in
the troughs as much as possible. The first two times she was forced to crest a
dune, she saw Vangerdahast searching for her from the cliff top, peering up
the mountainside or scrutinizing the caravan as it struggled to put itself
back together. The third time, she noticed the wizard's stallion hiding in the
trough below, pressed against the shady side of a boulder and trembling in
terror. She guided her own horse over toward it, speaking to the frightened
beast in a soft and reassuring voice. The horse regarded her warily, its eyes
large and suspicious. Tanalasta halted a dozen paces from the big stallion.
"There now, Cadimus." She kept her hands on the horn of her own saddle,
realizing she would only spook him by trying to rush matters along. "Don't you
recognize me? I'm Vangerdahast's friend." The horse pricked his ears forward
at the mention of his master's name. Tanalasta raised her hand slowly and
pointed toward the outcropping. "Vangerdahast," she said. "You know
Vangerdahast, don't you? Vangerdahast is well. Why don't we go see him?
Vangerdahast is right over there." The horse peered around the boulder in the
indicated direction. When he did not see the outcropping, which remained
hidden behind a low sand dune, he stepped cautiously forward. Tanalasta leaned
forward to grab his dangling reins, but he snorted a warning and jerked his
head away. "All right, Cadimus." Tanalasta pulled her hand back. "Follow me on
your own. We'll go see Vangerdahast." She turned her own mount up the trough
and started forward, moving slowly so as not to alarm the skittish beast.
Whatever had happened up on the outcropping must have been terrifying indeed.
Cadimus was a powerful stallion bred for fighting spirit. His brother, Damask
Dragon, was her father's favorite war-horse. At length, they drew near enough
to the outcropping that the summit began to show over the crest of the dune.
Cadimus grew more skittish than ever, pausing to snort and scrape the ground
with his hoof. At first, Tanalasta tried to reassure him with soft words, but
the more she talked, the more determined the stallion became to convince her
to turn around. Finally, she decided to try a different strategy and looked
away, then rode on without saying anything. It was a risky strategy and not
only because she was reluctant to leave the poor beast wandering the
Stonelands alone. Vangerdahast was a portly man. Even if her own horse was
strong enough to carry them both, Tanalasta did not look forward to sharing
her saddle with the wizard for the next tenday or two. The princess rode
almost fifty paces before Cadimus finally came trotting up beside her,
snorting angrily and trying to shoulder her mount around. Tanalasta put up
with the stallion's bullying just long enough to grab his reins and jerk his
head around. "Some war-horse you are!" Cadimus snorted in disgust, but lowered
his ears and stopped pushing against her mare. Tanalasta sighed in relief and
led him another dozen paces up the trough, then reluctantly turned to cross
the dune crest. Already in the shadow of the outcropping, they had to start up
the mountainside if they wanted to reach the top. Cadimus nickered in protest
and pulled against his reins, but Tanalasta angled away from the outcropping
and managed to persuade him to keep climbing. As they started down the other
side of the dune, a loud swooshing noise sounded behind them. Cadimus let out
a terrified whinny and bolted, nearly jerking Tanalasta from the saddle. She
caught herself on her saddle horn, then dropped to the ground and spun around,
one hand pointed toward the sound and the other already slapping at her magic
bracers. "Don't you dare!" snapped Vangerdahast, landing atop the dune in a
small sandstorm. "I've had quite enough abuse today." Tanalasta lowered her
arm, only slightly surprised by the sight of the flying wizard. "Perhaps you
could give me some warning next time?" She looked down the trough after
Cadimus's fleeing form. "Look what you've done." "I've no time to waste on
warnings!" The wizard pointed at the bare finger where her signet ring should
have been. "Besides, how was I to warn you? I've been trying to ringspeak to
you for fifteen minutes!" "I thought you would." Tanalasta pulled herself back
into the saddle. "That's why I took it off." Vangerdahast's cheeks darkened to
the color of rubies. "What?" "I was afraid of drawing the phantom's
attention." Reluctantly, Tanalasta offered her hand to help the wizard into
the saddle behind her. "It can hear our ring-talk." "Don't be ridiculous."
Vangerdahast frowned, then raised his brow and absentmindedly waved her off.
"On the other hand..." Not bothering to finish the sentence, he stuck two
fingers into his mouth and whistled for his horse. "On the other hand what?"
Tanalasta demanded. "Come along." Vangey spread his arms, then leaped into the
air and flew over Tanalasta's head. "We don't have much time." Tanalasta did
not need to ask the cause for the wizard's hurry If he had been trying to
ring-speak with her, the phantom would know they had become separated and
might well return in the hope of finding her alone. She galloped after the
wizard and was quickly joined by Cadimus, who seemed to have regained his
proud spirit with the sight of his master. Tanalasta caught up to the flying
wizard and positioned herself beneath him. "Vangey, why are we running from
that thing?" She had to crane her neck back to call up to him. "Why didn't you
just kill it when you had the chance?" When Vangerdahast glanced down, he
actually looked embarrassed. "It took me somewhat by surprise," he admitted.
"And to tell you the truth, I really don't know what in the Nine Hells a
ghazneth is." "Ghazneth?" They reached the base of the hill, and Vangerdahast
had to fly up out of speaking range. They angled up the slope westward until
the slope grew rocky enough to conceal hoof prints from casual detection, then
cut eastward away from the orcs still milling about on the battlefield on the
Stonebolt Trail. Tanalasta glimpsed the area just long enough to see that
Ryban had stayed to engage the swiners. She saw a dozen Purple Dragons lying
among the dead, and small bands of orcs were already squabbling over the
carcasses of at least twice that many horses. Her stomach grew hollow and
queasy, and she prayed the lionar had not stayed to fight because he thought
she was in danger-though of course that was the only reasonable
explanation. Once they had ascended high enough that the plain below vanished
into the stonemurk, Vangerdahast led the way around the shoulder of the
mountain. He guided them into the shelter of a rocky gully, then left
Tanalasta to tether the horses and keep watch while he surveyed possible
escape routes. When he returned, he pointed up the mountain about three
quarters of a mile, to where a large, spirelike rock sat on the crest of a
ridge. "If the ghazneth finds us, use your cloak's escape pocket to go up
there, then slip around the other side and start riding." He glowered at her
from one eye. "You haven't used it yet, have you?" Tanalasta shook her
head. "And you do remember how?" "I'm inexperienced, not daft." Tanalasta
motioned toward the secret pocket inside her weathercloak. "These cloaks
aren't that hard to use. Why all this bother anyway? Just kill the damned
thing and be done with it." Again, Vangerdahast flushed. "I'm afraid it's not
that easy." Tanalasta raised her brow. "I thought you could kill anything." "I
didn't want to be hasty," said Vangerdahast, neatly dodging the question. He
pulled a handful of spell components from his pocket and began to lay them out
on a boulder, using his work as an excuse to avoid Tanalasta's gaze. "It knew
my name." "Of course it knew your name." As she spoke, Tanalasta continued to
keep watch. "It was listening to our ring-talk." Vangerdahast said something
else, but Tanalasta did not really hear it. A terrible thought had occurred to
her, and she was trying desperately to think of a reason it could not be true.
When she failed, the princess grasped Vangerdahast's elbow. "Vangey, what if
that's the reason Alusair removed her signet?" Vangerdahast looked confused
and said nothing, and the princess realized he had been paying no more
attention to her than she had to him. She pulled her signet from her pocket
and displayed it in her open palm. "Vangerdahast, I took this off so it
wouldn't draw the ghazneth to me," she said. "What if Alusair did the same
thing?" Vangerdahast frowned. "Why should she do that? The ghazneth is here."
The wizard's eyes lit in comprehension, then he said, "No!" "We don't know
anything's wrong," said Tanalasta, trying to calm him. "Alusair's silence
could mean she's being cautious. After all, she has no way of knowing where
the thing is." Looking more concerned than ever, Vangerdahast turned to face
Tanalasta. "I wasn't worried about Alusair, thank you very much." The wizard's
face was paling before Tanalasta's eyes. "I told you. The ghazneth said I owed
it something. If I don't pay, Cormyr will." "You talked to this thing?"
Tanalasta found herself looking at the wizard's wrinkled face instead of
keeping watch. "It's not as though we had tea," Vangerdahast growled. "The
thing was bound in a magic web." "And you let it out?" "I didn't let it do
anything. It dissolved my web, or absorbed it, or something. I really don't
know." The wizard went over to Cadimus and removed a spellbook from the
stallion's saddlebags. "When we get back to Arabel, maybe the Sage Most
Learned can tell me what exactly a ghazneth is. I can't teleport us back until
tomorrow, but if we can last the night-" "Back?" Tanalasta echoed. "To
Arabel?" Vangerdahast opened his spellbook and absently began to flip through
the pages. "Of course. You can't think I intend to keep you out here." "And
you can't think I would return until we've found Alusair!" Vangerdahast
slammed his spellbook shut. "Enough, Princess! Your games have already cost
the lives of too many good men." "My games, Vangerdahast?" "Your games," the
wizard insisted. "Were you not the one who insisted that we destroy the orc
tribe 'like Alusair would?'" "Yes, but that doesn't mean-" "And now we have
lost Ryban's entire company." "How can you call that my fault?" Tanalasta was
genuinely hurt. "They were supposed to loose a few arrows and flee!" "That
does not change what happened," Vangerdahast insisted. "You have been playing
with men's lives, and I will have no more of it." Tanalasta narrowed her eyes.
"I'm sorry for the loss of Ryban and his men, Vangerdahast, but I am not
playing at anything. If you and the king are, tell me now." "The king is quite
serious, I assure you. He will not have an order of spell-beggars placed in
such a position of influence." "He won't, Vangerdahast?" Tanalasta demanded.
"Or you won't?" "Our thoughts are the same on this matter," insisted
Vangerdahast. "But that has nothing to do with your imminent return to Arabel.
It's treason for you to blackmail the crown by placing yourself-and others-in
this kind of danger." "It's only blackmail if the king is bluffing," Tanalasta
said. "And if he is, the treason lies on your head, not mine. I have done
nothing but take him at his word." "The king does not bluff his own
daughter." "Then our duty is clear," said Tanalasta. "The king sent us to find
the crown princess, and this ghazneth creature only makes it that much more
urgent for us to do so." Vangerdahast exhaled loudly, clearly frustrated by
the dilemma in which he found himself. Tanalasta turned back to her duties as
a watchman, scanning the stonemurk for the first dark hint of wings on the
horizon. "Princess, be reasonable," said Vangerdahast. "While everything you
say is true, even you must admit your father hardly had something like this in
mind when he sent you-" "I can't know what the king had in mind," Tanalasta
said. "What I do know is that I am here, and that the king himself charged me
with finding Alusair." Silently, the princess added that she needed to
complete her mission precisely because the king had not expected the mission
to be dangerous. Allowing the phantom to force her back to Arabel would only
confirm his belief that she needed to be protected. But if she actually
located Alusair and discovered what was happening in the Stonelands, perhaps
he would begin to have confidence in the decisions she would one day make as
queen. After a moment, Vangerdahast sighed. "Very well. If you must pretend
not to understand what this trip is really about, I shall explain it to
you." Tanalasta held up her hand. "That won't be necessary, Vangerdahast. What
you don't seem to understand is that I do know what this is about. The war
wizards are afraid the royal priests will take their place, you're afraid
you'll soon have a high harvestmaster competing for the monarch's ear, and the
king is afraid of making you both angry." "Our reservations are hardly of such
a petty nature," Vangerdahast replied. "I am concerned about the jealousy of
the other religions, while the question of divided loyalties is entirely
insurmountable-" "Yes, yes. I know the arguments, and I know you're only
thinking of the realm. You think of nothing else." Tanalasta paused, then
added in an acid voice, "I would never question your loyalty, only your belief
that no one else can possibly know what is good for Cormyr." Vangerdahast
actually flinched. "Milady! That is unfair." "It is also true. Maybe you are
the only one who knows what is good for Cormyr. Even I must admit that you're
usually right about everything else." Tanalasta paused to gather her courage,
then continued, "What you don't seem to understand is me. If I can't be queen
in my own way, then I will not be queen at all." Vangerdahast regarded the
princess as though meeting her for the first time. "By the Weave! You would
refuse the throne on account of a handful of priests?" "I would refuse it on
many accounts," said Tanalasta. "Which is why it falls to me to find Alusair.
I seem to be the only one who takes this situation seriously." Vangerdahast
turned and gazed into the stonemurk. Tanalasta left him to his thoughts,
content to believe she had won the argument. They remained that way, each
plotting the next maneuver in their battle of wills, until a blurry black V
appeared to the east. The thing was so tiny that had the princess not been
looking for it in that very section of sky, she would not have seen it at
all. The distant shape grew larger at an alarming pace, and soon Tanalasta
could see the thing's leathery wings rising and falling as it streaked through
the stonemurk. It came parallel to their hiding place on the mountain and
continued past without turning, and the princess hoped for their sake the
caravan drivers and any survivors from Ryban's company were long gone. Once it
had disappeared around the shoulder of the mountain, Vangerdahast turned in
the approximate direction of the outcropping and stacked three stones on the
rim of the little gully. "It will be coming from there." "Coming?" Tanalasta
asked. "If you're right about it hearing our ring-talk," the wizard explained.
He plucked a wand from inside his weathercloak, then added, "Strictly
speaking, I will be using a sending, though I doubt it makes any difference.
If the thing can hear one form of telepathy, I suspect it will hear
another." Tanalasta frowned. "What are you talking about?" "Finding Alusair,
of course," said the wizard. "You did say that was what you wanted to do." "I
meant by looking for her, not inviting the ghazneth to come after us." "And
where, exactly, do you intend to look?" Vangerdahast asked. "You don't know?"
Tanalasta asked, disbelieving. "You haven't even tried to locate her?" "What's
the use? When she doesn't want to be found, she takes off her signet and puts
on her Hider." The wizard was referring to the magic ring of privacy Alusair
had prevailed upon Azoun to have made. By slipping it on, she could prevent
even Vangerdahast's magic from locating her. "Even if she isn't wearing the
Hider, Alusair moves quickly. There's no use trying to locate her until you're
in a position to start the chase." "And until you've had time enough to talk
her sister out of her inconvenient ideas," Tanalasta added dryly. Vangerdahast
shrugged. "Perhaps. It still leaves us with the same dilemma: where to
look." "Since she was looking for Emperel, sooner or later she would check the
Cavern of the Sleeping Sword," said Tanalasta. The cavern was the secret
resting place of the Lords Who Sleep, the company of slumbering warriors whom
Emperel was charged with safeguarding. "I thought we could start there." "And
lead the ghazneth there?" Vangerdahast countered. "That doesn't strike me as
very wise. We are trying to keep the company's location secret from our
enemies, you know." Tanalasta narrowed her eyes at his condescension. "So
where would you start?" "Why not by asking Alusair herself?" Vangey
replied. "Because Alusair isn't wearing her signet," Tanalasta said,
exasperated. "And because we have grounds to believe she has a good reason not
to be." "True, but that reason is over there looking for us." Vangerdahast
pointed toward the unseen outcropping. "This is probably the only chance we'll
have to contact Alusair without putting her life in danger. Besides, we can
test your theory about the ghazneth eavesdropping on our mind talk." The
wizard did not point out that if Tanalasta was right, they would have to move
quickly to avoid a fight with the ghazneth. Judging by Vangerdahast's
preparations, though, he did not really intend to avoid the fight. "Before I
agree, tell me what you're planning." Tanalasta gestured at the hodgepodge of
knickknacks arrayed on the boulder. There was a clove of garlic, a sprig of
rosemary, a vial of holy water, and several other strange items. 'What's all
that for?" "Just a small experiment." Vangerdahast gave her one of those
innocent smiles that had been making Tanalasta nervous since she grew old
enough to speak, then he picked up a dove's feather. "Without knowing exactly
what a ghazneth is, it's hard to guess what it despises, but I bet this will
work. I haven't met a demon yet who likes feather of the dove." "You're going
to banish it?" "If you're right about this mind-speak business, yes."
Vangerdahast picked up a rock, then began to trace a pentagram on top of the
boulder. "I'll send it straight back to the hell it came from-wherever that
is." "And if you don't?" Vangerdahast waved a gnarled finger toward ridge,
gesturing at the spirelike stone he had pointed out earlier. "That's what
escape plans are for. Are you going to help me or not?" Tanalasta nodded. "I
just hope you're doing this for more than your pride." After lecturing the
wizard earlier about their duty, she could hardly decline to aid him now.
"What do you want me to do?" Vangerdahast outlined her part in his plan, then
turned to continue his preparations while she untethered the horses. By the
time she returned with the beasts, the wizard had completed his protective
pattern and was ready to proceed. He climbed onto the boulder and stepped into
the center of the star, the strange assortment of spell components grasped
securely in one hand. "You can watch from the ridge," he said. "If this works,
you'll see a portal open and suck the ghazneth back to its home hell." "And if
the ghazneth doesn't go?" Tanalasta asked. "Then I'll join you on the
ridge-and don't waste any time getting us out of there." He nodded to her,
then turned to face the three stones he piled on the edge of the gully. "I'm
ready" Tanalasta turned toward the ridge and pictured Alusair's ash-blonde
hair and dark-eyed visage in her mind, then touched the throat clasp of her
weathercloak. The metal tingled under her fingers, and her sister's head
suddenly cocked to one side. Vangey is with me on Stonebolt Trail, at the edge
of the Storm Horns. Phantom after us. Need to find you. Tanalasta? Alusair's
weathered face betrayed her irritation. Orc's Pool-Vangey knows it. And no
more magic, or you'll never make it! Alusair's visage faded with that.
Tanalasta shook her head clear, then glanced back at Vangerdahast. "You know
some place called Orc's Pool?" "I've been there many times." The wizard
continued to study the sky above the stones he had piled on the gully edge.
"Now off with you." Tanalasta did not reach for the escape pocket. "She said
no more magic." "What?" Vangerdahast glanced down aghast. "How does she expect
us to find Orc's Pool?" Tanalasta had a sinking feeling. "I was more concerned
about our plan. She said no more magic or we'd never make it." It was
difficult to say whether Vangerdahast's expression was more puzzled or
irritated, but it was definitely not alarmed. "It's too late to change plans
now." He glanced back toward the outcropping, then made a shooing motion. "Off
with you. Here it comes already." Tanalasta's gaze rose involuntarily, and she
glimpsed a dark figure streaking over the mountain's shoulder. She spun in her
saddle, looking toward the spire on the next ridge and thrusting her hand into
the weathercloak's escape pocket. Her arm went numb, then there was a sharp
crack, and a door-sized rectangle of blackness hissed into existence in front
of her. Cadimus whinnied in alarm and tried to shy back, threatening to pull
his reins free of the princess's grasp. "Not now, you coward!" Tanalasta
jerked the stallion forward and urged her own mount through the doorway. The
world went black, and the princess experienced a strange, timeless sense of
falling she thought would last forever. She grew queasy and weak, and a sudden
chill bit at her fingers and nose. Her ears filled with a hushed roaring, at
once overpowering as a waterfall and as soft as a whisper, and her stomach
reverberated as though to the roll of a thousand drums. Then, in less than the
instant it had taken her to blink, she was back in the light, her head
spinning and the wind whistling around her ears. Cadimus nickered behind her,
sounding as confused as he was alarmed, and Tanalasta recalled with a rush
where she was and what she was doing. She kicked her own mount's flanks
urgently, and the poor horse stumbled forward blindly, as dazed and reeling as
her rider. The princess let the mare continue on until she felt the ground
sloping away beneath them, then dismounted and tethered both glassy-eyed
horses to a scraggly hackberry bush. By the time Tanalasta returned to the
ridge, her head had stopped spinning. She lay down beneath the tall spire of
granite and peered over the crest. Across the way, the ghazneth was already
swooping down the gully toward Vangerdahast. As the phantom neared him, it
suddenly veered and pulled up. For one awful instant, she thought it was
coming for her, then it wheeled on a huge black wing and extended its talons
to attack the wizard from behind. Vangerdahast whirled, wand in. hand, but the
ghazneth was already on him. Tanalasta knew the wizard's spell would never go
off before the creature's talons tore him gullet to groin. She was on her feet
before she knew what she was doing, one hand disappearing into her
weathercloak's escape pocket and the other reaching for her peacemaker's
rod. Fortunately for both the princess and the royal magician, Tanalasta
remained where she was. Like the message-sending throat clasp, her
weathercloak's escape pocket could only be used once a day. She dropped back
to the ground, then watched in amazement as the ghazneth ricocheted away from
the wizard's protective star and slammed into the mountainside. Vangerdahast's
shoulders slumped with relief, then his voice began to echo off the rocky
slopes as he bellowed his incantation and tossed his strange assortment of
knickknacks into the air. The ghazneth circled the boulder where he stood,
hurling itself at him time and again, only to bounce away and crash into the
mountain with stone-splitting force. A shimmering spiral of light appeared in
the air behind the creature and began to shadow its movements like some
strange tail it did not know it had. When the ghazneth finally grew tired of
slamming into the mountainside, it alighted in the gully next to Vangerdahast.
It seemed to say something, then squatted down and wrapped its arms around the
boulder. The stone began to tremble, and Tanalasta could tell by the sudden
tension in the wizard's shoulders that he had not anticipated the possibility
of having his perch ripped out of the very ground. Vangerdahast's echoing
voice rumbled off the mountains more urgently, and he stooped down to fling
his knickknacks directly onto the shoulders of his attacker. The tornado at
the ghazneth's back grew larger and faster, sucking the thing's leathery wings
backward toward the whirlpool's spiraling depths. The creature glanced
nervously over its shoulder, then a small eye appeared in the heart of the
tornado. From Vangerdahast's description, Tanalasta expected to see some sort
of flaming hell or blood-drenched wasteland, but the small circle resembled
nothing quite so much as the Stonelands themselves. The ghazneth let out a
great roar and gave a tremendous twist. A sharp crack reverberated off the
mountainside, then the boulder rose out of the ground and Vangerdahast's legs
went out from under him. Tanalasta was on her feet again, yelling for the
wizard to use his escape pocket, though she knew he would never hear her over
the rumble of the cracking stone. As Vangerdahast tumbled from the boulder, he
reached out with the dove's feather and struck the creature on the head. A
terrible shriek reverberated across the slope. The ghazneth vanished into the
whirlpool, dragging Vangerdahast's boulder along with it. The wizard landed
facedown in the gully and lay there trembling, then the spell whooshed in on
itself and there was silence. Tanalasta let out a joyful whoop, then saw a
familiar shape in the sky and dropped to her belly. Vangerdahast raised his
head, and she rose to her knees to point behind him. The wizard stood and
turned to face the shoulder of the mountain, where the ghazneth was already
streaking down out of the stonemurk. Vangerdahast stood there looking for what
seemed an eternity, but in fact may have been less than a second. Tanalasta
started to rise and yell, but she did not even make it to a crouch before the
wizard turned and was suddenly beside her, swaying and blinking with teleport
daze and blindly reaching out to catch hold of her sleeve. "Get us out of
here!" 7 They were lost in a sea of brown. The sun was hiding behind an
overcast of dirty-pearl clouds, and a stiff northerly wind had draped the
horizon behind a curtain of tannish stonemurk. The plain was paved in jagged
slabs of red-brown basalt, set unevenly into a bed of yellow-brown sand, and
the few scraggly salt bushes hardy enough to grow in such a wasteland were a
sickly shade of hazel. Even Tanalasta's riding breeches and Vangerdahast's
glorious beard had turned olive-brown beneath a thick coating of Stonelands
dust. As uncomfortable as the stonemurk made travel, the princess was glad for
its foglike veil. After Vangerdahast's futile attempt to banish the ghazneth,
anything that helped conceal them was a great comfort to her. They had
glimpsed the thing twice since fleeing the Storm Horns. The first time had
been two evenings ago, when its dark form streaked across the horizon between
them and the mountains. The second time had been only a few hours ago, when it
had appeared in the far north, circling like a hawk searching for its next
meal. The banishment's failure seemed to have sapped Vangerdahast's
confidence. He would spend long hours deep in silent thought, then suddenly
subject Tanalasta to a lengthy hypothesis about why he had failed to exile the
ghazneth to its home plane. Having read-some said memorized-every volume in
the palace library, the princess was able to debunk most of his theories with
a little careful consideration. So far the only notion to stand the test of
her scrutiny was that the banishment had not failed at all, that the ghazneth
had been sucked back to its home plane. Unfortunately, that plane happened to
be Toril. Vangerdahast dismissed the possibility as a contradiction of itself,
simply proclaiming that a demon could not be from Toril, and something from
Toril could not be a demon. Tanalasta considered the argument pure semantics.
To her mind, anything that looked, acted, and killed like a demon was a demon.
Moreover, when she pointed out that the thing had been affected by two spells
that affected only demons-the protective star and the banishment
itself-Vangerdahast had been unable to refute her argument. Maybe the creature
wasn't a demon by war wizard definitions, but it was close enough for a
princess. Tanalasta wished she had not let Vangerdahast trick her into parting
ways with Owden Foley. She had read in the Imaskari Book of War (Alaphondar's
translation, of course) that priests were better suited to dealing with demons
than wizards. Priests tended not to let their pride get them killed as
often. For the second time in a quarter hour, Tanalasta found her vision
obscured by brown grime. She wiped the gobs from her eyes, then opened her
waterskin and washed the grit from her teeth. Either they had drifted off
their westerly course or the wind had shifted, and if she remembered one thing
from Gaspaeril Gofar's little Treatise on the Flora of the Barren Wastes, it
was that the wind seldom shifted in the Stonelands. Tanalasta glanced over at
the lodestone dangling from the wrist of Vangerdahast's rein hand. They were
still traveling at a right angle to the tiny rod, which meant they should have
been facing west. So why was a northerly wind blowing in their faces? And if
it was not northerly, why was it still full of Anauroch sand? When the wind
shifted, the stonemurk vanished. Gaspaeril's treatise had been clear about
that. Tanalasta reined her horse to a stop. "Something's wrong." Vangerdahast
continued forward, lost in thought and oblivious to the princess's absence.
She waited until Cadimus had carried the wizard several paces, then shook her
head at the inattentiveness of her 'protector.' "Vangerdahast!" The wizard's
back straightened and his gaze snapped to the side. When he did not see the
princess in her customary place, he cursed foully and looked skyward, reaching
for a wand. "Vangerdahast, no magic!" Tanalasta yelled. Since escaping the
ghazneth, they had taken Alusair's advice and avoided magic like the plague.
They had banished their rings, bracers, and weathercloaks to their saddlebags
and buried their peacemaker's rods, enchanted daggers, and everything else
that radiated a constant aura of magic. So far, they had every reason to be
happy with the results. When the wizard still did not see her, Tanalasta waved
her hand in the air. "I'm right here." Vangerdahast reined his mount around,
his rheumy eyes betraying his relief. "What is it?" He continued to scan the
horizon. "Did you see something?" "It's what I haven't seen that concerns me,"
Tanalasta said. "Shouldn't we have reached Crimson Creek by now?" Vangerdahast
finally pulled his hand from his weather-cloak. "Apparently not, since we
haven't. Have patience. The Stonelands are a big place." "If you consider four
thousand square miles big, then yes, they are," said Tanalasta, "but that's
not the point. You said we would reach Crimson Creek in a day. We're now going
on two." "How am I to know how long it takes?" Vangerdahast shrugged. "I've
never ridden there, you know." "I suppose not," Tanalasta sighed. As busy as
he was, the wizard was hardly likely to waste his time riding when he could
teleport. "How far is it from the Stonebolt Trail?" The wizard only shook his
head. "It hardly matters, does it?" He waved his hand at the rocky plain
around them and added, "It's not like we can miss it." "We can if we never
cross it." Tanalasta pointed at the lodestone hanging from Vangerdahast's
wrist. "You're sure that thing's accurate?" Vangerdahast extended his arm at
an angle. The lodestone swung briefly from side-to-side, then pivoted back to
its original position-perpendicular to the wind. "You see? It always returns
to north." "Then how come we're riding into a northerly wind?" Tanalasta
asked. Vangerdahast's answer was as quick as it was certain. "It is not a
northerly wind, it's a westerly one." "Full of Anauroch sand?" Tanalasta
asked. The wizard frowned and fell silent for a moment, then pointed at the
ground. "The sand comes from the Stonelands themselves." "Not according to
Gaspaeril Gofar." Tanalasta extended her hand. "Let me see the map. Unless
Crimson Creek is more than forty miles from the trail, we've gone too
far." Vangerdahast made no move to do as she asked. "I would say that the
creek is just about forty miles from the Stonebolt Trail." Tanalasta continued
to hold her hand out. "You do have a map, don't you?" "Of course."
Vangerdahast tapped a saddlebag. "A magic one." "Wonderful," said Tanalasta.
"I suppose we should be thankful. This is teaching us a valuable
lesson." "Us?" Vangerdahast frowned. 'What do you mean, 'us?'" "We can't even
open a map without magic. You don't think that's a little over-reliant?"
Tanalasta asked. "What if we needed that map to win a battle?" "If this were a
battle, we would not be here," said Vangerdahast stiffly. "And if you are
trying to intimate that your spell-beggars would do better, do recall that
they also speak their incantations one syllable at a time." "Vangey, that's
not what I mean at all." Tanalasta reached across to touch the wizard's arm.
"I'm only trying to say that magic has its own vulnerabilities, like anything
else." "My magic is powerful enough to see us both to safety in Arabel."
Vangerdahast jerked his arm away. "Which is exactly what we should do, now
that we have established that Alusair is safe." "We have established that
she's alive, not safe." Tanalasta's tone grew sharp. "Nor do we know what she
has discovered about Emperel's disappearance or the ghazneth, which I suspect
to be related. Most importantly, we have not yet informed Alusair that she is
the new crown princess. You may stop talking to me about your teleport spell
and start riding." Tanalasta urged her horse past Vangerdahast's, then turned
perpendicular to the wind and began to trot in what she hoped was a westerly
direction. The wizard started after her. "If you insist on this foolishness,
will you at least ride in the right direction?" "This is the right direction."
Tanalasta recalled a pamphlet on sea navigation one of the Dauntinghorn
ancestors had written a hundred years before, then stopped and turned to the
wizard. "If I can prove it, will you stop badgering me about teleporting back
to Arabel?" Vangerdahast's bushy brow furrowed. He studied her without
answering, and Tanalasta began to fear he had thought of the same thing she
had. When the wizard finally spoke, it grew clear he had not even considered
the possibility that she might be right. "And when you can't prove it, you
will return to Arabel in all due haste and let me see to this matter
properly." "Agreed." Vangerdahast could not quite keep from smirking. "Very
well, then. Prove away." Tanalasta smiled and patted the wizard's cheek. "I
have a feeling we're going to be a lot better friends after this." She
dismounted and transferred her belongings to one side of her saddlebags. After
the compartment was empty, she refilled it with fist-sized stones and walked
to the front of her horse. "Lead on, Vangerdahast. We'll set our course by
your lodestone for a few minutes." Vangerdahast eyed her saddlebags as though
she meant to stone him to death, but nodded and lifted his rein hand to let
the lodestone beneath it dangle free. He started forward at a right angle to
the tiny rod, being careful not to stray off course. Tanalasta followed on
foot, leading her horse and pausing every ten steps to stack one of the rocks
from her saddlebag atop a larger stone along Vangerdahast's trail. The royal
magician kept looking back, watching first with scorn, then with puzzlement,
bewilderment, and-finally-chagrin. By the time the saddlebag ran out of
stones, his cheeks were crimson with embarrassment. He shook his head in
disgust, then pulled the lodestone from his wrist. "We've been riding in
circles!" The wizard raised his arm to throw the tiny rod away. "Wait-it's not
the lodestone!" Tanalasta turned to look back along their course and saw that
the stones traced a gentle, but distinct curve. "Cecil Dauntinghorn noticed a
similar effect about a hundred years ago, when he found himself sailing around
a tiny island in the Sea of Fallen Stars. As it turned out, his lodestone was
pointing at a strange cliff of black rock. It started to point north again
after he was far enough away." Vangerdahast eyed the stone-strewn plain
sourly. "Don't I look the fool. I hope you're proud of yourself." "Not
really." Tanalasta began to redistribute the load in her saddlebags. "Well,
maybe just a little bit, but I wasn't trying to make you feel foolish. I just
want you to trust my judgment." Vangerdahast cocked an eyebrow. "I'd trust it
more if you would let me teleport us-" "Vangey-" The wizard raised his hand.
"Not to Arabel, to Orc's Pool. I've no doubt Alusair is fuming at our
tardiness already, and now it'll take us twice as long to find it-if we ever
do." "Alusair can wait a few hours longer. I suspect she'd be even angrier
with us if we led the ghazneth into the middle of her company." Tanalasta
fastened her saddlebags, then wiped another gob of brown grime from her eyes.
"Besides, I doubt we lost much time. I'd have noticed if we had veered into
the wind earlier." The princess mounted and turned perpendicular to the wind,
now confident that she was heading westward. They rode for another three
hours, and twice they noticed small bands of stoop-shouldered silhouettes
skulking through the stonemurk. Both times they swerved away and rode briefly
in the opposite direction, then resumed their westward travels. At last, the
yellowish sky began to grow brown and dim, and Tanalasta was about to suggest
that they make camp for the night when the wind suddenly filled with the
overpowering scent of old death. The princess pulled up short, and the odor
vanished as quickly as it had come. "Did you smell that, Vangerdahast?" She
felt certain that her face had gone pale. "Something like rancid blood?" He
pointed into the wind. "From somewhere up there?" Tanalasta nodded. "No, I
didn't smell anything." The wizard turned Cadimus into the wind and urged him
forward, leaving Tanalasta to puzzle over his rash behavior. She followed a
few paces behind, wishing she had some way other than magic to defend herself.
The odor returned again, this time stronger, then began to vanish and return
at increasingly frequent intervals. Vangerdahast kept altering his course
until the stench grew more or less constant. The princess began to notice mats
of green moss and rich grass growing between the stones. Finally, a curtain of
white steam appeared ahead, silhouetting a column of scraggly smoke trees
arrayed along a chain of low, rocky hummocks. Vangerdahast stopped beneath a
wispy bough and peered down at the base of the hummocks. Tanalasta joined him,
nearly gagging on the smell of brimstone and iron as she approached, then
found herself looking down into a steep-sided ravine of raw red ground.
Through the bottom of the gulch ran a steaming brook of blood-colored water,
gurgling northward over a bed of jagged, rust-stained boulders. "Crimson
Creek?" she asked. Vangerdahast nodded. "Right where you said it would be." He
turned upstream and started to ride along the rim of the gulch. "Come along.
We'll make camp at Orc's Pool." "You know where we are?" Vangerdahast shook
his head. "Never seen this place before." "I think we'd better make camp
here." Tanalasta glanced at the dimming heavens, then added, "It'll soon be
too dark to ride." "We have time." Vangerdahast continued to ride. When
Tanalasta made no move to follow, be stopped and looked back over his
shoulder. "Perhaps you'd like to bet? Double or nothing?" "Double what?"
Tanalasta studied the steaming creek and shook her head. For the water to be
that hot, the source had to be nearby. "No deal, Old Snoop. I see your
game." "Do you now?" Vangerdahast smiled, then urged his horse forward. "I
guess you're just too smart for me, Tanalasta, too smart by far." The pool
turned out to be even nearer than the princess expected. She followed
Vangerdahast along the ravine for a quarter mile, then the steam began to
thin, and the creek suddenly grew as colorless as air. They spent several
minutes staring into the ravine in puzzlement, then finally dismounted and
started to lead their horses down the embankment. As they descended, a scarlet
ribbon appeared in the steam opposite them, curling down between the nebulous
bulges of two rocky hummocks on the far shore. Tanalasta pointed toward the
ribbon. "I assume Orc's Pool is rather bloody looking?" "That would be
correct. Are you certain those spell-beggars in Huthduth didn't make a diviner
out of you?" Tanalasta frowned, trying to decide whether the wizard was
mocking her or trying to compliment her. "It's just common sense." "I've heard
that's all priestly divination is," the wizard replied. "Now, real
magic-" 'Would do us no good, under the circumstances," said Tanalasta. "And I
would like you to stop referring to my friends as
'spell-beggars.'" Vangerdahast tipped his head. "As you command,
Princess." They reached the ravine bottom and crossed a mat of mossy grass to
the water's edge, then tested its temperature with their fingers before
mounting and riding across. On the far side, they followed the scarlet brook
up a small, gently-sloping vale. Though no vegetation grew within two paces of
the creek, a luxuriant growth of grass covered the walls of the valley, and
the stench changed from brimstone-and-iron to just iron. Once Tanalasta grew
accustomed to the odor and no longer associated it with blood, she actually
found the smell tolerable. At length, they reached the end of the valley,
where the brook spilled over a rocky headwall from a steaming basin above.
When no sentries emerged to greet or challenge them, they tethered their
horses to a wild mulberry tree and crept the rest of the way on foot, mindful
of the possibility that an orc tribe-or something worse-had forced Alusair to
abandon the rendezvous. They found nothing but a small pool of blood-colored
water, ringed on all sides by a boulder-strewn collar of green grass and low
cliffs of rusty red basalt. "This is Orc's Pool?" Tanalasta asked. "Of course.
How many red pools do you think there are in the Stonelands?" Tanalasta
frowned. "Now that you mention it, Gaspaeril Gofar's treatise mentioned over
sixty bodies of iron-tinted water." "This is the one," Vangerdahast said. "I
recognize it." The wizard clambered over the headwall and led the way toward a
ring of boulders on the southern shore of the pool. As they crossed the
meadow, Tanalasta noticed a single square yard of freshly-turned ground.
Leaving Vangerdahast to continue on his own, she stopped to examine it. The
stones had been carefully removed from the dirt and piled along the edges, and
there was a small dimple in the center where the soil had been wetted by a
cupful of water. From up ahead, Vangerdahast called, "They're here-at least
someone is." Tanalasta went to join the wizard at the circle of stones. As she
approached, she smelled a familiar haylike odor and saw the broom of a horse's
tail swing out from behind a boulder. "Alusair?" she called. "I don't think
so," answered Vangerdahast. Tanalasta stepped around the boulder to find a
hidden, well-used camp large enough to accommodate a company of twenty people.
At the present time, there was only a tethered horse and Vangerdahast, seated
on the saddle that had been taken from the beast's back. A pair of dusty boots
sat on the ground next to him, and he was going through the pockets of a tunic
and breeches that had been left beside a neatly folded traveling
cape. "Vangerdahast, what do you think you're doing?" Tanalasta
demanded. "Trying to find out who this belongs to," the wizard replied, "and
whether or not he's one of Alusair's boys." "He is." The voice came from
behind Tanalasta, so close that it made her scream and leap into the air. She
came down facing the speaker, clutching a sharp stone she had been carrying in
lieu of her magic dagger. The man was naked and wet, with shoulder-length hair
and skin still flushed from the heat of the pool, and he didn't look half-bad.
In fact, he looked more than half-good, with dark hair and darker eyes,
chiseled features, and a proud chin with just a hint of a cleft. He had
shoulders as broad as a door, arms the size of Tanalasta's thighs, not even a
hint of a belly, and... she blushed, for it was not every day that a princess
saw such sights. "Your Highness, forgive me!" The man sounded mortified. Still
holding his sword and scabbard, he lowered his hands and covered himself. "I
wasn't expecting you with the stonemurk today, and I was availing myself of
the water when I heard someone approaching." When Tanalasta did not reply, the
man tried to slip past. "I do beg your forgiveness, Princess, but we've lost a
few men on this journey, and I had to be cautious." It finally dawned on
Tanalasta that she was staring. "On my honor!" The princess let the stone drop
from her hand and turned away, her face burning as though she were the one who
had just climbed from the pool's steaming waters. "P-please, think no more of
it." Out of the corner of her eye, Tanalasta saw Vangerdahast smile. "Well
then, maybe this trip was worth it after all," said the wizard. He passed the
man his clothes. "And who might you be, son?" "My name is Rowen," the man
said. Tanalasta heard the snap of pant legs being flapped open. "Rowen
Cormaeril." Tanalasta felt the blood rush from her cheeks even more quickly
than it had rushed into them. She turned, slowly, to find the man now standing
in tunic and breeches. "Of... of relation to Gaspar Cormaeril?" she
asked. Rowen nodded. "Gaspar was my cousin, and as great a traitor to our
family as he was to the realm." Tanalasta's heart fell. Along with Aunadar
Bleth, Gaspar Cormaeril had been one of the ringleaders in the Abraxus Affair.
As punishment for his prominent role, her father had seized the lands of the
entire Cormaeril family. When Tanalasta could not find the words to express
her dismay, Rowen bowed deeply and did not rise. "I apologize for vexing you
with my presence, Majesty. Had it been possible, I'm certain the Princess
Alusair would have sent someone else." "I doubt it," growled Vangerdahast. The
wizard looked to Tanalasta and shook his head. "She couldn't have been happy
to hear from you. This is her way of showing it." "Must you always think the
worst of people, Lord Magician?" Tanalasta went over to Rowen. "I'm sure she
sent Sir Rowen because she knew him to be the best man for the job." The
princess presented her hand to Rowen, who was so startled that he looked up
and did not take it. She smiled and nodded, holding it in place. Somewhat
reluctantly, he took her hand by the fingers and brushed his lips to the
back. "Only Rowen, Majesty," he said. "My title was taken with the family
lands." "Just Rowen, then." Tanalasta noticed Vangerdahast rolling his eyes
and shot him a frown, then gestured for Rowen to rise. "Tell me, Rowen, is
that your Faith Planting I noticed at the edge of the meadow?" Rowen's eyes
grew as round as coins. "Yes, Majesty, it is-but I'm surprised you know that.
I didn't think anyone but Children of Chauntea would recognize it." Tanalasta
smiled. "They wouldn't-and please, don't call me Majesty. Tanalasta will
do." Vangerdahast hoisted himself to his feet. "By the Blue Dragon!" he
cursed. "Alusair sends us a groundsplitter!" 8 The cabbage had already started
to go, the big leaves curling and turning brown along the edges, the immature
heads wilting open. A tall beggar in a ragged cape was striding across the
field diagonally, paying no heed to the angry free farmer hurling insults and
dirt clods in his direction. In the dusky light, the intruder was a mere
silhouette half again as tall as a man, with a lurching gait and beady red
eyes just bright enough to be seen beneath his billowing hood. "That's the
signal," Azoun whispered. "He has them." "Well done, Sire," said Dauneth
Marliir. "It will be good to be done with these rabble." "They're hardly
rabble, Lord Warden." Azoun eased his horse into the shadows beneath a young
ash. "They're trying to help." "Yes, but help whom?" Dauneth followed him into
the shadows. "I am sure it has occurred to His Majesty that they might be
spreading this alarm purposely, to win support for their royal temple. And I
must say it's working. As matters stand now, the blight could spoil half the
fields in the realm and the peasants would still hold these seed fingers as
heroes." A dozen riders burst from the woods on the other side of the field
and started across at a full gallop, yelling promises of restitution as they
passed. The beggar, now only a few paces from the ambush site, paid his
pursuers no attention and continued forward at the same even stride. "If the
blight takes half the fields in the realm, perhaps they would be heroes," said
Azoun. "It would certainly mean we have not been seeing to our duties, Lord
Warden. Besides, Owden and his priests are not the only ones who have seen the
blight-spreader." "Indeed-the peasants see the fellow everywhere," said
Dauneth. "In Bospir, they burned another tinker at the stake this morning-and
he wasn't even tall. This one just happened to be wearing a black cloak when a
free farmer saw him doing his business by the side of the road." Azoun winced.
That was the seventh lynching he had heard of in the last three days, and the
rate seemed to be increasing. Perhaps he should have listened to Dauneth two
days ago and sent a squad of war wizards to track down the "Badgeless Maces"
then, but he had not wanted to embarrass Tanalasta by returning her friends to
Arabel in shackles. Moreover, he had regarded Dauneth's motives as somewhat
suspect, fearing the young lord had made the suggestion out of anger at
Tanalasta. Of course, Azoun should have known better. The High Warden was too
loyal to let his personal feelings interfere with duty. The priests had indeed
created the panic Dauneth feared, and now innocent people were being killed.
The king was almost relieved to find his own judgment in this matter less
sound than that of the High Warden, it suggested that Dauneth was not holding
a grudge, and the throne had need of a loyal warden in Arabel. Once they
brought Owden Foley and the "Badgeless Maces" under control, perhaps Azoun
could even declare the damage wrought by Tanalasta undone. The red-eyed beggar
lurched past Azoun's hiding place and disappeared into the trees at the rear
of the small clearing, the Badgeless Maces close behind. A row of Purple
Dragons emerged from the trees to meet the company of priests. The dragoneers
wore their visors raised and held their lances posted on their stirrup rests,
but their grim expressions left no doubt that they were present on a serious
matter. The Badgeless Maces hauled back on their reins, barely managing to
bring their mounts to a stop before the dragoneers. As confused as they were,
the priests remained determined to capture their quarry. A handful tried to
ease through the Purple Dragons only to find their way blocked by a lowered
lance. Several more wheeled around to circle the line, only to find another
row of dragoneers emerging from the trees to block their way. Even then, it
did not seem to occur to the priests that this was anything more than a chance
meeting. "What are you doing?" Owden gestured into the woods where the tall
beggar had disappeared. "After that man! He's a danger to the land!" "Hardly."
Merula the Marvelous stepped out of the wood, his eyes still glowing red and
the hood of his black cloak now pulled down on his collar "I am not the one
riding about the north, scaring witless peasants half-to-death with tales of
dark phantoms and impending famine." Owden's shoulders slumped, then he
lowered his mace and fixed his gaze on the portly wizard. "Merula the Massive?
Explain yourself! You're interfering with a royal commission charged with a
matter of the highest urgency." "Really?" Azoun urged his horse out of his
hiding place behind the priests, bringing with him Dauneth Marliir and the
final rank of Purple Dragons. "Strange, I do not recall commissioning a
company of 'Badgeless Maces' into the Purple Dragons." The entire band of
priests wheeled at once, their faces paling at the sight of Azoun's
battle-crowned helm. "Majesty!" Owden swung out of his saddle, then knelt on
the ground and bowed his head. His priests followed half a step behind, moving
so quickly that several overcautious dragoneers lowered their lances. Azoun
motioned the lances up again, then continued to look at Owden and his priests.
"In fact, I don't recall commissioning any company of priests at all, nor
charging them with ..." He looked to Dauneth. "What was the phrase, Lord
Warden?" "I believe it was 'A matter of the highest urgency,' Sire." "Ah yes."
Azoun repeated the phrase as though trying to refresh his memory then shook
his head. "No, I'm quite certain I never said such a thing." Owden dared to
raise his head. "Forgive my presumption, Majesty, but we, ah, assumed the
title." "Assumed, Harvestmaster Owden?" asked Merula. He stepped to Owden's
side, then glanced in Dauneth's direction. "That would make you an imposter,
you know. It would make you all impostors." The king bit his tongue, trying
desperately to hide a sudden surge of anger. Merula was doing his best to
place Owden in the untenable position of confessing to the impersonation of a
royal agent, or admitting that Tanalasta had defied the king's order.
Apparently, the wizard remained concerned about the War Wizards' future after
Tanalasta took the throne-this despite Azoun's personal guarantee that their
position would be secure no matter who succeeded him. "Perhaps it was Princess
Tanalasta who commissioned you, Harvestmaster?" Merula continued to look at
Dauneth. Azoun forced himself to keep an impassive face and stay silent. The
matter fell under the purview of the Lord High Warden, and any interference
from the king would be taken either as a sign of favor to the priests, or as a
lack of confidence in the crown princess's obedience to duty. "I am sorry to
say that Princess Tanalasta did not commission us." Owden addressed himself
directly to Azoun. "You see, Sire, it was something of an emergency. We
happened across a free farmer who had seen the blight-bearer-" "This tall
beggar you have been asking about," said Azoun, happy for any pretext to take
control of the conversation. "You know, of course, that your inquiries have
created a panic." "I apologize, Majesty," Owden said, plucking at his purple
cape, "but that is the reason for our disguises. We had hoped the inquiries of
a company of Purple Dragons would seem less conspicuous." "And well they might
have, if you had acted like a company of soldiers," said Azoun. "In pausing to
repair every blighted field you happened across, you persuaded everyone you
met that I am so concerned about the situation that I have begun commissioning
whole companies of priests." "It may come to that yet, Majesty," said
Owden. "I'm sure you hope it will," said Dauneth, "but I won't have you
causing a panic in these lands simply to promote yourselves. The peasants are
already burning each others' fields at the first sign of a wilt, and seven men
have been murdered for the crime of matching your beggar's
description." Owden's face fell at the news, but he kept his gaze fixed on
Azoun. "I am sorry to have caused this trouble, Majesty, but it changes
nothing. We must find this blight-carrier and stop him from wandering about.
Until we do that, we must keep restoring the fields he infects and prevent the
disease from spreading on its own." "I am sure he'll be found soon," said
Azoun. "Every company of Purple Dragons north of the High Road is watching for
him. Nor do I think there is much chance of the blight spreading on its
own-not with the peasants burning their fields at the first sign of a brown
leaf." "That will help certainly, but we are much practiced in these matters,"
said Owden. "You must let us continue our search-if not as Purple Dragons,
then as humble clerics." "I'm afraid that won't be possible," said
Dauneth. Owden finally directed his attention to the High Warden. "You're
arresting us?" 'The Lord High Warden has no choice," said Merula, smirking.
"Impersonating a royal agent is a high crime, punishable by death." "By
death?" This from one of Owden's priests, a young red-haired woman no more
than twenty. "We were only trying to help!" Merula gave the woman a
crocodile's smile. "I'm sorry, but unless Princess Tanalasta commissioned
you-" "She didn't," said Owden. He shot the woman a warning scowl, then rose
and stepped toward Dauneth. "Do with us what you must, Lord Warden, but I pray
you, do not let this dark beggar wander these lands long. The blight may seem
a little enough thing now, but that is only because we have contained
it." Moving slowly so as not to alarm the guards, the harvestmaster pulled his
mace from its carrying loop and presented the handle to Dauneth. Azoun shot
Merula a look that left no doubt about how the wizard's mistrust had been
received. Merula looked the other way and pretended not to notice, more secure
than he should be in Vangerdahast's ability to shield him from royal
displeasure. The man's smugness was a better argument than any Tanalasta had
made for taking the war wizards down a notch. Dauneth kept his hands on his
saddle horn, making no move to accept Owden's mace. "Actually, Merula may have
overstated matters." The High Warden cast a querying glance at Azoun, who
smiled inwardly but kept a stern outer face and nodded curtly. "As I recall,
those robes were issued to you on command of the royal magician for the
purpose of escorting Princess Tanalasta into the Stonelands." "And while that
may fall short of a royal commission, it does excuse you for wearing them,"
said Azoun. Though he approved of Dauneth's quick thinking, he could not let
the Badgeless Maces off the hook entirely. He had worked too hard to bring the
tumult of the past few days under control. "What you must answer for is
disobeying my wishes and returning to chase this beggar instead of going with
her into the Stonelands." Owden returned his mace to its carrying ring, relief
flooding his face. "Of course, Majesty. That is really very easy to explain.
In fact, I've come to think it was what Vangerdahast intended all
along." "Truly? Now that will take some explaining." Azoun raised his hand,
commanding the harvestmaster to remain silent until he finished. "The queen
will certainly wish a careful accounting of exactly what was said and done, in
all the particulars-down to the minutest detail, I am sure. You and your
priests are invited to return with us to Arabel, where you will be my guests
until such a time as I am satisfied that you have prepared a record to the
queen's liking." Owden's eyes dulled as he comprehended the king's meaning. He
bowed stiffly, then said, "As you command, Sire." "Good. On the journey back,
perhaps you would be kind enough to tell Merula and me what you have learned
about this beggar and his blight." Azoun glanced darkly in Merula's direction,
then said, "I'm sure the war wizards can handle the matter-once they have the
vaguest idea what's going on." The dig seemed to delight Owden as much as it
irritated Merula. "It would be a pleasure, Sire. Merula and I do enjoy talking
while we travel." "Oh, immensely," growled the wizard. Azoun smiled at
Merula's glower. "Excellent," he said, feeling that he finally had matters
once again under control. "Dauneth, what say we camp tonight? It's too late to
start home, and we don't want to put that poor free farmer out of his hut." "A
fine idea, Sire," said the High Warden, motioning to his lionars to set things
in motion. Azoun looked up at the darkening sky and saw the first star appear
in the east. "It's been too long since I've done this." He began to finger his
signet ring, then pictured Vangerdahast's bearded face. "Too long indeed." * *
* * * Vangerdahast was standing on the grassy collar on the outlet side of
Orc's Pool, giving Cadimus and Tanalasta's mare a few minutes grazing time
when he heard Azoun's voice. I'll be sleeping under the stars tonight, old
friend. Vangerdahast looked down and sighed wearily. Though the wizard's own
signet ring was in Cadimus's saddle bags with most of his other magic, that
did not prevent Azoun from contacting him. Mindful of the fact that he needed
to be available to the royal family even when he had removed his ring to work
in the laboratory or take a bath, the royal magician had taken the precaution
of fashioning the family rings so that they could contact him whether or not
he was wearing his. This wasn't the first time he had had reason to regret his
foresight-a late evening with a particularly frolicsome water nymph leaped
immediately to mind-but it was the first time he had ever had reason to let it
frighten him. "And I won't be sleeping at all, thanks to you," Vangerdahast
replied, speaking aloud. "What news?" Matters are well in hand here. You can
bring Tanalasta back any time. "I'm afraid I can't." Vangerdahast began to
root through Tanalasta's saddle bags, pulling out her bracers, rings, and
weathercloak. "Tanalasta won a bet. We're at Orc's Pool." A bet? "Don't ask,"
the wizard said. "And it gets worse." She won't give up on the
temple? 'Worse." What could be worse than that? "A Cormaeril," Vangerdahast
explained. "A Chauntea worshiping Cormaeril ranger named Rowen. She seemed
quite taken with him." I thought you had a plan! Azoun complained. What kind
of plan is that? "Don't panic. Maybe he'll turn out to have a nasty temper or
hate royals or something." Vangerdahast closed Tanalasta's saddlebags and
started around the pool toward the camp. "But we have bigger problems than
that, at the moment. Ask Alaphondar to find out everything he can about a
creature called a ghazneth. It's a phantom or demon or something whose wings
protect it from magic. I can't seem to kill it." You what? "It's been
harassing us-and Alusair, too." As Vangerdahast approached the camp, he heard
a soft splashing in the water. "It may have something to do with Emperel's
disappearance, but I don't know. We haven't been able to catch up with
Alusair." This shouldn't be taking so long. What's going on up there? "It
seems the ghazneth is attracted to magic," Vangerdahast said, "which is why
Alusair took off her ring when I tried to contact her from House Marliir. I'm
afraid we won't be able to talk like this for a while, old friend." Wait.
Azoun sounded worried. I'll send Merula and some Purple Dragons-and Owden is
here. "That would only make it harder to talk Tanalasta out of this mess,"
Vangerdahast said. "If things get dangerous again-" Again? "Have no fear,
Sire, she handled herself quite well." Vangerdahast stopped outside the
boulders and lowered his voice. "As I was saying, I can always teleport us
back to Arabel." Vangerdahast, I hope you know what you're doing. "Of course!"
Vangerdahast was genuinely hurt. "We can't give up now ... unless you fancy
turning your royal parade ground into a vegetable plot." Azoun's only reply
was a groan. The wizard smiled to himself, then stepped into the boulder
circle to find Rowen sitting at water's edge, staring out into the steam
toward a shapely white blur that could only be Princess Tanalasta floating on
the surface of the dark pool. Jaw set, Vangerdahast strode through camp and
planted a boot square in the ranger's back, shoving him headlong into the
steaming water. Rowen vanished under the surface for a moment, then emerged
three paces to the left with a raised sword. When he saw Vangerdahast standing
in the moonlight, he lowered his weapon. "It was you?" "It was," Vangerdahast
growled. "And you may consider yourself lucky to escape with a dunking. Spying
on a royal princess's bath could be deemed a crime against the crown." Rowen's
jaw fell. "I wasn't spying!" "No? Just peeping?" "Vangerdahast!" Tanalasta
swam over and stood, crossing her arms in front of her breasts. "You owe Rowen
an apology. I asked him to keep watch while I bathed." "I doubt you asked him
to watch you," growled Vangerdahast, though he suspected the possibility had
at least occurred to Tanalasta. The wizard glowered in Rowen's direction. "Had
you been guarding the princess instead of leering at her, you would have heard
me coming." "I was watching the horizon," Rowen protested. Though Tanalasta
was still covering herself with her arms, he took care to avert his eyes as he
spoke. "Milady, you must believe me. Why I didn't hear him-" "Pay him no heed,
Rowen," said Tanalasta, still covering herself with her arms. "Old Snoop is
famous for skulking about the palace halls. One does not dare hold a personal
conversation without first examining every garderobe and alcove within twenty
paces." Though twenty paces was actually something of an underestimate,
Vangerdahast feigned hurt. "Even were that true, Princess, I was not skulking
this time." He stepped to the edge of the water and opened Tanalasta's
weathercloak. "I was speaking with your father." Rowen's face grew as pale as
the moonlight, then he glanced across the circle of boulders. "The king is
with you?" "Hardly." Vangerdahast motioned the ranger out of the water, then
averted his own eyes so Tanalasta could slip into the cloak. "Will you hurry?
We may not have much time." "Time?" Rowen climbed out of the pool, being very
careful not to look back. "Why not?" "The king is in Mabel," Tanalasta
explained, slipping into the weathercloak. "They were far-speaking." Rowen
spun on Vangerdahast. "Magic? Alusair warned you!" "It was the king she didn't
warn, young man," Vangerdahast bristled. "Now, be a good lad and fetch the
horses." "Of course." Rowen's expression changed from anger to chagrin.
"You're right, we don't have much time." The ranger sheathed his sword, then
snatched up his saddle and rushed off in the direction of the horses.
Tanalasta started to follow, but Vangerdahast caught her by the arm. "Aren't
you forgetting something, Princess?" He pointed toward her neatly folded tunic
and trousers. "You really shouldn't tempt poor Rowen. It's unfair to vaunt a
prize he has no chance of winning." "Who says he doesn't?" The princess
snatched up her clothes and stepped behind a boulder. Vangerdahast groaned
inwardly. He pulled a gold coin from his pocket and tossed it into the air,
then spoke an incantation as it started to fall. The coin stopped at about eye
level. "Vangerdahast, have you lost your mind?" Tanalasta peered out from
behind her rock. "That's what attracts it!" "So I've been told." Vangerdahast
plucked the coin out of the air and began to rub it between his palms. A faint
green aura appeared around the coin, barely brighter than the moonlight
illuminating it against his palm. "Now, watch and learn, my dear, watch and
learn." Vangerdahast waited until Rowen returned with the horses, then asked,
"Which way will we be traveling, young man?" When Rowen pointed into the
hills, Vangerdahast turned and flicked the coin in the opposite direction. It
whistled down the gulch and sailed out over the flatlands, vanishing from
sight like a shooting star. "A false trail?" Rowen asked. Vangerdahast nodded.
"It should buy us an hour or two." "You may be underestimating the ghazneth's
speed." Rowen crouched behind a boulder, then pointed toward the mouth of the
gully, where the distant silhouette of a moonlit ghazneth was wheeling out
over the plain. "How long will your coin stay in the air?" Tanalasta
asked. "About as long as it takes the ghazneth to catch it," Vangerdahast
continued to stare out over the empty plain, astonished at how quickly the
dark creature had faded from sight. "How long that will be, who can say?" "But
sooner than we'd like," concluded Tanalasta. The princess stepped from behind
her boulder, now fully clothed, both bracers clasped on one arm and the
weather-cloak thrown unclasped over her shoulders. The bracers would not
radiate magic until she transferred one to her bare wrist, but closing the
cloak's clasp would automatically activate several magics sure to draw the
ghazneth's attention. Vangerdahast pulled his own weathercloak over his
shoulders, leaving it unclasped, then they mounted and quietly left Orc's Pool
behind. 9 The slope lay blanketed in shadow as thick as ink. Vangerdahast rode
in silence, keeping a careful watch on the dark sky behind them, cringing
inwardly at the constant clatter of horse hooves on shifting stone. He
expected to see the ghazneth come streaking out of the mists above Orc's Pool
at any moment, but his greatest fear was that he would not see it at all, that
it would swoop in from some unwatched corner of the sky and disembowel them
all before he could cast a single spell. His fingers kept tracing patterns of
protection. Only the knowledge that the magic would draw the phantom like a
signal fire kept him from uttering the incantations to activate the
enchantments. Finally, the companions crested the top of the hummock and began
to traverse a barren, moonlit clearing lacking so much as a boulder to hide
behind. They did not have even the stonemurk to conceal them, for the rolling
hill lands made the wind too erratic and scattered to sustain its load of sand
and loess. The trio urged their mounts across the clearing at a
trot. Vangerdahast finally began to relax when they reached the other side of
the hillock and descended into the sheltering shadows of the adjacent gulch,
but not so Rowen. The ranger continued to push hard, leading them up a sandy
creek at a near gallop for several long minutes, then abruptly dismounting to
double back along a dangerous slope of blond bedrock. When they reached the
summit, they mounted again and trotted across another exposed summit, then
repeated the process three more times before Rowen finally dropped into a
winding gulch and stayed there. The ranger scanned the sky one last time, then
waved Vangerdahast and Tanalasta up beside him. "We'll follow this gully up
onto Gnoll Flats," Rowen said, "then turn south toward the Storm Horns. The
stonemurk could be pretty bad up there, but it'll die down for a while about
dawn. We'll be looking for a pair of mountains Alusair has been calling the
Mule Ears." "We'll know them when we see them, I take it," Vangerdahast said.
He did not bother asking Rowen's reason for detailing the route. With the
ghazneth on their trail, being separated was one of the more pleasant reasons
it was wise for everyone to know the way. "Is that where we'll meet
Alusair?" Rowen shifted in his saddle and was a little too careful to keep his
eye on the trail. "Actually, no. That's where she was three days ago, when she
received Tanalasta's sending." "And where is she now?" Vangerdahast was all
too confident he would not like the answer. Rowen shrugged. "We'll have to
see." He turned to Tanalasta. "You can follow a trail, can't you?" "I can,"
said Tanalasta. Rowen nodded as though he had expected no less and drew a
somewhat surprised smile from Tanalasta. Not seeming to notice the effect he
had on her, he continued to address the princess, ignoring Vangerdahast
entirely. "Alusair was somewhat, er, reluctant to suspend her search," the
ranger explained. "We'll return to the last camp and track her from
there." "Then she hasn't found Emperel." Vangerdahast leaned on his saddle
horn and stretched over to infuse himself into the conversation. "So what has
she been doing up here?" "Following him, obviously," said Tanalasta. "Will you
let the man speak, Vangey?" Vangerdahast shot a scowl at the princess, but she
did not seem to notice. Her gaze was fixed too sternly on the
ranger. "Continue, Rowen." "As you command, Princess." "She asked you to call
her Tanalasta," grumbled Vangerdahast. The cad was winning her favor far too
quickly with that respectful act of his. "And why not? You've already seen the
crown jewels." "Vangerdahast!" Tanalasta gave him a withering scowl, then
looked back to Rowen. "Must I call on Rowen to remind you who is the royal
here?" Rowen's eyes grew bright and white in the moonlight. He glanced between
the princess and Vangerdahast, allowing his sword hand to drift uneasily
toward his sword pommel. The wizard started to utter a dark warning, then
caught himself and thought better of it. The more he picked on the boy, the
more determined Tanalasta would be to like him. Vangerdahast looked away,
preparing himself for a distasteful task. "I hope the princess will forgive
me. I was only trying to put the boy at ease." "His name is Rowen," said
Tanalasta. "Please, if the Royal Magician wants to call me a boy, I won't be
offended," said Rowen. "To tell you the truth, it's been so many years since
I've been called that I find it funny." "Then I am happy to make you laugh,
Rowen," said Tanalasta. "From henceforth, the Royal Magician may address us as
'boy' and 'girl,' and we will call him 'grandfather.'" "I am sure the royal
court will find your decision most amusing," Vangerdahast replied, finding
himself grinding his teeth. As trustworthy as Rowen might be, Vangerdahast
could not have the princess falling in love with a Cormaeril. After the
Abraxus Affair, that would be tantamount to bedding a Sembian. "If we are done
making young Cormaeril laugh, perhaps he could tell us about Emperel?" Rowen
looked to Tanalasta, and when she nodded, began. "There really isn't much to
tell. We picked up his trail a few miles east of Halfhap and followed him
across the Stonebolt Trail toward Shouk's Ambush, then he suddenly found
someone else's trail and followed it south to a tomb in the foothills." "A
tomb?" Vangerdahast asked. "How old?" Tanalasta asked. "What type?" "It was
very old, Milady," said Rowen. "As for the type-I'm no expert on such things.
It was set beneath the roots of a great twisted oak, black of bark and so
filled with rot that it's a wonder the thing was still standing. There were
old glyphs carved into the trunk such as I have never seen." "Glyphs?"
Tanalasta asked, growing excited. "Were they Elvish?" Rowen shrugged. "I
wouldn't know. They were very sinuous and graceful." Tanalasta said, "They
sound Elvish." "As does the tomb," Vangerdahast agreed. "You're thinking Tree
of the Body..." "But twisted and black?" Rowen's head pivoted back and forth
between his escorts, not quite keeping pace with the exchange. "Twisted and
black," said Tanalasta. "Yes, that is interesting." "No elf would sprout such
a thing, and if it's rotting..." "There are evil elves." "True, but drow grow
mushrooms, not trees," Vangerdahast said. "And they live underground." "I'm
talking about wood elves, not drow. Don't you recall the Year of Distant
Thunder?" Rowen turned to Tanalasta and said, "If I may-" "The Bleth family,
of course," said Vangerdahast, cutting the cad off, "but Mondar was in the
wrong there." "They could have told him that before they killed his whole
family," Tanalasta said. "It was a massacre-an elven massacre." "Excuse me!"
Rowen said, raising his voice loud enough to be heard. "But I am sorry to
disappoint you. The elves have nothing to do with this tomb." Vangerdahast and
Tanalasta both frowned, then asked together, "You're sure?" "We found some
garish old rings, a silver hair comb," said Rowen, "and a lady's stiletto
hidden in the handle of a brass fan." Tanalasta raised her brow. "That's
certainly not elven." "Nor were the vambraces in the next tomb," said
Rowen. "The next tomb?" Vangerdahast gasped. "There were two?" Rowen shook his
head. "Three ... so far, all opened. Emperel followed whoever he was tracking
to each of them. We think that's where be ran into the ghazneth." Vangerdahast
and Tanalasta fell silent, trying in their own ways to make sense of what the
ranger was telling them. The tombs Rowen described did not belong to the
Sleeping Sword. Vangerdahast visited that cavern periodically to inspect its
condition and renew the stasis spell that kept the young lords in suspended
animation, and he knew for a fact there was not a tree within two miles of
it. "These tombs," Tanalasta said. "Were they all similar?" "Some seemed older
than others," said Rowen. "Or at least the trees were larger, and they had the
same glyphs carved into the trunks. But the things we found in. each one were
different. In the last one, it was a war wizards' throat clasp." The ranger
gestured to the unfastened clasps at the throats of his two
companions. Vangerdahast raised his brow. "I don't suppose you have that clasp
with you?" "Sorry. Princess Alusair said-" "I can imagine what she said,"
Vangerdahast replied. "Quiet!" Tanalasta hissed. The princess guided her horse
over in front of her companions, forcing them to a stop. Vangerdahast's eyes
went instantly to the sky and his hand to his throat clasp. If the ghazneth
had found them anyway... Tanalasta's shadowy hand reached out to catch him by
the arm. "Orcs," she whispered. Vangerdahast almost sighed in relief, then
realized it would be impossible to scatter the orcs without using magic and
alerting the ghazneth to their location. He scanned the gully slopes, already
plotting a devastating sequence of fire spells. If Tanalasta could see the
swiners, then the swiners could see her. Orc eyes were so sensitive they could
see a creature's body heat in the dark. When Vangerdahast detected no sign of
the creatures, he asked, "Where?" "I don't know," Tanalasta replied. "I smell
them." "Smell them?" Vangerdahast hissed. "If they were close enough to smell,
we'd be dead by now." "If we were relying on your nose, yes," whispered Rowen,
"but Tanalasta has taken a bath. She can smell something other than
herself." The ranger dismounted and scraped a fistful of dirt from the gully
floor, letting it pour from his hand. Once he had determined that the breeze
was blowing across the gully, he led Vangerdahast and Tanalasta over to the
windward side of the ravine and motioned for them to dismount. The trio spent
the next half hour stumbling along in the shadows without seeing any sign of
the orcs. Vangerdahast was about to insist that they mount again when a
distant clatter began to echo up the gulch behind them. They paused to listen
until the orcs had passed, then returned to their saddles and continued up the
gully. The companions remained silent for another half hour, until they
reached the head of the gulch and ascended onto the moonlit expanse of the
Gnoll Flats. Despite Rowen's earlier warning, the stonemurk was not bad-at
least not compared to the plains closer to the Stonebolt Trail-and
Vangerdahast could barely see the dark wall of the Storm Horns in the far
distance. Try as he might, he could find no peaks that reminded him of mule
ears. They stayed close to the edge of the flats, ready to duck down the
nearest ravine at the first sign of orcs or the ghazneth. After the sheltering
confines of the gully, the empty expanses made Vangerdahast feel exposed and
cranky, and only the thought of crossing the barrens in full daylight
prevented him from suggesting they make camp in the shelter of one of the many
ravines they were passing. If the lack of cover made Tanalasta or Rowen
nervous, they did not show it. The pair rode side-by-side for the rest of the
night, their legs almost touching. Despite his weariness and petulant mood,
Vangerdahast found he did not have the heart to intrude on the moment-not even
for the good of the realm. Clearly, the ranger respected the princess for her
knowledge and talent, and she seemed to return that respect with genuine
fondness. Outside of Alaphondar and her own family, Tanalasta had experienced
little enough of either in the palace. If she had found it in the Stonelands
with Rowen Cormaeril, then the royal magician could put Cormyr's interests
aside for a few hours. Despite the trouble she was causing him, Vangerdahast
loved the princess like a daughter, and he wanted to see her as happy as it
was possible for a queen to be. Vangerdahast could never let them marry, of
course. Allowing the child of a Cormaeril to ascend to the throne would insult
the families who had stayed loyal during the Abraxus Affair, and invite
mischief from those who had wavered, but marriage was not the only trail to
carnal happiness. If their fondness continued to grow, perhaps he could talk
to Tanalasta about working out a discreet arrangement. He had certainly done
the same thing often enough for Azoun, and it might provide just the leverage
he needed to disabuse her of this royal temple nonsense. The eastern horizon
was beginning to brighten with predawn light when Vangerdahast heard the pair
murmuring quietly. He slumped forward and allowed his chin to drop onto his
chest, then urged his horse slowly forward until he was close enough to hear
their conversation. His eavesdropping spells were far more effective and
convenient, but with the ghazneth flying about, he had no choice except to
resort to conventional methods. "...led you to worship the Mother?" Tanalasta
was asking. "Chauntea is hardly a popular goddess among the nobility." "Until
Gaspar dishonored us, we Cormaerils were less a family of polities than of
land," Rowen explained. "Chauntea saw fit to bless our farms with her bounty,
and we venerated her in return." "I see," said Tanalasta. "You still worship
her, though you have lost your lands?" "I do." Rowen looked away, then added,
"After I have redeemed my name in Princess Alusair's service, it is my hope
that the king will someday grant me a small holding." Tanalasta reached across
to grasp the ranger's hand. "Have faith, Rowen. Chauntea rewards those who
serve her." "Aye, those who serve the Mother flourish in her bounty." The
exchange sent a shudder down Vangerdahast's spine. He urged his horse forward
between theirs, forcing the princess to withdraw her hand. "What is it?" the
wizard asked, feigning a yawn. He saw now that Rowen would be more dangerous
as a lover than as a husband. "Is something wrong?" Tanalasta scowled.
"Nothing a little consideration couldn't cure." Vangerdahast blinked groggily.
"Am I interrupting something?" There was just enough of an edge in his voice
to hint that it had better not be so, and he looked from the princess to
Rowen. "Have you been sizing up the crown jewels again?" "Vangerdahast!"
Tanalasta raised her hand as though she might slap the wizard, then shook her
head in frustration. "You are the only one here who has been behaving
poorly-and I'm quite sure you know it!" Vangerdahast continued to glare at
Rowen. "Well?" The ranger's face darkened. "It would be a crime for me to
respond as you deserve, Lord Magician, but you must know you are assailing my
honor. I have only pure thoughts for the princess." "Good." Vangerdahast
glanced at Tanalasta just long enough to wince at the fury in her eyes, then
looked back to Rowen. "Because you know how unfortunate it would be if she
were to become, ah, attached to you." Rowen looked confused. "Attached? To
me?" "Pay him no mind," said Tanalasta. "Vangerdahast has a notoriously tawdry
mind." Rowen's posture grew tense. "I see. Well, there is no danger of that.
Roosters do not pursue swans." "No, they don't," agreed Vangerdahast. "They
keep their distance, lest people start mistaking the swan for a hen." "I am
not a poultry bird." Tanalasta raised her chin and slapped the reins against
her weary horse's neck, goading it into a trot. "I will thank you both
to-" Her sentence was cut short by the pained shriek of a horse. Fearing
Tanalasta's mount had broken a leg, Vangerdahast sank his heels into Cadimus's
flanks and shot after the princess. As he approached, she wheeled around and
sprang past in the opposite direction, leaning out of her saddle to grab for
something on the ground. A cacophony of snarling and snorting arose from the
rim of the plain, and it finally dawned on the wizard that the horse's cry had
been caused by something more serious than a broken leg. Vangerdahast spun
Cadimus toward the sound and saw a wall of orc silhouettes clambering over the
rim of the plain. The swiners were no more than a hundred paces distant, with
thick snouts and pointy ears outlined in black against the purple horizon.
Closer by, a dozen hunch-shouldered shapes were rising from a line of shallow
camouflage pits not far behind Rowen, who lay struggling to drag himself free
of his thrashing horse. The poor beast had four crooked spears lodged in its
rib cage, and every time it tried to roll to its knees, its breath would
wheeze out around the shafts. Tanalasta brought her mount to a stop beside the
fallen horse and stretched down toward Rowen. He reached up to grasp her hand,
then his horse screeched again as its abdomen was pierced by a rough-hewn
spear. Another shaft hissed through the air above the princess's back, and two
more clattered into the stones around the hooves of her horse. The ranger
looked back toward the camouflage pits, then quickly pulled his arm away-the
first twelve orcs were only ten paces away. "There's no time, Princess.
Go!" "And leave you here? What kind of lady would that make me?" Tanalasta
swung out of the saddle and glanced back at Vangerdahast. "Do something!" The
command was hardly necessary. Vangerdahast was already holding one of his
favorite wands. As soon as Tanalasta stooped down to shove Rowen's fallen
horse off him, he shouted his command word and whipped the tip at the closest
orc. The brute cried out in shock and went tumbling across the ground
backward, limbs flailing and head cracking against the rocky ground. The
wizard repeated the gesture three more times before the princess rocked the
horse high enough for Rowen to pull out of his stirrup. The ranger dragged
himself free and stood, blocking Vangerdahast's angle to the remaining
orcs. "By the Purple Dragon!" Vangerdahast moved forward to get a better
angle, then sent another ore flying. The rest of the horde was fast coming in
from the side, and they would soon be within spear-throwing range. "Tanalasta,
get that fool out of the way!" "Watch your manners, Vangerdahast." Tanalasta
swung back into her saddle, then reached for her throat clasp. "See to your
horse Rowen, then it's time for us to leave." Vangerdahast stopped on the
other side of Rowen's horse and cleared the area with three quick shakes of
his wand, then jammed it back into its sleeve and reached into his cloak. It
seemed to take forever to find the component he needed, perhaps because his
eyes were already scanning the brightening sky for the ghazneth's dark
wings. Rowen brought his sword down across the back of his horse's neck, then
grabbed the princess's outstretched hand and swung into the saddle behind her.
He slashed at something on the other side of Tanalasta's horse, and an orc
squealed in pain. Tanalasta slapped her bracer and blasted another with four
golden bolts of magic. Then, finally, she wheeled her mount around and shoved
her hand into the weathercloak's escape pocket. There was a nearly inaudible
pop, and Vangerdahast found himself staring across Rowen's dead horse at three
stunned orcs. The wizard dropped his reins and gestured with his free hand,
blasting two of them apart with magic bolts, then finally found a small bar of
iron. He pointed this at the third trembling orc and rattled off a quick
spell, then commanded, "Move nothing." The orc's arms dropped to its sides,
and Vangerdahast spun in his saddle to find the largest part of the horde only
thirty paces away. He fished a small vial from his cloak pocket and quickly
unstoppered it, then pointed his hand at a spot about fifteen paces away. The
wizard started a long incantation and began to pour a stream of white grains
from the small flask. As the granules fell, they flashed into smoke, and a
tiny flame flickered to life where he was pointing. By the time he finished,
the orcs had begun to hurl their spears in his direction. The range was still
too great for the crooked weapons to have any accuracy, but Vangerdahast did
not feel like taking chances. He circled around Rowen's dead horse and waited
for the leading swiners to reach the line of tiny flames he had created on the
ground, then spoke the command word. A searing curtain of flame sprang to
life, rising more than twenty feet into the air and stretching three hundred
paces in each direction. The air filled instantly with the wail of dying orcs,
and the stench of charred flesh grew overwhelming. Scarecrows of flame
separated from the fiery wall and stumbled around blindly for a few minutes,
then collapsed to the ground to burn themselves out. Vangerdahast watched long
enough to be certain none of his foes made it through the flame wall in one
piece, then turned to the orc he had ordered to stand still. The swiner was
standing in the same place, staring at his feet with wide, red-tinged eyes.
The wizard rode up beside the trembling warrior, kicked the fellow's spear out
of his grasp, and scanned the heavens one last time. The sun had already
crested the horizon, and now a brilliant golden light was spreading westward
across the sky. The winds were, as Rowen had promised last night, remarkably
still, and there was no stonemurk to obscure visibility in any
direction. Vangerdahast studied the heavens until he felt certain the ghazneth
had not yet come, then dismounted and rubbed a small square of silk over his
prisoner's grimy armor. The orc snorted in its guttural language, begging his
tormentor to stop toying with it and be done with it. The wizard only smiled
and whispered a soft incantation. He stuffed the ruined silk into the
creature's mouth and mounted his horse again, then rode a short distance off
and called, "Flee!" The orc stumbled a single step forward and caught itself.
After a brief glance in Vangerdahast's direction, it turned and scuttled away
without even taking the time to pick up its spear. The wizard turned south
toward the Storm Horns and saw his companions waving to him from the crest of
a small ridge nearly a mile distant. Behind them, the rocky barrens and
scattered brush of Gnoll Flats gave way to a torturous labyrinth of
dun-colored spires and twisting canyons that slowly rose toward the barren
slopes of two high, slender peaks that could only be the Mule
Ears. Vangerdahast clasped his weathercloak and thrust his hand into his
escape pocket. A black door hissed into existence before him, and he quickly
urged Cadimus forward. He would not be able to use the pocket for the rest of
the day, but he had plenty of other ways to leave an area quickly. Besides,
Tanalasta had already used hers, and he had no intention of going anywhere
without her-especially not with Rowen riding the same horse. An instant later,
Vangerdahast found himself sitting beside his companions, struggling to
acclimate to his new location. No matter how many times he teleported, even
over such a short distance, he still suffered from that first moment of
bewilderment. Tanalasta's hand grasped his shoulder and quickly undid his
weathercloak's throat clasp. "Are you all right, Vangey?" she asked, still
holding his arm. "You're a royal pain in the arse, but I'd hate to lose you to
an orc." "I'm fine." Vangerdahast blinked the last of his confusion away. They
were much closer to the labyrinth than he had realized, with the mouth of a
large, baked-mud canyon just a few hundred paces ahead. "Let's hurry. I
slapped an orc with some decoy magic, but with this light, it won't take the
ghazneth long to discover its mistake." When Vangerdahast started forward,
Rowen leaned over to grab his reins. "This is the way to the Mule Ears." He
pointed toward a much smaller canyon a half mile to the east. "Nothing lies
that way but trouble and dead ends." "Then stop wasting our time telling me
about it," the wizard grumbled. "And why don't you ride with me. Cadimus
is..." Vangerdahast did not bother to finish, for Tanalasta had already turned
and started toward the distant canyon at a stiff canter. He spurred his
stallion after her, idly wondering if there was not some way to convince them
that Chauntea would frown on burdening a poor mare with two riders. 10 By the
time they ducked into the small canyon, the sun had risen a full span above
the horizon. The terrain in the gorge was even more barren than that of the
stony plain, consisting of little more than eroded dirt walls and a lonely
scrub bush every ten or twelve paces. They stopped about thirty paces in to
let their weary mounts drink from a muddy spring, and Vangerdahast crept back
to the canyon mouth to watch for the ghazneth. It was not long before he saw a
dark pair of wings swoop in from the west, then circle through smoke rising
from his wall of flame and fly off in the direction his decoy had
fled. Vangerdahast waited until he was certain the thing was gone, then rushed
up the canyon at his best waddle. "Time to go. We have about five minutes
before our dank friend discovers my trick." Rowen passed Cadimus's reins to
the wizard and turned back toward Tanalasta's mount. "Ahem-as much as I'm sure
you enjoy sharing a saddle with the princess, young man, Cadimus is twice the
mount she's riding." Vangerdahast mounted and offered the ranger his hand.
"We'll all be faster if you ride with me." "A good point." Rowen turned and
reached for the wizard's hand, but Tanalasta was already swinging out of her
own saddle. "It will be even faster if we switch horses." The princess reached
up and patted Vangerdahast's ample belly. "Rowen and I together can't be much
more than you alone. You take my mane, and let poor Cadimus carry us." "A fine
idea," the wizard replied, "but you know how temperamental-" "Cadimus is more
of a coward, actually," said Tanalasta. "I had no trouble controlling him back
at the Stonebolt Trail-or have you forgotten who returned him to you?" "Very
well," Vangerdahast grumbled. "I can't have you arguing the matter until the
ghazneth finds us." They switched horses and started up the canyon again.
Vangerdahast tried at first to keep a careful watch on the northern sky, but
quickly realized the futility of that as they twisted and turned through the
labyrinth. He could not imagine how Rowen could know where they were going.
The ranger kept turning down narrow side canyons, which would double back in
the direction from which they had just come, then double back again and angle
off in some new direction that was impossible to guess. For a while,
Vangerdahast thought the ranger was following his own tracks or a system of
cairns, but when he dared to take his eyes off the sky, he saw no sign of
either. After nearly two hours of riding, the canyon opened up into a broad,
flat-bottomed basin ringed by more than a dozen cramped gorges. The trio
paused without dismounting and allowed their horses to drink from another pool
of muddy water. Vangerdahast found the sun in the sky and was finally able to
determine his bearings, for all the good it would do him. "Rowen, how do you
know which way to go?" he asked. "I can't even keep track of my
directions." "You mean there's one trick the Royal Magician doesn't know?"
Tanalasta joked. "I'm not so sure we should tell." "There are a lot of tricks
I don't know," said Vangerdahast, "and you are teaching me more all the
time." "This one is not so difficult." Rowen passed Vangerdahast a small flat
stick with notches carved at various angles along both edges and explained,
"It's a map stick. You keep track of your turns-" "By the notches on each
side," Vangerdahast said, examining the stick. "And the angle confirms that
you're on count." "Very good," laughed Tanalasta. "We'll make a forest-keeper
out of you yet." Vangerdahast eyed her sourly, then passed the stick back to
Rowen. "When you have magic, you don't need sticks." "Except when you can't
use magic," Tanalasta replied. The princess pointed toward the western side of
the basin, where a tiny speck of darkness could be seen arcing above the rim.
Vangerdahast glanced back along their trail, noting the deep round depressions
where their mounts' hooves had broken through the crust of dried
mud. "Tanalasta," the royal magician said, "I know I promised not to bring
this up again-" "Then don't," the princess interrupted sternly. "I'm not
returning to Arabel until I have spoken with Alusair." "Hear me out. This
thing is dangerous. Let's gather a few more wizards and dragoneers, then come
back." "And when the king hears what is happening here and orders you to leave
me in Arabel, you will deny him and bring me back?" "I suppose not, but it was
an idea." The wizard motioned toward the broken ground behind them. "After the
ghazneth finds our trail, it won't take the thing long to find us." "Longer
than you think," said Rowen. "These badlands stretch for a hundred miles along
the base of the mountains, and the canyons are deep. It isn't easy to see into
them even from the rims-much less high in the sky." "I hope you're right,
Rowen," said Tanalasta, "but Edwin Narlok theorizes in his treatise Falcon Fun
that the eyesight of birds of prey is far more acute than our own." Rowen
looked slightly embarrassed. "I haven't read that book, but the idea makes
sense. Otherwise, it would be pretty difficult to hunt from on high." "Of
course, the ghazneth is not a bird of prey-" "But it's wiser not to take
chances." Vangerdahast took a linen glove from his pocket and folded it into
his palm, where he could reach it instantly. "Remind me not to wager with you
anymore, Princess." Tanalasta narrowed her eyes. "If you even think of-" "A
bet is a bet," said Vangerdahast. "This is for the ghazneth. When it finds us,
blast the thing with everything you have. You need to buy me a little
time." Tanalasta continued to eye the glove, but nodded. "As you wish." She
consulted Rowen's map stick, then led the way around the basin into a cool,
shadow-filled canyon suffused with the smell of damp earth. The gorge was as
deep as a well and so narrow that Vangerdahast sometimes found his knees
brushing both sides at once. Even at its broadest, two horses could not have
stood side by side, and it twisted and turned like a snake. The wizard could
not recall a worse place to be ambushed, and he kept a constant watch on the
crooked slot of sky above. He saw the ghazneth twice over the next four hours.
The first was when he glimpsed a tiny V streaking across the narrow strip of
sky ahead of them. It was no larger than his fingernail, and visible for such
a short time it could have been a large vulture instead. The second time, the
wizard had no such doubts. It appeared over the canyon behind them, large
enough now that its wings and body formed a distinct cross, slowly circling
and peering down into the labyrinth. Convinced the phantom had finally found
their trail, Vangerdahast suggested again that it might be wise to teleport
back to Arabel. Tanalasta's only reply was to ask him to leave the extra
horse, and so they pressed on in silence for the rest of the afternoon. With
the sun hidden most of the time behind one canyon rim or the other, it was
difficult to mark the passing time, but Vangerdahast was convinced it had to
be near evening when the gorge suddenly felt less murky. The walls did not
seem to rise quite so high above their heads, and the musty air grew warmer
and more arid. "We'll leave the badlands soon," said Rowen, "It's only a short
ride then to where I last saw Alusair." "One of the opened tombs?" Tanalasta
did not wait for the ranger to answer. "That will be
interesting." Vangerdahast was about to quote the old aphorism about cats and
curiosity when a soft thud sounded next to him. He looked down and saw a
two-inch crater in the dried mud, a gleam of gold barely visible in the
bottom. The wizard frowned, trying to imagine how a golden coin had come to
fall into the canyon-then looked skyward and shouted the alarm. "Watch
your-" A squarish shape came tumbling down into the canyon and struck him in
the chest. The breath huffed out of Vangerdahast's lungs and his feet flew out
of the stirrups. He found himself flat on his back, gasping for air and
groaning in agony. The canyon was filled with screaming voices and flashing
magic and dancing hooves, and it finally came to him that he was lying on the
ground with the battle already raging. Vangerdahast pushed himself to a
sitting position and found a legless, headless torso sprawled across his legs.
He shoved the thing away in horror, then recognized the filthy armor as that
of the orc he had used as a decoy. In his grogginess, he failed to see any
humor in having it returned to him. A horse hoof came down on Vangerdahast's
ankle. A sobering bolt of pain shot up his leg, and he grabbed a hock and
shoved the beast off his throbbing foot. Tanalasta's voice rang out, trolling
the incantation of her one spell, and a flash of golden magic brightened the
canyon. Vangerdahast shook his head clear and saw Rowen's boots dart past on
the other side of the horse, and it occurred to the wizard he had better do
something before the ghazneth killed them all. He opened his hand to discover
that the glove he had been holding was gone. "Vangerdahast!" cried Tanalasta.
"I can't stall any longer!" Vangerdahast glanced over and saw Cadimus turned
sideways in the canyon, the princess sitting astride his back, pointing up the
canyon wall and slapping ineffectually at her wrists. She had already used the
bracers to discharge one set of magic bolts and the single combat spell she
knew to fire another, and it would be some time before she could attack again.
The bracers needed only a few moments to recharge their magic, but in the
middle of a battle, a few moments could be a lifetime. The wizard followed the
angle of Tanalasta's arm and finally saw the ghazneth. Too large by far to fly
into the narrow gorge, the thing was climbing down the canyon wall, descending
headfirst with its huge wings gathered up alongside its body. It was already
halfway down, its white eyes glaring at the canyon floor, where Rowen stood
ready to meet it with nothing more than a sword and rust-coated dagger. This
was going to be easier than Vangerdahast thought. He fetched a wad of sticky
spider web from his cloak pocket and flicked it in the phantom's direction, at
the same time uttering his incantation. The ghazneth's head swiveled toward
the sound of his voice, then the thing pushed off the canyon wall and dropped,
its long-taloned hands already drawing back to rip Rowen open from shoulder to
hip. A circle of web blossomed on the wall behind it, burbling out to engulf
the phantom up to one knee and bring its dive to an unexpected
halt. Vangerdahast sighed in relief then rolled to his feet and found his
glove lying beneath his mount. He plucked it from under the beast's dancing
hooves and shook the dust off, then blew into the collar and whispered his
incantation. The fingers wiggled once, then it drifted from his hand and began
to float in the air before him. The wizard pulled a vial full of dried
fireflies from his pocket and placed one of the tiny insects in the palm of
the floating glove. As Vangerdahast worked, the ghazneth spewed a string of
unspeakable curses and beat its wings against the cliffside, trying to knock
itself free of the entangling web. When that did not work, it twisted around
and curled up toward its feet, drawing its arm back to slash at the web. The
filament parted with a low pop, and the phantom came plummeting down the cliff
backward. Rowen was on it as soon as it landed, beating aside its arms with
two powerful sword strokes, then hurling himself forward to plant his orange
dagger deep into its collar. An unearthly shriek filled the canyon. The
ghazneth rolled, slamming its wing into the ranger and launching him up the
canyon to crash into Cadimus. Tanalasta and Rowen fell with the beast in a
tangled screeching heap, and the phantom rolled to its feet. Though the hole
Vangerdahast had blasted in its chest a few days earlier has completely
healed, the rusty dagger remained planted firmly in its collar, with gouts of
dark blood pumping out around the blade. Tanalasta's voice rang through the
gorge. "King's bolts!" Four golden streaks shot past in front of Vangerdahast,
but the ghazneth was ducking behind its wing even as the bolts struck. The
leathery appendage grew white and translucent, revealing the fanlike network
of delicate bones within. Vangerdahast made a fist and gestured toward the
creature, and his floating glove closed around the firefly in its palm and
shot in the direction indicated. Still hiding behind its wing, the ghazneth
gathered itself to spring, The wizard guided his glove over its wing, then
turned his hand palm down and made a slapping motion. The glove flipped over
and slapped the firefly against the phantom's head. "Light!" Vangerdahast
commanded. A brilliant globe of magic light engulfed the ghazneth's head. The
creature cried out and jumped back, shaking its head madly. The light moved
with it. Vangerdahast lowered his hand and closed his fingers as though
grasping a knife handle. The glove disappeared behind the phantom's wing, and
a snarl of surprise rolled up the canyon. The wizard moved his hand up and
down. The glove rose and fell with the motion, grasping Rowen's rusty knife
and spattering the canyon walls with streams of dark blood. The ghazneth
shrieked and lowered its wing, fully revealing the brilliant aura that
engulfed its head. Its arms and wings flailed about wildly, but its efforts to
catch the floating glove were all in vain. It could see nothing inside the
golden ball but blinding yellow light. Vangerdahast whipped his hand around,
and the rusty dagger circled and came up beneath the phantom's ribcage. The
ghazneth clutched at the black-bleeding wound and fled down the canyon,
careening oft' the walls and wailing in rage. Vangerdahast started after it,
but the creature was as fast as a lion. Before his third step, the wizard
realized he would never keep up and turned to find Tanalasta now on her own
mare, pulling Rowen on to the horse behind her. Though the fellow had suffered
no obvious wounds, he seemed to be reeling from his collision. Cadimus was
standing behind her, looking wide-eyed and dazed, but little worse for wear.
Vangerdahast rushed up the canyon and grabbed the stallion's reins, then swung
into his saddle. "Go!" Though one of Vangerdahast's light spells normally
lasted close to a day, he suspected the ghazneth would not need nearly that
much time to absorb the enchantment's magic and return more angry than ever.
"I didn't kill it, you know!" "Yes, but at least we wounded it." Tanalasta set
her heels to the mare's flanks, and the horse sprang up the canyon at a
gallop. "That's an improvement." Vangerdahast started after her, at the same
time motioning the glove back to his side. Fearful of losing Rowen's dagger,
he plucked the bloodied weapon from the magical hand. To his astonishment, it
was a simple blade of cold-forged iron. Demons hated cold-forged iron, but the
ghazneth wasn't a demon-it couldn't be. He cleaned the blade on his saddle
blanket and stuck it in his belt, then snatched his linen glove out of the air
and returned it to his pocket. They galloped around two sharp corners, then
Tanalasta cried out and reined her horse up short. Expecting to find a band of
orcs blocking the way-it was inconceivable that even the ghazneth had negated
his light spell that fast- Vangerdahast reached into his cloak for a chunk of
brimstone, then eased up beside the princess. Twenty paces ahead, the canyon
was blocked by a huge steel gate. "By the nine doors to hell! What's that
doing here?" Rowen peered over Tanalasta's shoulder, then pinched his eyes
shut and tried to shake his head clear. "Are you sure this is the way?"
Tanalasta asked. "It's the way," Rowen replied. "It must be an illusion. We
ran into one before, just before we opened the second tomb." "An illusion?"
Vangerdahast waved his hand at the door and uttered a long string of mystic
syllables. "Begone!" The door vanished at once, revealing a dark, squat figure
with large crimson eyes and a huge nose veined from too much drink. A
tarnished crown sat tangled into his wild halo of long, spiky hair, and the
gaping hollow in his unkempt beard could be identified as a mouth only because
of its four yellow fangs and wagging red tongue. "What? No knock?" the
stranger croaked. He flung his arms to the sky in some strange gesture
Vangerdahast did not understand. "You just vanish my door?" The strange little
man was as naked as the day he was born, with glistening skin the color of
obsidian and a pot belly the size of a soup kettle. There were broken yellow
talons at the ends of his fingers, a pair of tall wings folded behind his
shoulders, and an unspeakable collection of parasites crawling through his
sparse body hair. "Another . ." Vangerdahast was so astonished he could hardly
gasp the question. "Another ghazneth?" "Of course!" Tanalasta sounded more
excited than frightened. 'They've opened three tombs." "Three ... that we know
of," Vangerdahast said. The ghazneth flexed its wings. When the appendages hit
the canyon walls, it cursed vilely and started forward at a walk. "Enough is
enough!" Vangerdahast dropped his reins and reached over to grab his
companions by the wrists. "Hold on." Rowen's eyes grew large. "Not me!" The
ranger jerked his arm free, then snatched the dagger from Vangerdahast's belt
and slipped off the mare. The ghazneth closed to within ten paces. Tanalasta
twisted around in the saddle. "Rowen-" "My duty is here," he said, backing
away from the horse. Tanalasta glanced at the ghazneth. Its long tongue snaked
out between its fangs, and it gathered itself to spring. Vangerdahast leaned
across Cadimus's back and reached for the ranger. "Give me your hand," the
wizard commanded. "Now!" Rowen backed away. The ghazneth cackled madly and
sprang into the air. Vangerdahast pulled his hand back and pictured the
stables of the palace in Arabel. Tanalasta cried out, then ducked and twisted
away, tearing her arm from his grasp as he spoke his incantation. The world
went black and something heavy and hard slammed into Vangerdahast from above,
then suddenly he was falling. It seemed to take forever to, reach the ground.
The weight vanished from his back. He grew disoriented and queasy and lost all
sense of time. This fall seemed to be taking forever, and he thought maybe
this was what a quick death felt like-no pain, no fear, just a sudden, endless
darkness-save that he could still feel something foul and hot touching his
neck, and something bristly rubbing against his cheek. The light returned the
same instant it had vanished. Vangerdahast glimpsed Cadimus's brown flank
slipping past his nose, then crashed headlong into the brown soft earth. The
weight of the world came crashing down on top of him, and he found himself
buried beneath a heap of cackling, rancid-smelling black leather. For a long
instant, the wizard lay there with his head spinning, trying to sort out where
he was and what the terrible stench in his nostrils might be. He heard voices
crying out in astonishment-men, and a few women, too- and he grew aware of a
terrible crushing pain in the center of his back. Vangerdahast reached out and
dug his fingers into the soft ground, then slowly dragged himself forward. Now
he heard the sound of clanking armor. Certain voices began to seem familiar to
him. The wizard pulled himself forward and suddenly he was free of the
terrible weight. He rose to his knees and saw the hem of a woman's gown and no
fewer than fifty horse legs separating him from the white, daub-and-wattle
walls of a well-kept stable, then it all came flooding back to
him. Vangerdahast craned his neck and found himself looking up at a fully
armored company of Purple Dragons. With them were several familiar figures: a
tall, gray-bearded man in dusty riding clothes and a golden field crown, a
bushy-browed wizard with a plump face, a honey-haired beauty with eyes as blue
as ice, a wiry priest with a thin, weather-beaten face. Azoun, Merula,
Filfaeril, Owden-all staring at him with confused looks of horror on their
faces. Something fluttered next to Vangerdahast, and he looked over to see the
tip of a leathery black wing beating the air. "No!" He clambered to his feet,
at once raising a hand to wave off his friends and whirling around to face the
ghazneth. "Defend your-" A black hand swept down to catch Vangerdahast in the
side of the head, launching him end-over-end across the stable. He crashed
down a dozen paces in front of Cadimus and tumbled onto his stomach, ears
ringing and blood pouring from his opened scalp. His vision narrowed. He shook
his head clear and thrust his hand into his cloak. A dozen dragoneers managed
to spur their mounts out to intercept the ghazneth. The dark creature streaked
through them like an eagle through a field of gophers, then slapped the sword
from Azoun's hand and settled into the saddle facing the horrified
king. "Usurper!" The ghazneth snatched the crown from Azoun's head, then sank
its filthy claws through his armor and hurled him from the saddle like a
child's rag doll. Vangerdahast felt a sudden wave of nausea, and the darkness
began to close around him. He gritted his teeth and grabbed his favorite wand,
willing the darkness to stay away. A flurry of Purple Dragons whirled on the
ghazneth, hacking and slashing. It beat them off with a few strokes of its
dark wings, then the war wizards cut loose with bolt and flame. The ghazneth
furled its wings and roared with laughter as the spells languished against its
defenses, then leaped over a wall of guards to land atop Filfaeril. The
barrage of war spells ceased as suddenly as it had started. The queen shrieked
in terror, and the creature hid her behind its wings. Vangerdahast's vision
continued to narrow. He pulled the wand from his cloak. "No need to be
frightened, my dear," said the ghazneth. A mad cackle sounded from the other
side of the leathery curtain. "I wouldn't harm my queen-would I?" The creature
sprang into the air, Filfaeril clasped securely in its claws. Vangerdahast's
vision narrowed to a keyhole. He whipped his wand toward the queen's flailing
figure and shouted his command word as the keyhole closed. 11 The glyphs
ringed the sycamore in an elegant spiral, as sinuous as a snake and as clearly
defined as the day they were engraved. Though Tanalasta could not identify the
era of the carving, she had studied enough elven literature to recognize the
style as an archaic one. The letters flowed gracefully one to another, with
long sweeping stems and cross arms that undulated so gently they appeared
almost straight. While the language was definitely High Wealdan, the
inscription itself seemed archaic and stilted, even by the standards of the
Early Age of Orthorion. This childe of men, lette his bodie nourishe this
tree. The tree of this bodie, lette it growe as it nourishe. The spirit of
this tree, to them lette it return as it grewe. Tanalasta stopped reading
after the first stanza and stepped back. Aside from its peculiar spellings and
the reference to men, the inscription was the standard epitaph for a Tree of
the Body, a sort of memorial created by the ancient elves of the Forest
Kingdom. When an esteemed elf died, his fellows sometimes inscribed the
epitaph in the trunk of a small sapling and buried the body beneath the tree's
roots. The princess did not understand all the details of the commemoration,
but she had read a treatise suggesting only elves who had been a special
blessing to their communities were honored in this way. In any event, she had
visited several of these memorials during her short-lived travels with
Vangerdahast and never failed to be impressed by the majesty of the trees
bearing such inscriptions. The sycamore before her was a marked contrast to
those ancient monuments. The tree was a warped and gnarled thing with a split
trunk and a lopsided crown of crooked branches straying off into the sky at
peculiar angles. Its yellow leaves looked like withered little hands dangling
down to grasp at anything unlucky enough to pass beneath its boughs, and the
bark changed from smooth and white on the branches to a mottled, scaly gray at
eye level. The greatest difference of all lay at the base of the trunk, where
a recently dug hole wormed down into the musty depths beneath the
roots. Tanalasta returned to the inscription and read the next stanza. Thus
the havoc bearers sleepe, the sleepe of no rests. Thus the sorrow bringers
sow, the seeds of their ruins. Thus the deathe makers kille, the sons of their
sons. Tanalasta's stomach began to feel hollow and uneasy. Curses were rare
things in elven literature, even in the relatively angry era of King
Orthorion's early reign. Of course, the Royal Library did not contain works
predating Orthorion-apparently, early Cormyreans had lacked either the time or
interest to learn High Wealdan-but the princess found it difficult to believe
that such curses had been any more common to pre-Orthorion poetry. Aside from
a single famous massacre and a few lesser incidents, elves in the Age of
Iliphar had been standoffish but peaceful. Tanalasta followed the inscription
around the tree and read the last stanza, which consisted of only a single
line of summoning: Here come ye, Mad Kang Boldovar, and lie among these
rootes. Tanalasta thought instantly of the crowned ghazneth that had
disappeared with Vangerdahast, then stumbled back from the tree, hand pressed
to her mouth, heart hammering in her chest. Boldovar the Mad was one of her
own ancestors, a king of Cormyr more than eleven centuries before. According
to the histories, he had slain a long succession of palace courtesans before
being dragged off the battlements of Faerlthann's Keep with one of his
victims. The unfortunate woman had died on the spot, less because of the fall
than the horrible wounds inflicted by the insane Boldovar. Less commonly known
was that the king had lingered on for several days while Baerauble Etharr, the
first Royal Magician of Cormyr, was summoned from abroad. Fortunately for the
people of the realm, however, Boldovar "wandered off" alone before the royal
wizard could return. When a badly bloated body dressed in the king's purple
was found floating in the Immerflow a tenday later, Baerauble announced his
liege's death and ordered the corpse burnt at once. Until now, there had never
been reason to believe the wizard's hasty order due to anything but the
sensibilities of his nose, but Tanalasta could not help thinking Baerauble had
used the incident to solve a terrible dilemma he must have been facing. As the
Royal Magician sworn to protect the crown of Cormyr at all costs, he could
hardly have condoned the overthrow even of a mad king-but neither could he
have believed that Boldovar's reign benefited the realm. Perhaps he
substituted another body for Boldovar's and spirited the mad king off to live
out his days someplace where he could do no harm. Rowen came around the tree
behind Tanalasta. "Is something wrong, milady? You look... uneasy." "I'm
frightened, actually-frightened and puzzled." Tanalasta did not take her eyes
from the tree as she spoke. "Were the glyphs on all the other trees the same
as these?" Rowen answered without studying the characters. "They looked the
same." "Yes, but were they exactly the same?" Tanalasta pointed at the three
characters that stood for Mad Kang Boldovar. "Especially here?" "I think so,
Princess," Rowen said, sounding slightly embarrassed. "To be honest, I can't
even see the difference between the glyphs you're pointing at and the ones
next to them. I'm sorry." "Don't be." Tanalasta turned to him. "I should have
realized how difficult it would be to learn High Wealdan without the Royal
Library at your disposal." "Or even with it," said Rowen. "I fear I've never
been a student of the old tongues." Tanalasta smiled at the ranger's candor.
"High Wealdan isn't really a tongue. It's closer to music. Listen." The
princess went around to the front of the tree and ran her finger along the
initial glyph. A melodic rasp instantly filled the air, intoning the epitaph's
first line in a haunting female voice as anguished as it was menacing. Of
course, Tanalasta understood the words no better than Rowen, for no human ear
could comprehend the full timbre of an elven weald poem. Rowen's eyes grew
wide. "I've never heard anything like it!" "Nor have I." Tanalasta shuddered
at the pain of the music. 'That was an elven spirit-voice, if you can believe
it." She led the ranger around the tree, translating each glyph aloud both for
his benefit and to assure herself that she was reading it correctly. By the
time she finished, Rowen's face had grown as pale as alabaster. "An elf made
them?" the ranger asked, clearly referring to the ghazneths. "Why?" 'We won't
know that until we discover who that elf was," said Tanalasta. "First, we need
to be sure the ghazneths are related to these trees. That's why I want to know
if this glyph looked the same on the other trees." Rowen shrugged. "I just
can't say. If I'd known what to look for..." "How could you have?" asked
Tanalasta. "I'm sure I can figure it out from Alusair's
notes." "Notes?" Tanalasta sighed. "I suppose Alusair isn't really the
note-taking kind, is she?" "She was trying to catch Emperel." "I'm sure she
was in a hurry." Tanalasta started around the tree toward the musty hole.
"Alusair always is. Did she at least look inside the tombs?" "That's where we
found this." Rowen pulled the iron dagger from his belt and handed it to
Tanalasta. "In the second tomb." Tanalasta stopped beside the hole and
examined the weapon, noting its stone-scraped cutting edge and the hammer
marks on the face of its blade. "Cold-forged iron," she said. "I'm astonished
this survived. It was made in Suzail over thirteen hundred years ago." "How
can you tell?" Rowen frowned at the blade. "I didn't see any
markings." "That's how I know. Suzail built its first steel works in the year
seventy-five, the Year of the Clinging Death. Before that, people smelted
their own iron in ground ovens and beat the weapon into shape on a communal
anvil." Tanalasta returned the knife to the ranger. "While this is a good
piece of handiwork, no merchant bound for Cormyr would burden himself with
iron when he knew the market wanted steel." "I see." Rowen shook his head in
amazement, then asked, "Is there anything you don't know?" "Of course,"
Tanalasta said lightly. "To listen to Vangerdahast, he could fill volumes with
the things I don't know." Rowen chuckled lightly, then glanced back toward
where the royal magician had disappeared. Tanalasta followed his gaze. The
ghazneth could be seen circling over the labyrinth of canyons, its head still
engulfed in a glowing gold orb. Though Vangerdahast had cast the spell less
than thirty minutes earlier, the magical glow was already beginning to fade.
Determined to finish her investigations quickly, the princess removed the
Purple Dragon commander's ring from her cloak pocket and slipped it onto her
finger. "Keep watch," she ordered, stooping down at the rim of the hole. Rowen
caught her by the arm. "Where are you going?" Though the gesture would have
seemed condescending coming from anyone else, from Rowen it seemed merely an
expression of concern. Tanalasta patted his hand. "I need to look inside
myself," she said gently. "We both know I'll see what others have
missed." Rowen gritted his teeth, but nodded. "It would be best to make it
fast, Princess." Tanalasta glanced in the direction of the ghazneth. "I won't
be slow." The princess activated her ring's light magic and started into the
hole, then glanced back and smiled. "And didn't I tell you to call me
Tanalasta?" Rowen stooped down to give her a stubborn smile. "As you command,
Princess." Tanalasta kicked a clump of dirt at him, then turned and started
forward. The musty smell grew stronger and more rancid as she crawled, and her
skin began to prickle with the wispy breath of evil. When she reached the end
of the passage ten paces later, she had goosebumps the size of rose thorns,
and her jaws ached from the strain of holding back her gorge. Ahead of her lay
a body-shaped hollow, surrounded on all sides by a fine-meshed net of broken
black roots. The tree had no taproot, at least that she could see. The tiny
chamber was empty, save for a simple floor of flat stones littered with scraps
of rotten cloth and an odd assortment of tarnished buckles, buttons, and
clasps. Tanalasta pulled herself into the foul-smelling chamber and nearly
cried out when something soft and diaphanous clung to her cheek. She quickly
brushed it off and found a transparent web of gossamer filaments stuck to her
fingers. It took her a moment to recognize the stuff as raw silk, and she
began to notice it everywhere-tangled among the roots above her head, hanging
down around her to form the walls of the tomb, and clinging to the debris
scattered across the floor. The princess's first impulse was to leave, as the
filmy stuff reminded her of nothing quite so much as the web of a black widow
spider, but she clenched her jaw and forced herself to begin scraping the
filament away from the walls. To her surprise, the silk came away in thick
gobs, and she actually found herself digging a small tunnel that did not end
for nearly ten paces-about the distance it would be to the sycamore's
dripline. Tanalasta suppressed the urge to shudder, realizing that the tree-or
the corpse beneath it-had so corrupted the ground that the normal process of
soil replacement had been halted. She returned to the center of the tree and
examined a handful of buttons. The gold plating was so tarnished that she
could barely make out the shape of a dragon rampant, its wings spread and its
tail curled over its back. Any doubts she had about the ghazneth's identity
vanished at once. It was the emblem of King Boldovar. Fearful of being tainted
by the palpable evil she sensed in the place, the princess tossed the buttons
aside and crawled out of the tomb. Rowen was waiting at the mouth of the hole,
holding the mare's reins and staring back toward the canyon lands. He did not
even let her leave the hole before he asked, "How long before Vangerdahast
returns?" Tanalasta looked up to find an uneasy expression on his face. "We
may be on our own until tomorrow. I doubt Vangerdahast had two teleport spells
ready, and even he might need time to prepare another." Rowen's uneasy
expression changed to one of true distress. "We'd better hurry." He reached
down, and Tanalasta gave him her hand. Instead of helping her out of the hole,
however, he slipped the commander's ring off her finger. "Untie the saddle
packs." He turned back to the mare. "We'll use the ring as a decoy." "Don't
you think that trick's getting old?" Tanalasta asked, climbing from the hole.
"It barely worked last time." "It's a new trick to this one." Rowen was using
both hands to tie the ring into the mare's mane, so he simply nodded
northward. The first ghazneth was still circling over the maze of canyons, the
golden halo around its head now faded to the point that she could make out the
outline of a haggish head, but that was not the cause of his concern. A second
dark speck was coming out of the north, growing larger even as she watched.
The princess scrambled to the mare's flank and began to undo the saddle
packs. "Tie a loose knot," she said. "I know a decoy is our best escape, but
this horse has been good to me. I'd like to give her a chance." "Done." Rowen
stepped back, leaving the glowing commander's ring fastened to the mare's mane
by a loose but complicated knot. "Without a load to carry, I give her a better
chance than us of getting home." "That only seems fair," said Tanalasta. The
princess pulled the saddle packs free, then raised her hand high and slapped
the mare hard on the flank. The beast bolted south, heading for the deep
canyon that separated the two Mule Ear peaks. Tanalasta quickly pulled her
bracers off and slipped them into the saddlebags, then unclasped her
weathercloak and checked herself for any other magic that might give them
away. Once she felt satisfied she was radiating no magic, she asked, "Which
way?" Rowen nodded southwest past the face of the Mule Ears. "Go ahead. You'll
see the hoof prints in about twenty paces. I'll cover our trail." Though she
did not like being separated from the ranger with the ghazneth so near, the
princess saw the wisdom of his plan and set off at a steady run. As Rowen had
promised, she soon came to a narrow trail of hoof prints left by Alusair's
company. She pulled her cloak from her shoulders and began to sweep the dusty
ground as she ran, cursing Alusair's sloppiness and doing what she could to
help the ranger obliterate the tracks. The hoof prints all but vanished twenty
paces later, and Tanalasta realized that her sister had intentionally left an
obvious trail to help Rowen determine the direction she had gone, but was now
taking precautions. The princess continued to sweep away any tracks she
noticed, but now the prints were few and far between. She shifted her own
tactics, trying to stay on rocks or hard ground whenever possible and avoiding
any bushes that might snap or snag as she dashed past. The tiny speck grew
steadily larger, becoming first a barely distinguishable V, then a tiny cross.
Tanalasta found a series of four hoof prints turning slightly southward. She
swept them away and adjusted her own course and found herself climbing a small
ridge. The princess glanced back. Seeing Rowen less than fifty paces behind
her, she decided to risk crossing the crest and dashed up the slope at her
best sprint. By the time Tanalasta neared the top, the approaching ghazneth
appeared nearly as large as her thumb. She dropped to her hands and scrambled
the rest of the way on all fours, taking care to step only on stones, and to
keep the sparse brush between her and the approaching phantom. She crossed the
summit itself on her belly, then ducked behind a bush and turned to watch the
phantom. Rowen was still ten paces from the hilltop when the thing grew large
enough that she could make out the shape of its wings. She hissed a quiet
warning to the ranger, then motioned him down. He fell to his belly and rolled
beneath a bush, covering himself with his mottled cloak and growing almost
invisible, even to Tanalasta. They waited, exhausted and huffing, as the
ghazneth flew past less than half a mile from the crest of the ridge. It
started to swerve toward the withered sycamore, then veered off over the
canyons toward its golden-haloed fellow. Tanalasta rose from her hiding place
and motioned the ranger over the ridge. "Now, Rowen-and hurry!" Rowen rolled
from beneath his bush and swept his cloak across the ground quickly, then
scrambled over the ridge beside Tanalasta. "You are quite... a runner," he
gasped. "I didn't... know if I could catch up." "Fear will do that to you."
Tanalasta turned to angle down the ridge in the direction of Alusair's trail.
"You'd have no trouble keeping up if you were as terrified as I am." Rowen
came up beside her. "If I'm not frightened, it's only because I have nothing
to lose. You ... you'll be queen some day. Why did you pull away from
Vangerdahast?" "The king commanded me to find Alusair," she said. "There is
something he wanted me to tell her." "No," said Rowen. "That is an excuse, not
a reason. Even if you and Vangerdahast were not so open about your disputes,
the air between you is as taut as a plow lead." They reached the bottom of the
ridge and dropped into a broad trough, with the craggy face of the Storm Horns
soaring up on the south and the ridge rising more gently to the north. Rowen
used his cape to sweep away four hoof prints leading directly up the furrow.
Tanalasta glanced over her shoulder and found the sky mercifully free of
ghazneths-at least for the moment. "You're trying to coerce him... into
something," huffed Rowen. "What?" Tanalasta flashed a scowl in his
direction-then stumbled on a rock and nearly fell. "Even if you were...
right," she said, now starting to gasp herself. "It is not for you to question
a royal princess." "It is now, Princess." Rowen emphasized her title. "When
you did not go with Vangerdahast, you made it my duty to ask." "Very well."
The princess was finding it more difficult to maintain the pace, though Rowen
only seemed to be growing stronger. "I know you're familiar with how Aunadar
Bleth embarrassed me. If I am to ... rule well, I must win the respect of my
subjects back. I won't do that by teleporting to safety every time there is
the slightest danger." "No." Rowen stopped running. Tanalasta halted two paces
later and turned around to face him. "What are you doing, Rowen?" "You do not
earn people's respect by lying to them," said the ranger. "That is how you
lose it." Tanalasta glanced at the sky behind him and saw two dark specks
weaving back and forth through the air. "We have no time for this." "You do
not need to win my respect, Princess," said Rowen. "You have already done that
with your bravery and your intelligence. Now, please show me that you respect
me." Tanalasta rolled her eyes. "Then can we go?" Rowen nodded. "Very well."
Her gaze dropped, and she found it impossible to raise it again. "If you must
know, I stayed because of you." "Me?" Tanalasta nodded. "You are certainly
aware of the royal magician's concerns that I may be growing too old to
provide an heir for the realm." "Those concerns are shared by many," said
Rowen. "But I hardly see-" "Do you want to hear this or not?" Tanalasta
snapped. She waved a hand toward the two ghazneths. "We don't have much
time." Rowen swallowed. "Please." "My father's birthday celebration was a
thinly disguised effort to prod me into marrying Dauneth Marliir. Everyone
knows this." Tanalasta paused to grind her teeth, then continued, "What they
don't know is that when the invitation arrived at Huthduth, I told the High
Harvestmaster I would be returning to Cormyr to wed him." "And what did the
High Harvestmaster say to change your mind?" "That he wished me well and knew
Dauneth to be a good man." Tanalasta's reply was sharp. "My doubts arose
later, when I was out alone, taking my leave of the mountains." Rowen nodded
and said nothing, as though he did not see anything alarming in the crown
princess wandering orc-infested mountains alone. Tanalasta continued, "When I
reached the headwaters of the Orcen River, the air filled with the sound of
song-birds and the light turned the color of gold. A magnificent gray stallion
came out of the forest bearing an old crone with eyes of pearl and armor of
silver lace, and when I called to her, the woman guided her mount down to the
water across from me. She would not speak, but when the horse drank, an inky
darkness passed from its nostrils into the stream. The grass along the shore
withered before my eyes. On the hillside above me, the pine trees browned and
lost their needles." "And this was not a dream?" Rowen asked. "I was as awake
as we are now," Tanalasta replied. "A single tear ran down the crone's cheek,
and she shook her head at me." "And you think-" "I did not think at all,"
Tanalasta said, cutting him off. "I was so frightened that I fled without
regard for how far I ran or what direction. Before I knew it, I was lost and
the day was nearly gone. After a time, I came to a copse of willow and
choke-cherry so thick I could barely pass. I would have turned back, save that
I heard a woman giggling and thought she might tell me how to return to the
monastery." Rowen's expression grew apprehensive. "And?" "I fought my way
through the thicket to the shores of a small pond, where the young woman I had
heard was watering her mount from the pool. The beast was as white and
luminous as a diamond, but even then I did not realize what it was until I
called out to ask the way to the monastery and the creature raised its
head." "It was a unicorn." It was not a question. "The golden born, the cloven
hooves, everything," Tanalasta confirmed. "Instead of answering me, the woman
leaped laughing onto the unicorn's back and vanished into the forest. Flowers
and shrubs rose to blossom in its hoof prints." Rowen stood without speaking
for a long time, then finally asked, "And when it was gone, you found you had
been at the monastery all along?" "Almost," Tanalasta said, surprised. "I was
at my favorite lake. How did you know?" "Had you stiff been lost, it would not
have been much of a vision." Rowen's expression changed from apprehensive to
dazed. "And you think I am this unicorn?" Tanalasta shrugged. "You're the best
candidate so far-and I doubt it was a coincidence that I found your Faith
Planting at Orc's Pool." Rowen shook his head. "But my family..." "Now who is
being dishonest?" Tanalasta asked. In the sky behind Rowen, one of the
ghazneths peeled off and started south after her mare. "You know as well as I
do that the vision wasn't about politics. It was about love." Rowen paled
visibly and seemed too stunned to speak. Tanalasta took his hand and turned to
continue their flight. "Now can we go?" * * * * * Filfaeril sat alone in the
apse of a silent throne room, staring down a long ambulatory bounded by
double-stacked arches and tall columns of fluted marble. Though the chamber
smelled of mildew and rot, it had been immaculately adorned in broad, vertical
bands of brown and gold. The pattern was a simple one favored by Cormyrean
royalty more than a thousand years earlier, when the kingdom had barely
extended past the Starwater, and Arabel had been little more than a cluster of
crossroad inns. The queen could not imagine any family of Arabellan nobles
building such an archaic reception hall-nor, having gone to the expense of
building it, allowing the place to grow as dank and musty-smelling as this
one. It just did not make sense. Then again, nothing made sense since
Vangerdahast's return. She did not understand why he had brought the phantom
with him, or why the lurid creature had abducted her only to abandon her here
and wander off. Was the thing that confident of its prison, or had it simply
forgotten her-and what was it, anyway? As important as the answers to these
questions were, they were not the ones to which Filfaeril's mind kept
returning. More than anything, she wanted to know what had happened to Azoun
and Tanalasta-and to Vangerdahast. And those answers she would not find in
this throne room. The queen forced herself to remain seated for a while
longer, using the time to study her environs and look for any hint of her
captor's presence. In the event of an abduction, Vangerdahast's instructions
were quite clear. First, do as little as possible and wait for the war wizards
to show up. Second, avoid giving a captor any excuse to harm her. Third, fight
or flee only if death looked imminent. Vangerdahast had told her many times
that once the war wizards were alerted to a royal's danger, a rescue company
would arrive within minutes. But Filfaeril had been sitting on the throne for
hours, and she had seen even less of the rescue company than of her captor.
Clearly, something had gone wrong with the royal magician's plan. Filfaeril
stood and descended the dais. She paused to see if the phantom would show
itself. When it did not, she walked down the ambulatory to the bronze
grillwork gates at the end. Her captor had not bothered to shut them, so she
stepped through... and found herself looking up the ambulatory toward the
dais, as though she had merely turned around. Filfaeril spun on her heel and
found the gates hanging ajar between the same two pillars, looking out on the
same gloomy foyer and huge oaken doors as before. She pushed the gate open and
walked through. Again, she found herself looking up the ambulatory toward the
two wooden thrones on the dais. Frowning, the queen pulled the gate closed,
then opened it and stepped through-to the same result. The queen slammed the
bronze gate behind her, then started up the ambulatory. She had suspected all
along that the phantom had not simply flown off and forgotten about her, but
leaving the gate open was a hint of the creature's true cruelty. As every good
torturer knew, the secret to breaking a victim's will lay in controlling her
mind. Leaving the gate ajar had been a deliberate attempt to rob Filfaeril of
hope. It had worked better than she cared to admit. On her way back to the
dais, she took the time to step through each of the arches along the
ambulatory, but the result was always the same. She found herself standing on
the opposite side of the room, facing the same arch through which she had
come. Finally, the queen resigned herself to the fact that her prison was as
secure as any dungeon cell and returned to her throne. She sat down as
deliberately and calmly as she could. After taking a moment to compose
herself, Filfaeril pictured the royal magician's bushy-bearded face and rubbed
her signet ring. Her mind remained as quiet as the throne room, and a dozen
possible reasons for Vangerdahast's silence leaped into her thoughts. She
wished they had not. Had he been able to, the wizard would have answered. That
he had not meant one of two things: either he was incapacitated, or the
strange prison prevented him from hearing her. A fanfare of trumpets echoed
through the throne room, and the phantom appeared inside the gate. He was as
gruesome as before, with his folded wings, tarnished crown, and red-tinged
eyes glaring in Filfaeril's direction. In his hands he held a limp mass of
gray rags that might have been a body or a wad of clothing, and from his
talons dangled long strings of gore. "Milady." He bowed deeply, then started
up the ambulatory toward Filfaeril. "If I have let you grow lonely, you must
forgive me. The traitors have kept me busy." As the phantom neared the dais,
Filfaeril saw that the rags he carried were black weathercloaks with bronze
throat clasps. The war wizards had found her after all. The queen's fingertips
began to ache, and she realized she was digging her nails into the arms of her
throne. The phantom dumped the clothes in a heap and ascended the dais. "There
is no need to call for someone else." As he drew closer, the stench of blood
and battle offal grew overwhelming. "I am never far from you. Ever." He
stopped beside Filfaeril's throne, then reached down and lifted her hand. She
gave an involuntary shiver and shrank away. "Come now." He clasped her signet
ring and gently worked it off her finger, leaving her whole hand smeared with
warm gore. "Do you really believe I would hurt you?" Filfaeril could only look
at him and wonder if she had gone mad. The phantom closed the ring in his
palm, then his eyes rolled back and his wings spread a quarter of the way
open. He gave a low groan. Finding herself at eye level with his naked loins,
Filfaeril turned away in disgust-but instantly thought better of it and
reached for her hair. In a swift and practiced motion, she slipped her fingers
between the tines of her silver comb and thumbed a tiny catch, then pulled a
razor sharp fist-rake from its sheath. The queen twisted in her seat, driving
the weapon's needlelike tines into her captor's abdomen and hissing the
command word that activated the weapon's death magic. The phantom snarled in
pain, then opened his hand and let the signet ring clink to the floor. He did
not fall. Filfaeril yelled her command word again, pushing against the thing
with all her might. The throne beneath her gave an ominous creak and
collapsed, and she found herself sitting on the floor atop the moldering green
remains of a rotten bench. On the stone before her lay a drab band of tin
bearing the royal dragon of Cormyr. The queen was too confused to tell what
had happened to the throne, but she knew when the magic had been drained from
her signet. The phantom plucked Filfaeril's comb from his abdomen and stood
staring at it in confusion. Behind him, the majestic throne room had grown as
dark and murky as a cellar, and the queen could barely make out the blocky
shapes of several tall cask racks silhouetted against a distant rectangle of
filmy light. "Look what you've done to our thrones!" The phantom gestured at
the splintered remains of the moldering bench, then fixed his red-rimmed eyes
on Filfaeril. "When did you grow so fat? You're as big as a sow!" And
Filfaeril suddenly felt as large as a war-horse. Her breathing grew labored
and slow, her body became ungainly and sluggish, and her stomach began to
rumble and growl. A terrible feeling of despair and lethargy came over her,
and she looked down to discover a mountainous lump of flesh in place of her
once-svelte body. She cried out in shock, then tried to back away from the
phantom and found she could not move her own weight. "Who are you?" The queen
was surprised to hear her demand pour out in a barely-coherent wail. "What are
you doing to me?" The creature kneeled beside her and ran his gore-caked
fingers through her long tresses. She would have knocked the hand away, save
that when she tried, her arm was too heavy to lift. Behind the phantom, the
dank room once again became a majestic throne room. "Why do you make me do
these things?" the phantom demanded. He wrapped his hand into her hair, then
jerked her head back. "Do you think this is the way I want to treat my
queen?" "Your queen?" Filfaeril took a deep breath and forced herself to look
into the phantom's mad eyes. "I am nothing to you but a hostage-a hostage that
you would be wise to treat well. When the king finds us-" Something huge and
hard slammed into the side of Filfaeril's face and sent her corpulent body
tumbling across the dais. She did not stop rolling until she slammed into the
plinth of a marble pillar. "I am king!" The phantom sprang to her side, then
grasped her chin and tilted her head back. "And you are my queen." Filfaeril
shook her head. "I am wife to Azoun." As she spoke, the throne room grew murky
again. The ghostly outlines of cask racks appeared along the ambulatory, and
she began to see that her only hope of salvation lay in clinging to her true
identity. "I am Filfaeril, queen to King Azoun IV." The cask racks grew more
substantial. "You are queen to no king but me!" The phantom slapped her again,
and her vision went momentarily black. "You are wife to King Boldovar. To
me." Filfaeril began to tremble, and the murkiness vanished from the throne
room at once. As adolescents, she and her sisters had delighted in keeping
each other up nights by telling grisly tales of how King Boldovar had murdered
his mistresses. "B-boldovar the Mad?" "Boldovar the King-husband to Queen
Filfaeril!" The phantom pressed Filfaeril's comb-dagger to her fleshy breast,
then ordered, "Say it." "K-king Boldovar, h-husband ..." Filfaeril stopped,
realizing that to indulge the phantom was to lose herself in his
madness-perhaps forever. She shook her head, then raised her chin. "I'd rather
die." Almost instantly, her body became slender and beautiful again, and she
found herself lying on the floor of a dank wine cellar Boldovar scowled and
looked around in confusion, then shrugged and returned his attention to
Filfaeril. "As you command, milady." The phantom scraped the sharp tines along
the queen's flesh, opening four shallow cuts along the top curve of her
breast. She closed her eyes, surprised that death's black fog had not risen up
to carry her off already. Once Vangerdahast's enchantment was activated, even
the weapon's scratch was supposed to kill instantly and surely. She commended
her soul to Lady Sune, then opened her eyelids to find Boldovar's ghastly eyes
still gazing into her own. "What is this? Did I drink up all your magic?" He
tossed the comb aside, then flashed her a needle-fanged smile. "Perhaps you
wish to recant?" 12 The royal wizard woke bound and naked, covered by a single
blood-stained linen, surrounded by enemies of the realm. To the right stood
Owden Foley, a clammy cold cloth in one hand and a brass basin in the other.
Alaphondar Emmarask and Merula the Marvelous watched from the foot of the bed,
eyes beady and observant, alert as always for any sign that the royal magician
knew their thoughts. He did of course, but he could not let them see it. They
would kill him on the spot. To the wizard's left stood Azoun IV, his arm
hanging in a sling and his shoulder wrapped in a bloody bandage. Good.
Vangerdahast had done some damage after all, even if he did not recall when or
how ... or why. Vangerdahast's head ached from the bridge of his nose to the
nape of his neck. His thoughts came slowly and for only short periods. His
scalp felt crusty and swollen and strangely taut, with long stripes of hot
pain crossing it from right to left. His body ached with fever. He was hungry
enough to eat a cat, though of course he knew better than to ask for one. He
refused to give his captors the pleasure of seeing him beg. Owden, of course,
was the torturer. The priest's implements lay on the table beside the bed,
arrayed in neat rows of knives and needles and coarse loops of thread. Knowing
they had only left the instruments in the open to frighten him, Vangerdahast
looked away. Had his hands not been bound to the bed frame, he would have
grabbed one of those knives and shown the traitors the error of their ways.
Then again, had his hands been untied, he would not have needed a knife. He
was, after all, a wizard. If only he could remember his spells. While most
spells required gestures and special components and the uttering of mystic
syllables, some required only an incantation. They would be ready for that.
The enemies of the realm were as cunning as they were pervasive. If
Vangerdahast wanted to escape and save the crown, he needed to be as clever as
they were. He raised his head and glared at Merula. "Help me, and I will
forgive you this treason," he said. "Use your magic against them, and I will
pardon you when the crown is mine!" Merula's face paled, and he looked to
Owden. Owden looked to Azoun. "Forgive him, Majesty. It is the wound madness.
You yourself raved on and on about how the Ladies Rowanmantle and Hawklin were
jealous of the sons of your other-" "Yes, yes!" Azoun's hand shot up to
silence the priest. "I am quite familiar with the insane thoughts caused by
the creature's wounds." "Insane thoughts? The insanity is this." Vangerdahast
strained to raise his left arm. "Unbind me, and I grant you safe passage to
exile in a foreign land." Azoun scowled at Owden. "I hope this madness can be
cleared up soon." He looked back to Vangerdahast and grasped his arm, then
said, "Old friend, I know your thoughts are muddled, but you must try to
answer me. What happened to my daughter? Is the princess safe?" Somewhere deep
down beneath the madness, Vangerdahast felt a guilty pang. "Tanalasta?" Azoun
nodded. "Yes. Princess Tanalasta. She didn't return with you." The battle in
the canyon came flooding back to Vangerdahast-and with it a surge of
anger. "She defied me!" Vangerdahast's temples pounded with hot anguish. "The
brazen harlot!" "Harlot?" Azoun repeated. "Then she's with this Cormaeril
fellow?" "Spoiled now!" Vangerdahast spat. "He's spoiled her now." "But is she
safe?" Vangerdahast tried to sit up and managed only to lift his head off the
pillow before the restraints jerked him back down. He began to toss his head
back and forth, trying in vain to shake loose the memory of some spell that
would set him free. Azoun laid a palm on Vangerdahast's brow and pressed down
to hold the wizard's head still. "Don't smother me!" Vangerdahast cried. "How
can I tell if you smother me?" Azoun eased up. "I'm not going to smother
anyone." Vangerdahast laid very still and regarded the king suspiciously. "How
do I know?" "Vangerdahast, I would never hurt you." "Tell me you don't want me
out of the way." Azoun shook his head. "I don't. You're my most trusted
advisor. My best friend. Please, try to remember. Tell me about
Tanalasta." "Undo this." Vangerdahast jerked against the binding on his left
hand. "Just this one-then I'll tell you." Azoun cast a querying glance at
Owden. The priest shook his head. "He wouldn't tell you anyway, and it's too
dangerous. He could wipe us all out with one spell." "Don't listen to the
groundsplitter!" Vangerdahast's head began to throb with the effort of finding
some spell to help him escape. "He's afraid of my power." "And rightly so,"
said Owden. Vangerdahast turned to glare at the priest. Owden's hand came out
of his pocket sprinkling yellow dust, but Vangerdahast was too quick for the
priest and managed to shut his eyes. "Do you know where you are,
Vangerdahast?" asked Owden. "Do you remember what happened to your
head?" Vangerdahast did not open his eyes. "My head hurts. You did something
to it." "Not me," said Owden. "It was the thing that came back with
you." "You!" Vangerdahast insisted. "It slapped you in the head, then went
after Azoun-" "No!" At last, the incantation of a blinding spell popped into
Vangerdahast's head. It would not free him, and it would only affect one
person-but if he chose the right person, perhaps he could cause enough
confusion to get at one of Owden's torture knives on the table beside
him. Vangerdahast turned his head toward Azoun and began to repeat the
incantation, then smelled something strident and saw Owden sprinkle some
glittering droplets into his face. He squeaked out one more syllable, then the
room went dark, and he was seized by a sudden sensation of falling. Sometime
much later, Vangerdahast woke bound and naked, covered by a single fresh
linen, surrounded by the haggard-looking enemies of the state. To the right
stood Owden Foley, a clammy cold cloth in one hand and a brass basin in the
other. Alaphondar Emmarask and Merula the Marvelous watched from the foot of
the bed, eyes beady and observant, alert as always for any sign that the royal
magician knew their thoughts. He did of course, but he could not let them see
it, or they would kill him on the spot. To the wizard's left stood Azoun IV,
arm hanging in a sling and his shoulder wrapped in a fresh
bandage. Vangerdahast did not recall how he had come to be the prisoner of the
realm's enemies. He did not recall anything, save for a faint odor that faded
from his memory even as he tried to hold onto it. The only thing that looked
vaguely familiar were the log joists and rough hewn planks above his head-the
ceiling of his prison, or the floor of the chamber above. It depended on one's
perspective, really, and it seemed to him that there ought to be an escape in
that, if he could just recall the right spell. "Vangerdahast?" asked the
rat-faced priest. "Do you know where you are?" Vangerdahast knew exactly where
he was-in a prisoner's tower-but he would not give his captors the pleasure of
hearing him admit it. He felt a hand on his shoulder and looked over to see
the king grasping his shoulder. "Old friend, do you remember me?" "Of course."
Vangerdahast decided to stall for time and hope he could recall the spell he
needed. "How could I Forget the usur-er, the king?" Azoun relaxed visibly.
"Thank the All Mother!" he gasped. "Do you remember my daughter? Can you tell
me what happened to Tanalasta?" The battle in the canyon returned to him in a
flood, the first ghazneth knocking him from his horse with the dismembered
body of an orc, the steel gate suddenly appearing with the second ghazneth
behind it naked and wild-eyed, reaching for Tanalasta and the ranger, the
ranger leaping from his grasp, that harlot of a princess flinging herself
after him... "It's... it's all so fuzzy." Vangerdahast shook his head, then
tried to sit up. When his bindings prevented it, he lifted his left arm and
looked to the king. "Do you think I could-" "Of course." Azoun started to pull
his dagger to cut the bindings, but Owden leaned across the bed to restrain
him. "Not yet, Majesty." "Not yet?" Vangerdahast yelled. He whirled on the
priest and screamed, "Release me! Release me now, or I swear you will rue this
day when the crown is mine!" A weary groan escaped Azoun's lips, and
Vangerdahast saw at once that he was losing all hope of tricking his captors
into releasing him. He turned to the king. "It seems to be coming back." He
closed his eyes in concentration, though what he was concentrating on was
recalling some spell that he could cast without his hands. "Perhaps if you let
me have just one hand so I could tug on my beard. Yes, that's it. Tugging on
my beard always helps." Azoun merely shook his head and glared at Owden. "How
much longer?" The priest could only shrug. "I'm sure His Majesty cannot
recall, but his own convalescence was difficult as well, and his wounds were
not nearly as grievous as those of the royal magician." Vangerdahast blinked
several times, then turned his head toward Owden. "Wait. I'm feeling much
better now." "That's good," said Owden. "Can you remember what became of the
princess?" Vangerdahast nodded, and the incantation of his dimension door
spell returned to him in a flash. It was a quick and simple alteration no more
than half a dozen syllables long. Confident that he would soon be looking at
the planks from the other side, he fixed his gaze on the ceiling and started
his incantation-then smelled something familiar and strident as Owden Foley's
hand flashed into sight and flung a stream of glittering drops into his
eyes. Vangerdahast had the sudden sensation of falling, and the chamber went
dark, and he woke later to find himself bound and naked, covered by a single
linen, surrounded by enemies of the realm. Owden Foley stood to his right, a
clammy cold cloth in one hand and a brass basin in the other. Alaphondar
Emmarask and Merula the Marvelous watched from the foot of the bed, the one
with eyes sunken and bloodshot from reading too much, the other dressed in a
dusty robe, looking rather spectral and hollow-cheeked for a man of such
robust proportions. To the wizard's left stood Azoun IV in badly dented field
armor, a new steel patch covering a jagged hole high on his
breastplate. "Azoun?" gasped Vangerdahast. "Have you been fighting?" "Thank
the gods!" The king clasped Vangerdahast's shoulder. "You're back among
us." Vangerdahast glanced at the hand on his shoulder. "That's awfully
presumptuous, don't you think?" The wizard lifted an arm to brush away the
offending appendage, but found his wrist tied to the bed frame by a stout
cord. He glared at the rope in disbelief, then demanded, "What's the meaning
of this? Remove it at once!" Owden Foley leaned over the wizard and grasped
his other arm. "Perhaps later," he said. "Do you know where you
are?" Vangerdahast scowled. "Of course! I'm in my room in... We're in the
palace at..." He stared up at the familiar-looking joists and planks above his
head, but for the life of him could not remember what city they were in. He
pondered this for a moment, then reached the only possible conclusion. "You've
kidnapped me!" Azoun spewed an unspeakable curse on the goddess Chauntea, then
started around the bed to leave. Owden raised a finger. "One minute,
Sire." The king glared at the priest. "Just one. I still have a wife to save,
even if my daughter is beyond hope." Vangerdahast raised his head. "The
queen?" Owden nodded eagerly. "Yes, you remember the
queen." "Filfaeril?" "Queen Filfaeril," Owden confirmed. "Do you remember what
happened to her?" "Of course!" Vangerdahast remembered everything: the battle
in the canyon, Tanalasta flinging herself after Rowen, being attacked in the
stable yard, trying to knock Filfaeril out of the ghazneth's grasp. "Is the
queen well?" "That is impossible to say," said Azoun. "The last time we saw
her, she was definitely alive." Vangerdahast's heart sank. "The last time you
saw her?" "I am afraid the ghazneth has her," said Owden. "The king has seen
her once, as he was closing in on the creature's lair and it was forced to
move her." "By Thauglor's scales!" Vangerdahast started to rise, only to find
himself still tied into bed. He stared at the silken bindings in confusion for
a moment, then said, "Get these things off of me! We've got work to do." "Your
work can wait a little longer," said Owden. "You will not be fully cured until
you have faced the demon within." "The demon within?" Vangerdahast
demanded. "Each of us carries our own demon inside," Owden explained. "Most of
us keep it imprisoned in the deepest, darkest part of our souls where it can
do no harm. But when we undergo a terrible trauma such as you and the king
suffered, these demons can escape." Vangerdahast turned to Azoun. "What
nonsense is this?" "Vangerdahast, maybe you'd better listen." "To a
groundsplitter?" the wizard huffed. "Has Tanalasta finally gotten to you?" A
pained expression came to the king's face, and he looked away without
speaking. "I'm afraid that would be impossible," said Alaphondar, speaking for
the first time. "We haven't been able to convince you to tell us what became
of the princess." Vangerdahast scowled. "What do you mean, 'convince'? She's
with Rowen Cormaeril. They pulled away from me when I teleported back here."
He looked from Alaphondar to Azoun to Merula. "Is somebody going to tell me
what's happening here?" "Of course," said Owden. "Your inner demon escaped,
and you need to recapture it." "Recapture it?" "Before it consumes you
entirely," confirmed the priest. "You must look deep within yourself and face
it, here before these witnesses. You must tell us what the demon wants, then
you will have the strength to control it." Vangerdahast grew instantly
suspicious. They were trying to extract a confession from him, but why? After
all he had done for the realm, could Azoun actually be frightened of him? Or
jealous of his power? The wizard turned to berate the king for his
pettiness-and realized that was exactly what Owden wanted. Rebuking the king
would only feed Azoun's suspicion and breed resentment, while confessing to a
secret envy of the royal birthright-as farfetched as that might be-would make
it all but impossible for Azoun to trust him completely again. In either case,
Owden would be standing by, ready to replace Vangerdahast's counsel with his
own-and to replace the war wizards with his Royal Temple of
Chauntea. Vangerdahast whirled on the priest. "You dirt-grubbing worm! You
fork-tongued, scaly-bellied, lying snake. Do you really think you can meddle
in royal affairs? I'll see you growing mushrooms in the dungeon cesspits
before I name my demons in front of you!" Vangerdahast summoned to mind a
spell he could cast with voice alone and began to utter his incantation. Owden
reached for something, but the king raised his hand and waved him off. "I'd
say Vangerdahast is back to normal." Vangerdahast finished his spell, and in
the next second was lying on his bed in the form of a small mink. He rolled to
all four feet and dashed out from beneath the sheet, darting between
Alaphondar and Merula into a nearby corner. There he stopped and changed back
to his normal form, then turned to face his nervous-looking companions. "Are
you going to stand there and stare, or hand me a robe?" he demanded. "We've
got work to do." Owden started around the bed. "You can't do this," he said.
"You're not ready." "Harvestmaster Foley, if you mention my inner demon one
more time, I swear you'll spend the rest of your life dodging thrushes in the
palace gardens." Owden stopped at the foot of the bed and looked to Azoun. The
king only smiled and shrugged. "What can I say? Vangerdahast has always had a
bit of the demon in him." He looked to Merula, then added, "You heard the
royal magician. Find the man his robe." As Merula scrambled to obey,
Vangerdahast bowed to the king and said, "Thank you, Sire. It's good to see
that someone around here has returned to his senses." The wizard smoothed his
beard, then ran a hand through what remained of his hair and noticed the
slashes across the top of his head. He ran his fingers along the scars, noting
that they had already sealed themselves. "By Thauglor!" he cursed. "How long
did you let me sleep?" Azoun looked uncomfortable. "You've been... asleep for
five days." "And you couldn't wake me?" Vangerdahast whirled on Owden. "Aren't
you priests good for anything?" Owden's expression turned stormy, but before
the priest could say anything, Azoun took Vangerdahast by the elbow and guided
him toward a table and chairs. "We'd better sit down and have a talk, old
friend," he said. "We've got some planning to do, and there are a lot of
things we both don't know." 13 The swarm hung low in the northern sky, a
whirling flock of dark specks almost invisible against the looming wall of
Anauroch's golden sand dunes, spiraling down toward the jagged vestige of a
lonely keep tower. Alusair's trail ran toward the ruin as straight as an
arrow. Tanalasta did not have the courage to voice her thoughts, but there was
little need. After four days of dodging gnolls and ghazneths in the dusty
vastness that separated the Stonelands from the Goblin Marches, she and Rowen
had developed an uncanny instinct for what the other was thinking. The ranger
removed the saddlebags from his shoulder and opened the flap, then passed the
princess her weathercloak and bracers. "I wouldn't worry," said Rowen. "If
Alusair thought she was in more trouble than she could handle, she'd put on
her signet and call Vangerdahast." "And how many times have you seen her do
that?" It was a rhetorical question, and Tanalasta did not wait for an answer.
"Besides, what good would Vangerdahast be? With so many ghazneths, his magic
would be useless." Rowen regarded the distant specks for a moment. "I still
think there is good reason to hope. If the matter were decided, why would they
still be in the sky?" He closed the saddlebags again and picked up his
makeshift pike, which Tanalasta had fashioned by binding the iron dagger to
the end of a sturdy elm branch. Though the weapon was more cumbersome to carry
and use than a knife, it would also allow Rowen to strike with more power-and
perhaps help keep him out of his foe's reach. The princess draped the
weathercloak over her shoulders, then followed the ranger's lead and crouched
down behind a waist-high clump of silvery smokebush. It would be a long crawl
to the ruined keep, but the dusty plain was as level as a lake and cover was
scant. They moved in short bursts, running from bush to bush in a low crouch
or crawling across open areas on hands and knees. They were careful to keep
one eye fixed on the distant swarm of ghazneths and the other on the
underbrush, since the plain's deadly assortment of snakes, arachnids, and
chilopods all liked to hide in the relative safety of the spindly thorn
bushes. Several times, Tanalasta found herself backing away from the
widespread mandibles of a charging centipede or the upraised stinger of an
angry scorpion, and once Rowen had to catch the fangs of a striking wyv snake
on the butt of his pike. As they drew nearer to the keep, they began to notice
individual specks swooping down into the ruins or rising up from behind the
bailey wall to rejoin the main swarm. Tanalasta's stomach grew hollow with
dread, and she chafed at the delay of their stealthy approach. She and Alusair
were not the closest of sisters, but they were sisters, and she kept having
gruesome visions of ghazneths quarreling over Alusair's lifeless body. Rowen
seemed to sense Tanalasta's growing disquiet. He ran faster and for longer
periods, paying less attention to concealment as they went. The princess
appreciated his concern, but she also knew they would be no help at all if the
ghazneths saw them coming. Already, she could see the distinctive shape of the
creatures' outstretched wings, and it would not be long before they drew close
enough for the things to spy them rushing through the brush. Tanalasta was
about to remark on her concerns when the ranger suddenly stood up
straight. "Rowen, what are you doing?" Thinking he might have been bitten by a
lance snake or-even worse-a tiger centipede, she circled to his side and took
his arm. "What is it?" He did not move. "Those aren't ghazneths." Tanalasta
peered at the spiraling swarm, but it was still too distant for her to
identify individual shapes. She tried again to pull him down. "You can't be
sure." "Can't I?" He pointed toward the western edge of the spiral. "Watch
their wingtips as they turn." Tanalasta did so, and she noticed a ragged,
rounded fringe-almost like tiny fingers-silhouetted against the looming sand
dunes. "Feathers?" "So it would seem," Rowen replied. Tanalasta's heart sank.
"They're vultures." "We don't know what it means." He squeezed her arm.
"Perhaps one of Alusair's horses died." "That's too many vultures for one
horse," Tanalasta replied. The princess started forward at a near run,
struggling to hold her imagination in check. Tanalasta kept telling herself
that Alusair had outwitted a dozen creatures as terrible as any ghazneth, that
she was an experienced leader with a full company of warriors, a pair of
clerics, and plenty of magic at her disposal. But those assurances rang hollow
in the face of so many swarming vultures. There had to be a lot of carrion-and
the most obvious source of that carrion was a patrol of Cormyrean knights. As
they drew nearer, Tanalasta saw that the keep was one of those strange,
lopsided towers described in Artur Shurtmin's tome, The Golden Age of Goblins.
Constructed of slab sandstone and dark mortar, the spire had a conspicuous
bulge near the top of one side and leaned noticeably in that direction, as
though being dragged down by a great weight. Its girth was ringed by cockeyed
bands of tiny windows, suggesting the presence of at least eight interior
floors in a height of only forty feet. The outer walls were streaked by long
stains of scarlet and orange. Common myth held the stripes to be proof that
the builders had used the blood of captives in their mortar, but Artur-whose
love of the subject was perhaps too great for an impartial assessment of the
evidence-maintained the streaks were merely evidence that ancient goblins
often employed vertical stripes to make short things seem tall. Though
Tanalasta had her doubts about both beliefs, the truth of the matter would
never be known. The Goblin Kingdom had vanished long before history began, and
it was known today only by the ruins it had left scattered across the wild
lands between Anauroch and the Storm Horns. Tanalasta tried to take some
comfort from the presence of the goblin tower. Typically, such places were
merely the entrance to decaying tunnel warrens now occupied by all manner of
sinister creatures. Perhaps the vultures were feasting upon a tribe of kobolds
or barbarian goblins that had been foolish enough to attack as Alusair's
company passed through. Tanalasta and Rowen were still a hundred paces from
the bailey when they began to smell hints of death-the fetor of rotting meat,
acrid whiffs of charred flesh, the musty odor of newly-opened earth. Knowing
from Artur's tome that the goblins of the golden age always aligned their
gates with the setting sun, Tanalasta guided them toward the west side of the
bailey. The crowns of several large buckeye trees grew visible, protruding
just far enough above the wall to reveal the starlike shape of their
drought-yellowed leaves. The sickly odors grew heavier and more constant. As
they drew closer, the princess heard the flapping and hissing of squabbling
vultures, and also a sound she could not identify, an erratic rasping
punctuated at odd intervals by muffled clattering and sharp snapping
sounds. Tanalasta stopped beside the gate and peered around the corner. She
had been wrong about the number of buckeye trees. There was only one, with a
twisted silver trunk as thick as a giant's waist and a tangled umbrella of
yellowed boughs that covered the entire bailey. In the shadows beneath the
tree's limbs, two dozen starving horses stood fastened to a tether line, so
devitalized and weary they could hardly move to flick the vultures off.
Several beasts already lay motionless beneath a cloud of droning flies and
thrashing black feathers, while a tangle of scorched armor and charred bone
lay piled against the base of the keep, directly beneath a tiny third-story
window. Nearby, a dozen hissing birds played tug-of-war with the bones of a
Cormyrean knight. Beside the corpse rested a primitive sword, its cold-forged
blade covered with a layer of dusty red rust. Scattered across the bailey were
dozens of huge dirt piles, each resting next to the dark cavity of a recently
excavated hole. A muffled clatter sounded from the far side of the bailey, and
Tanalasta's attention was caught by the motion of several small stones rolling
down a dirt pile. She saw something black and vaguely arrow-shaped dancing
atop the mound. In the shadowy light beneath the buckeye, she took the shape
for a vulture-until a cloud of dirt came flying over the pile and momentarily
obscured it. Tanalasta felt Rowen's hand close around her arm, then she
finally recognized the dark shape as the top of a folded wing. She pulled back
and turned to face the ranger. "We'll have to lure it away," she
whispered. Rowen shook his head. "I'll take it from behind. With a little
luck, it'll never hear me coming." "And I'll be kept safely out of the way,"
said Tanalasta, voicing the unspoken reason for his suggestion. She shook her
head. "If I thought it would work, maybe, but those things are too quick and
too tough. Even if you could take it by surprise-and that's a big if-you'd
never kill it with a single stroke. We have to do this together." Rowen peered
around the corner again, then returned with a clenched jaw. "Forgive me for
saying so, Princess, but we must consider the possibility that you are the
only remaining heir. It would be treason to risk your life." "They're alive,"
said Tanalasta. "And so is Alusair." "You can't know that," he said. "They've
been burning their own, which means they've had disease, and-" "And they have
two clerics, a war wizard, and a whole saddlebag full of magic potions." "No
potions," said Rowen. "The wizard died the first time we met the ghazneth, and
even if the clerics are still alive, they have certainly run out of water by
now. You saw the condition of the horses, a human would not last half as
long." "There is water in the bottom of the warren-that's what the keeps were
built to protect." Tanalasta hoped Artur Shurtmin had based this observation
more solidly on fact than his fanciful explanation for the goblins' love of
crimson streaks. "Even if Alusair is dead, we may assume by the ghazneth's
digging that part of the company survives. Do you really think I would abandon
them to the creature-whether or not they were alive?" "I suppose not." Rowen
thrust the pike toward her. "Take this, and I'll see if I can get Fogger's
sword." Tanalasta refused to accept the weapon. "I'm not strong enough to do
much good with a pike, and I don't want to take the chance that the ghazneth
would notice the missing sword. It would ruin my plan." Rowen raised his brow.
"Plan?" "The Queen Feints." Tanalasta smiled confidently. "Boreas Kaspes used
it to win the King's Challenge in 978 DR." Rowen looked doubtful until
Tanalasta explained her plan, then gave a grudging nod and admitted that it
could work. He offered a few refinements and showed her how to roll over her
shoulder so she would not be hurt when she hurled herself to the ground, then
the princess kept watch while he used his heel to kick a shallow trench across
the near side of the gateway. Once that was done, he clasped her shoulder and
pulled her back behind the wall. "Remember, this isn't chess," he whispered.
"If the ghazneth does something unexpected, you won't have time to think about
your next move." Tanalasta nodded. "I'll just do it." The princess started to
step into the gateway, then thought better of it and pulled the ranger close
and kissed him on the lips long and hard. She did not stop until long after he
had gotten over his surprise, and even then she continued until her mind began
to wander to matters other than the ghazneth. Tanalasta drew back far enough
to look into Rowen's dark eyes, then gasped, "For luck!" "Indeed, I'm very
lucky." The ranger wrapped her in his arms and swung her deftly around to
press her back against the bailey wall. The sandstone slabs felt jagged and
hard against her spine, which was all the excuse Tanalasta needed to crush her
body against his, and within moments the princess was filled with a joyous,
god-sent hunger it would have been a sin to deny. She ran her hands along his
torso and felt his running along hers, and she ached for him to touch her in
all her sacred places-and that was when she knew she had definitely picked the
wrong time for their first kiss. Through a force of will, Tanalasta managed to
slip her hands between their torsos and press against Rowen's chest. The
ranger did not seem to realize she was trying to push him away-perhaps because
she was not trying very hard. He slipped one hand around to caress the small
of her back-actually it was a little lower-and brought the other up to touch
the softness of her breast, and the princess's knees nearly buckled. She let
herself go limp for the space of one very long breath, then summoned her
resolve and broke off the kiss. "Wait..." When she pushed against his chest
this time, a horrified look came to Rowen's face. He stumbled back, his cheeks
as crimson as blood. "Milady, forgive me! I thought ..." The ranger directed
his gaze to the ground, apparently unable to finish while he was looking at
Tanalasta. "I thought you wanted me to." "I did-I do." Tanalasta smiled and
took his hand, but was careful to keep him at arm's length. "But I think I'd
better keep a clear head, don't you?" Rowen nodded, his expression changing
from mortification to relief to anxiety. "We'd both better-it's just that I've
never felt anything... well, a kiss has never been quite like that." "What did
you expect when you kissed a princess?" Tanalasta chuckled, then glimpsed the
fleeting expression of guilt that flashed through Rowen's eyes. "Or have you
done that before?" Rowen looked away and started to answer, but Tanalasta
quickly raised her hand to silence him. "Never mind." "But-" "I don't want to
hear it." Tanalasta shook her head emphatically. "It might make me change my
mind about rescuing the little trollop." "But-" "Rowen, that was a
command!" Tanalasta slipped around the corner and stepped through the gate,
holding her bracers in her hands. On the far side of the bailey, the
ghazneth's wing was still visible, protruding up from behind the dirt pile it
had excavated. A cold chill crept down the princess's spine, and she found
herself wishing that Rowen hadn't been so quick to see the wisdom of her plan.
He was still taking the greatest risk by far, but Tanalasta was inexperienced
at being bait and could not help fearing she would make some terrible error
that would get them both killed. She checked to make sure her weathercloak
remained secure on her shoulders, then angled toward the iron sword, counting
the steps she had taken since coming through the gate. When the count reached
ten, Tanalasta slipped her bracers onto her wrists, then pictured her sister's
face and closed the clasp. The metal tingled beneath her fingers. Alusair's
image grew haggard and wan-looking. She had dark circles beneath her eyes and
sunken cheeks, and she seemed to be lying on her back in a very dark place.
When she showed no sign of feeling her sister's mind-touch, Tanalasta
experienced a moment of panic and very nearly cried out in grief. As the
princess struggled with her alarm, the ghazneth's shadowy head appeared above
the dirt pile. It turned toward the gate and stared directly at her, its beady
eyes gleaming red in the murkiness beneath the tree. Tanalasta allowed her
very real terror to voice itself in a scream, signaling to Rowen that she had
been seen. The vultures responded by launching themselves up through the
buckeye's gnarled umbrella, and the ghazneth scrambled over its dirt pile,
springing after Tanalasta with a bone-chilling hiss. She spun on her heel and
sprinted for the gate. Inside Tanalasta's mind, Alusair's gaze suddenly
shifted and grew a little less glassy. Outside keep with Rowen, Tanalasta
sent. Though she had rehearsed the message a dozen times after describing her
plan to Rowen, the princess found it astonishingly difficult to keep her
thoughts straight with a ghazneth swooping after her. Iron sword twenty paces
outside portcullis on left. In this together! Alusair's image blinked twice.
Tanalasta? Tanalasta could not respond. The weathercloak's magic allowed her
to send only one short message to the recipient, and the recipient to respond
with only a few equally short words. By the time she reached the gate, her
ears were filled with the throbbing of the ghazneth's wings beating the air.
She spied the little trench Rowen had kicked into the dirt and hurled herself
over the threshold, tucking her shoulder as he had taught her. A loud, sick
crackle erupted behind her. Tanalasta rolled to her feet, howling in
triumph. It was a short-lived victory yell. Rowen stood in the gateway, the
butt of his pike braced in the kick-trench, his rear elbow locked over the
long shaft and his forward arm braced against his hip to provide support. The
ghazneth had impaled itself at the other end of the weapon as planned, but it
was hardly the limp, lifeless heap Tanalasta had expected. The phantom was
dragging itself down the shaft in a mad attempt to jerk the pike from its
ambusher's grasp. Though this ghazneth was as naked as the other two the
princess had seen, it was much more powerful-looking, with a broad chest,
hulking shoulders, and a blocky male face. It had three goatlike horns at its
scalp, a jutting brow, and a flat, porcine nose from which it spewed clouds of
foul-smelling black fog every time it exhaled. So long were the thing's arms
that though it was only half-way down the pike, Rowen had to lean away when it
swung at him to avoid being gouged by its curled black talons. Tanalasta
raised one hand toward the creature's chest. "Rowen, get down!" "What?" Rowen
ducked a massive claw, then tried to swing the pike back and forth in an
effort to widen the ooze-pouring wound in the creature's chest. "I'm all that
stands between you-" "Do it!" Tanalasta commanded. Not waiting to see if he
would obey, she slapped her bracers. "King's bolts!" A fiery tingling shot up
her arm, then Rowen hurled himself to the ground just as four golden bolts
shot from Tanalasta's fingertips. The ghazneth was as quick to furl its wings
as its fellows, but the pike running through its breast prevented the leathery
appendages from drawing completely closed. Tanalasta's magic bolts shot
through the tiny gap, catching the creature square in the sternum and
launching it backward through the gate. The ghazneth slammed down on its back
and rolled once, snapping the pike off at both ends. Behind it, Tanalasta
glimpsed half a dozen figures staggering out of the goblin keep. Then the
creature was on its feet again, gathering itself to spring. "What now?" Rowen
gasped, struggling in vain to recover even half as fast as their
foe. Tanalasta reached down for him. "My hand!" This time, Rowen did not need
to be told twice. He grabbed hold even as the princess was pushing her other
hand into the weathercloak's escape pocket. There was that instant of dark
timelessness, then they were inside the bailey, next to the picked-over
skeleton Tanalasta had noticed from the gate, surrounded by the haggard,
staggering, filthy-smelling survivors of Alusair's company. She and Rowen were
staring at the jagged shaft of the broken pike protruding from between the
ghazneth's broken wings. "The sword!" Tanalasta urged, pointing at the
ground. Rowen cursed, and she looked down to discover that the iron sword was
gone. The ghazneth spun on them, spreading its wings wide to sweep its
attackers off their feet as it turned. Alusair dropped out of the buckeye's
tangled umbrella, bringing the iron sword down toward the phantom's skull. Her
foot brushed one of its wings on the way down, and that was all the warning
the thing needed. It slipped its head to one side, and the rust-coated blade
slid down the side of its skull, slashing off an ear and biting deep into its
collarbone. The ghazneth roared in pain and used its good arm to slap Alusair
off its back, then spun to finish her off. Tanalasta summoned her magic bolt
spell to mind, but Rowen was already clutching the tip of their broken lance
and hurling himself at the beast's back. The ranger struck at a full sprint,
driving the dagger through a leathery wing and pinning it to the ghazneth's
back. The phantom roared and spun to face him, and then Alusair was behind it
with the iron sword again, shredding its wings and hacking deep, oozing
slashes into its legs. The ghazneth spun again, but this time it merely
swatted the armored princess aside and hobbled through the gate as fast as a
lightning bolt. Tanalasta rushed to her sister's side. Alusair lay sprawled on
the face of a dirt mound, both eyes closed and breathing in quick, faint
rasps. Tanalasta kneeled and cradled her sister's head in her lap. "Alusair!
Can you hear me? Are you hurt?" "Of course I'm hurt! You ever been hit by one
of those things?" Alusair opened one brown eye and glared at Tanalasta. "And
what in the Nine Hells are you doing here? This is no place for a crown
princess!" Seeing that her little sister would be fine, Tanalasta smiled and
said, "No, Alusair, it's not." 14 The Royal Excursionary Company emerged from
the timeless murk with a crackle like lightning, then sat swaying in their
saddles, stomachs rolling and heads spinning with teleport afterdaze. Slowly,
darkness gave way to dun-colored light, and the warped sycamore appeared on
the barren hillside ahead. A hot wind began to stipple them with brown
moorlands dust, and the silence gave way to clattering and snorting, and
stoop-shouldered silhouettes started to come into focus all around. Something
sharp struck Vangerdahast's ribs and bounced off his magic shield without
causing harm, then the horses began to scream. "Swiners!" Vangerdahast yelled,
finally coming out of his afterdaze. "Ambush!" A streak of swooping darkness
came down from his right and caught him by the arm, jerking him from the
saddle and lifting him high off the ground. He glimpsed his excursionary
company below, fifty mighty war wizards backed by two hundred Purple Dragons,
mingled in with a horde of shrieking, startled swiners. Vangerdahast cursed.
Though they had foreseen the reception committee, no one had expected to
teleport into the very heart of an orc tribe. Vangerdahast drew a small lead
ball from his sleeve pocket and rolled it between his thumb and forefinger,
uttering a swift incantation. His body grew silvery and heavy. The ghazneth
cried out in surprise and plunged toward the ground, its wings hammering the
air in a futile attempt to keep the wizard aloft. Vangerdahast twisted around
to clutch hold of its arm, though not because he feared being dropped and
crashing into the ground. Like everyone else in the company, he had been
magically shielded against any form of blow or cut before leaving Arabel. He
was grabbing the phantom because of the mad bloodlust that had come over him
the moment he glimpsed the thing-the same bloodlust he had experienced the
first time he saw it. He wanted to drag it down to the ground and draw his
iron dagger and slash the wicked creature into black ribbons. As Vangerdahast
expected when he looked up, he found himself staring into the haggish visage
of the first ghazneth he had encountered. The thing was snarling down at him
with flared nostrils and bare yellow fangs, its red-tinged eyes bulging with
strain and hatred. Vangerdahast glimpsed the edge of the battle less than
twenty feet below and pulled his black, cold-forged dagger from its belt
sheath, and the phantom finally seemed to realize the hopelessness of its
struggle. Hissing angrily, it opened its talons and let the wizard drop
free. In his mad battle fury, Vangerdahast could think of nothing but
finishing the thing. He continued to hold onto its wrist-then yelled in agony
as the full burden of his magical weight shifted to his own arm and jerked the
shoulder out of its socket. His hand opened of its own accord, then he slammed
to the ground and went tumbling backward across the rocks. Even as he rolled,
Vangerdahast heard the throb of a dozen bowstrings and glimpsed a flurry of
dark shafts streak past above his head. The ghazneth shrieked, and the wizard
knew at least one of the iron-tipped shafts had found its mark. On the next
revolution, he jammed his feet into the ground and managed to bring his
somersaulting to a stop, then tried to rise and found his body too heavy to
lift. Vangerdahast canceled the heaviness spell with a thought, then staggered
to his feet still clutching his iron dagger. The ghazneth was already a
hundred feet away, climbing back into the sky and banking northward, the
shafts of half a dozen arrows dangling from its breast. A pair of spear points
slammed into Vangerdahast's back, knocking him off his feet and driving him
back to the ground. Though the spears could not penetrate his magic armor, the
fall did cause his separated shoulder to erupt in pain. He cursed loudly, then
dropped his dagger and thrust his good hand into his weathercloak, feeling for
his thickest war wand. Seeing that their first attack had not pierced the
wizard's woolen cloak, the orcs jammed their spear tips into his back again. A
fresh wave of agony shot through Vangerdahast's shoulder. "Stupid swiners!" He
rolled onto his back, slamming his heel into the first warrior's knee and
sweeping it off its feet. "Any kobold can see spears won't work!" Vangerdahast
leveled his wand and a thread of golden light lanced out to pierce the orc's
chest. The creature dropped its spear, reached for its heart, and erupted into
a crimson spray. The wizard turned away from the gory shower, then felt a pair
of talons raking at his knees. He looked back to find the second swiner
clawing its way up his legs, tusks gnashing and beady eyes burning with
blood-hunger. Vangerdahast raised his brow at the uncharacteristic display of
courage, then leveled his wand at the orc's forehead. The rabid creature did
not even cringe as the golden thread of light lanced out to blast its skull
apart. The wizard pushed the headless corpse from his lap and leaped to his
feet. A swiner scrambled past, its crooked spear braced for the attack.
Vangerdahast leveled his wand, then was surprised to hear himself shouting in
glee as its magic reduced the warrior to flying pieces. A loud rumble sounded
behind him. He turned toward the sound and found himself looking into the
heart of the battle, where a web of flashing thunderbolts and glimmering death
rays was littering the ground with smoking swiner corpses. The orcs, of
course, could cause little harm against the might of magic. Their stone spear
points shattered against the impenetrable armor of the Purple Dragons, their
soft swords bent against the enchanted wool of the war wizards' weathercloaks,
and their claws snapped against the magic-shielded flanks of the snorting
war-horses. The Royal Excursionary Company countered with good Connyrean steel
and well-chosen spells, and orcs fell by the dozen. One dragoneer lopped the
heads off three foes in a row, only to be outdone an instant later when a
fireball reduced half a dozen swiners to charred bits of bone. Finding the
battle well in hand, Vangerdahast turned to look for the ghazneth. After a
lengthy search, he found it circling high overhead, a mere speck well beyond
arrow range. The battle clamor faded as quickly as it started, and the phantom
continued to circle. Reluctantly, Vangerdahast tore his eyes away from the
dark speck and began to wade through the carnage. "Down magic!" he commanded,
trying to find one of the company clerics to fix his separated shoulder. "Odd
troops, iron. Even troops, steel!" The Royal Excursionary Company scrambled to
obey, the war wizards canceling their protective spells, the dragoneers wiping
their blades clean before exchanging them for weapons of the appropriate
metal. Vangerdahast waited on the exchange with ill-concealed impatience. The
wizard had been drilling them in his special maneuvers for the last two
days-the length of time required for the smiths of Arabel to forge a full
complement of iron arms for every man in the company-and he was still not
satisfied with their performance. The ghazneths were vicious, quick creatures
who would repay any fumbling with swift death, and the wizard had no idea how
many of them there were-or how they would respond to the presence of the Royal
Excursionary Company. There had been no sign of phantoms yesterday, when he
and his war wizards had scouted the canyon where Vangerdahast had last seen
Tanalasta, but it seemed clear that at least one ghazneth had watched them
select the sycamore tree as the Royal Excursionary Company's assembly point.
Vangerdahast doubted the thing had intended for them to teleport in on top of
the swiners-no sensible commander would have risked the confusion of an enemy
suddenly appearing within his ranks-but it had made known its feelings about
the force's presence. Finding the royal princesses was not going to be easy,
even with two hundred and fifty of Cormyr's mightiest warriors to help
him. Vangerdahast neared the front of the company, where a small cluster of
men in mottled camouflage armor had dismounted and spread out through the
carnage. They were dragging wounded swiners around by the tusks, growling and
snarling in passable Orcish and threatening all manner of gruesome torture
unless someone told them where to find "two humans riding one meal." The
terrified orcs pointed in every which direction, a sure sign they had no idea
what had become of Rowen and Tanalasta. "Scouts! You're wasting your time."
Vangerdahast waved his good arm around the perimeter of the battlefield. "Find
me a trail-and be quick about it!" The Royal Scouts were quick to obey,
pausing only long enough to put the captured orcs out of their misery before
scattering in all directions. Owden Foley appeared, leading Vangerdahast's
horse and scowling at the rangers' efficiency. "This isn't good," he said,
dismounting. "This needless killing will only bring harm to us." "These are
not the lands of Chauntea," growled the wizard. Having agreed to bring the
priest along only at Azoun's insistence, he was none too happy at being
lectured on his men's treatment of orcs. "These lands belong to Gruumsch and
Maglibuyet, and they have a thirst for blood. Besides, killing them is the
kindest thing. A wounded orc can look forward to one of two things: a slow
death by starvation, or, if he's lucky, being made a slave to his own tribe.
Swiners don't care for their wounded." "Then you are lucky we are not orcs."
Owden passed the reins in his hand to an assistant and took hold of the
wizard's limp arm. "But it was not the orcs I was thinking of. Did you not
feel that lunatic bloodlust?" Vangerdahast looked at the priest. "You felt it
too?" "Of course-I still do." Owden lifted one foot and braced it against
Vangerdahast's ribs, then began hauling on the wizard's arm. "It was caused by
this ghazneth-just as the last one caused your insanity." Vangerdahast
screamed until his arm popped into its socket, then dropped to his knees and
tried not to groan. "Battle-lust can make men foolish," said Owden. "What do
you suppose will happen when the ghazneths are ready for us?" "I suppose you
know the answer," Vangerdahast growled. He struggled to his feet and tried to
raise his arm. He could not lift it more than a few inches, and the effort
made him hiss with pain. "I imagine you have a solution?" "Chauntea does."
Owden laid a healing hand on the wizard's aching shoulder. "Here, the goddess
will help you with that." Vangerdahast jerked his arm away. "I don't need her
help." The wizard fished a healing potion from inside his own cloak and downed
it, then said, "And the Royal Excursionary Company does not need her
protection." Owden pointed at the empty vial in Vangerdahast's hand. "That
elixir was blessed by aged. There is no difference between drinking it and
accepting the All Mother's help." "The difference is that the Royal Treasury
paid good gold for this." Vangerdahast could already feel the potion's fiery
magic driving the ache from his strained shoulder. He used his injured arm to
hurl the empty vial into a rock. "And that is all Tempus expects of us in
return." Owden shook his head. "I am not your adversary, Vangerdahast." "Then
why did you persuade the king to send you along?" "Because you may need my
help." Owden's eyes betrayed the anger he was struggling to contain. "I'm not
trying to take your place. I'm only thinking of Tanalasta." "You are not
thinking of Tanalasta." Vangerdahast snatched Cadimus's reins from Owden's
assistant, then swung into his saddle. "If you were thinking of Tanalasta, you
would be back in Huthduth by now." The wizard jerked Cadimus around toward the
warped sycamore tree, leaving the priest to glare at his back. Despite the
harsh words, Vangerdahast knew the harvestmaster to be a good and capable
man-and that was the heart of the problem. Having cured both the king and the
royal magician of insanity, Owden had risen high in the opinions of many
influential people-including the Royal Sage Alaphondar Emmarask, many of the
nobles who had at first opposed creating a Royal Temple, and most importantly
Azoun himself. Not only had the king insisted on sending Owden along to help
find his daughters, he had asked the rest of the harvestmaster's priests to
help him and Merula rescue the queen. Given Azoun's inherent decency, the king
would certainly feel obliged to express his gratitude to the monks, perhaps by
establishing Tanalasta's Royal Temple-and that Vangerdahast simply could not
allow. As trustworthy and capable as Owden might be, there could be no
guarantee that his successor would prove as valuable to the realm, or that
Chauntea would not use him to impose her own will on the kingdom. It had been
more than thirteen hundred years since the ancient elves had charged Baerauble
Etharr with serving the first Cormyrean king as advisor and Royal Wizard.
Since then, it had been the sole duty of every Royal Magician to protect both
the king and his realm by steering them down the safest path. Vangerdahast was
not about to let that tradition end under his watch-not when it had proven the
wisest and most effective guarantee of the realm's safety for
thirteen-and-a-half centuries. When Vangerdahast reached the gnarled sycamore
tree, he found old Alaphondar exactly where he had expected: stumbling
absentmindedly around the trunk, squinting at the glyphs and painstakingly
copying them into his journal. So absorbed was the Royal Sage Most Learned
that he did not notice the wizard's presence until Cadimus nuzzled his
neck-then he hurled his pencil and journal into the air, letting out such a
shriek that half the company started up the hill to see what was
wrong. Vangerdahast signaled the riders to stop, then asked, "Well, old
friend? Was it worth the trip?" Alaphondar pushed his spectacles up his nose,
then lifted his chin to regard the royal magician. "It's curious,
Vangerdahast-really quite strange." If the sage was irritated at being
startled, his voice did not betray it. He simply retrieved his journal and
pencil off the ground, then turned back to the tree and continued to
work. "These glyphs are First Kingate," he said. "In fact, they are quite
possibly Post Thaugloraneous." Vangerdahast had no idea what the sage was
talking about. "First Kingate?" he echoed. "As in, from Faerlthann's
time?" "That would be Faerlthannish, would it not?" Alaphondar peered over his
spectacles, regarding Vangerdahast as though the royal magician were the
under-educated scion of a minor family. "I mean First Kingate, as in Iliphar
of the Elves." "The Lord of Scepters?" Vangerdahast gasped. "The first king of
the elves?" Alaphondar nodded wearily. "That would be First Kingate," he said.
"Approximately fourteen and a half centuries ago-a hundred years before
Faerlthann was crowned. More than fifty years before the Obarskyrs settled in
the wilderness, in fact." Vangerdahast glanced at the barren moors around
them, trying to envision some unimaginably ancient time when they were covered
with lush forest and home to a lost kingdom of elves. "But the glyphs aren't
the interesting part," said Alaphondar. "They aren't?" The sage shook his
head, then said, "This tree isn't that old. In fact, it's three hundred years
too young." Vangerdahast knew better than to doubt the sage. "And you know
this because..." "Because of this." Alaphondar turned and ran his hand over
the glyphs. Instantly, the raspy voice of an anguished elven maid filled the
air, and the sound of nervous horses and astonished men rose behind
Vangerdahast. Alaphondar translated the song: This childe of men, lette his
bodie nourishe this tree. The tree of this bodie, lette it growe as it
nourishe. The spirit of this tree, to them lette it return as it grewe. Thus
the havoc bearers sleepe, the sleepe of no reste. Thus the sorrow bringers
sow, the seeds of their ruine. Thus the deathe makers kille, the sons of their
sons. Here come ye, Mad Kang Boldovar, and lie among these rootes. When the
song was finished, Vangerdahast gasped, "Boldovar?" Alaphondar nodded
excitedly. "You see?" The sage ran his finger along a set of curls that looked
identical to every other set of curls. "He died three hundred years after
these serpentine beaks passed out of vogue." "I'll have to trust your
judgment, old friend," said Vangerdahast. He knew how to make the glyphs sing,
but he could not read them-much less identify the era in which they had been
inscribed. "What does it mean?' "Mean?" Alaphondar looked confused. "Why, I
couldn't begin to tell you." "But we can conclude that the elf who inscribed
these glyphs was over three hundred years old," Vangerdahast prodded. Out of
the corner of his eye, he noticed the Royal Scouts returning from their search
for Tanalasta's trail. Their lionar was riding up the hill to report. "Oh
yes," Alaphondar prodded, "and more importantly, that she had been living away
from her people for at least that long. Do you have any idea what that kind of
loneliness would do to an elf?" Vangerdahast eyed the glyphs, recalling their
bitter words and the anguished tone of the song. "Yes. I'm afraid I
do." Alaphondar started down the hill toward the hole that led beneath the
roots. "Perhaps I'll learn more in the burial chamber." "I'm afraid there
won't be time for that." Vangerdahast turned to face the scouts' lionar, who
was reining his horse to a stop in front of the wizard. "We'll be leaving
directly." Alaphondar stopped in his tracks. "Leave?" he gasped, spinning
around. "We can't leave yet. It will take at least a day to sketch the site
properly, and another day just to start the preliminary excavations." "We
don't have a day." Vangerdahast looked into the sky and found no sign of the
ghazneth. "We may not have even an hour." "But-" "This is a military
expedition, Alaphondar," Vangerdahast interrupted, motioning the scouts'
lionar forward. "Our goal is to find the princesses and return them to
Arabel-quickly." The exhilaration vanished from Alaphondar's eyes. "Of
course-how could I forget?" He started toward his horse, then had another
thought and turned back to Vangerdahast. "Maybe you could go ahead..." "You've
seen two ghazneths now," Vangerdahast said. "Do you really want to face one of
them alone-or even with a dozen dragoneers at your back?" Alaphondar grimaced,
then turned toward his horse. "Forget I asked." Vangerdahast faced the lionar.
"Did you find their trail?" The scout nodded, then pointed into the valley
between the Mule Ear peaks. "We found a few old hoof prints. They're heading
south into the mountains." "That's welcome news indeed," Vangerdahast said,
sighing in relief. "Maybe Tanalasta has finally come to her senses and decided
the time has come to return to Cormyr." 15 The air reeked of rank meat and
mildewed earth, and in the cramped staleness of the tomb, Tanalasta felt
feverish and dizzy. She had a queasy stomach, fogged vision, and goosebumps
rising along her spine, and on the floor ahead lay something she did not
really want to see. It was armored in tarnished plate and sprawled on its
back, a sullied sword and battered shield lying on the stones to either side
of it. An opulent growth of white mold had sprouted from the troughs of
several clawlike rents across the breastplate, and the crown of the thing's
great helm had been staved in. The face and limbs were lost beneath a thick
blanket of the same white mold sprouting from the splits in the armor, and
only the crumpled, striking-hawk crest over its heart identified the corpse as
that of Emperel Ruousk, Guardian of the Sleeping Sword. Holding the smoky
torch before her, Tanalasta slipped out of the entrance passage into the tomb
itself. Like the last one she had visited, this grave was surrounded by a
fine-meshed net of black roots, many of which had been cut away during the
battle that killed Emperel. Tangled among the roots, she could see the same
web of gossamer filaments she had noticed in the first tomb. The floor was
littered with tatters of rotted leather, buttons, buckles, and the mineralized
soles of a large pair of boots. Tanalasta pocketed a handful of the detritus
to examine later, then removed the rope from her waist and stepped over to
Emperel's body. Her queasy stomach revolted at the horrid fetor of the
decaying corpse, and she barely managed to spin away before her belly emptied
itself. When the retching ended, her temples were throbbing and her knees were
trembling. The princess chided herself for being so qualmish, decay was as
much a part of the life circle as growth, and it was an affront to the All
Mother to treat it with aversion. Tanalasta took a deep breath and returned to
the body. Despite her determination, she felt weak and lightheaded and feared
she would pass out if she touched the moldy thing. She briefly considered
retreating and leaving Emperel lie, but it would have been an insult to the
memory of a brave knight to bury him in a place of such evil. The princess
jammed the butt of her torch into a crevice between two floor stones and
picked up the warrior's sword. She slid the flat of the blade under his back
and, with a weary grunt, rolled him up on his side, then held him there with
one arm while she fed the rope under his back. By the time the princess
finished, her joints were aching and she was out of breath. She trudged around
the body and slipped the sword under the opposite side and felt something
block it. She noticed the dark line of a satchel strap hidden beneath the
white mold. Tanalasta used the sword tip to scrape the mold away, then took
hold of the slimy strap and pulled the satchel from under Emperel's body. It
was a small courier's pouch, with a waterproof wax finish and a weather flap.
Though the satchel was not closed tight, the flap was at least folded over the
opening, and Tanalasta could think of only one reason Emperel would have been
carrying an open pouch when he died. "May the Great Mother bless you, Emperel
Ruousk." The princess laid the slime-smeared satchel aside, then used the
sword to roll Emperel's body onto its side and pull the rope the rest of the
way under his back. She tugged the line up under his arms, then tied a secure
bowline knot and gave the rope three quick tugs. The line went taut, swinging
Emperel around and dragging him toward the exit. When he came to the dirt wall
below the passage, his head caught on the wall and tipped back, causing a
muffled crack someplace in his neck. Without thinking, Tanalasta reached
behind his head and tipped it forward, sticking her hand into a fibrous mass
of putrefying scalp and mold-coated hair. She fought back the urge to retch
long enough to guide the body into the passage, then immediately grabbed a
fistful of dirt and scoured the slime from her hand. Affront to the goddess or
not, the princess simply felt too weak to abide having the stuff on her
flesh. Once her hand was relatively clean, Tanalasta returned to the pouch and
opened the weather flap. Inside, she found a piece of charcoal, a pencil, a
small leather-bound journal, some magic rings similar to her own-save for a
striking-hawk signet, all standard issue for an officer of the Purple
Dragons-and several small rolls of folded silk in relatively good condition.
In the light of the flickering torch, Tanalasta unfurled the first of the silk
rolls. It was about a foot wide, with two rough-cut edges that suggested it
had been taken from a much larger bolt of cloth. The princess rolled it back
up, then unfurled another. This one had been rubbed with charcoal along the
center, recording the smooth, erratically-fissured pattern of the bark of a
white alder tree-and, in negative image, the familiar serpentine characters of
ancient elven glyphs. The rubbing was rather fuzzy and difficult to read, but
Tanalasta could make out the characters well enough to realize they were
almost identical to the ones she had read in the moorlands several days ago.
There was the peculiar epitaph enjoining a dead person's body to nourish the
tree, and the tree to yield that spirit back, "to them lette it return as it
grewe." Then there was the curse, condemning the "havoc bearers" to "kille the
sons of their sons." Only the last line, the summoning, was different: Here
come ye, Faithless Suzara, and lie among these rootes. In her shock, Tanalasta
cried out and let the silk slip from her fingers. Like King Boldovar, Suzara
was an ancestor of hers-in fact, one of her very oldest ancestors. She had
been married to Ondeth Obarskyr when be came to the wilderness and built his
cabin in what would one day become the kingdom of Cormyr. In fact, the city of
Suzail was named for her. It was always possible that the summons referred to
some other Suzara, but Tanalasta found that unlikely. Suzara had never been a
very popular name in Cormyr, carrying as it did a certain connotation of
frailty and selfishness. After it had finally dawned on Suzara that she would
never persuade her stubborn husband to return to the comforts of Impiltur, she
had taken their youngest child and left without him. Without bothering to
reroll the silk, Tanalasta pulled another spool from the satchel and unfurled
it. This one was the duplicate of the invocation she had readjust a few
minutes before entering the tomb, on the buckeye tree above her head. It
summoned a famous traitor, Melineth Turcasson, who had betrayed his King
Duar-his trusting son-in-law-by selling the city of Suzail to a pirate band
for five hundred sacks of gold. The princess opened the rest of the silks in a
flurry but found only the name of Lady Merendil, a naive fool who had thought
to use an apprentice royal magician to lure the first Prince Azoun to an early
grave. This name actually gave Tanalasta cause for relief, all the other
traitors had been her ancestors. Tanalasta pulled Emperel's journal from the
satchel. It was written right to left in High Halfling to foil uninvited
readers, but the princess needed only a minute to recognize the trick and
another minute to recall the basics of the ancient language. The first part of
the journal was filled with unimportant entries detailing a two-day trip up
the Moonsea Ride in preparation for investigating a series of reports claiming
that the orcs were massing in the Stonelands. Matters grew more interesting
once he entered the walled town of Halfhap, where a tenth of the local
garrison had vanished while out searching for a murderer. Apparently, a
stranger had appeared in Halfhap one night raving drunk, boasting to anyone
who would listen about how he was going to avenge his family's unjust
treatment at the king's hands. When a tavern keeper had dared suggest that he
take his business elsewhere, the stranger had used his bare hands to tear the
man's head from his shoulders, then went outside and vanished. The local
commander had sent a company of dragoneers after the murderer, but they had
failed to return, and it was shortly afterward that Emperel had stopped at the
garrison and learned of the strange events. After a few inquiries, Emperel had
set out after the killer, tracking him to a giant, twisted fir tree where
Halfhap's missing company lay slain to a man. He had tracked the killer into a
strange tomb beneath the tree and fought him there. During the battle, he had
recognized the man as Gaspar Cormaeril, one of Aunadar Bleth's collaborators
who died during the Abraxus Affair, somehow returned to life. There was a note
in the margin noting that later, after making a few inquiries when he returned
to Halfhap for a new horse, he had decided the fellow was most likely Gaspar's
look-alike cousin, Xanthon. Tanalasta stopped reading for a moment. Xanthon
was familiar to her as one of Rowen's more "adventurous" cousins, who-along
with Thaerilon, Boront, Cheidrin, Flaram, and Horontar-journeyed the
Heartlands in search of wealth and excitement. From what she recalled, they
were generally less successful in their pursuit of the former than the latter,
often finding it necessary to ask King Azoun to convince some foreign mayor or
monarch that executing them was not worth the trouble it might cause between
the two countries. Azoun had always been happy to oblige, at least until
Gaspar had taken part in the Abraxus Affair, since the Cormaerils never failed
to repay the crown's expenses in quadruple. Now that the family was no longer
in the royal graces, Tanalasta had heard that Boront and Cheldrin had met
unhappy fates, while Horontar made his livelihood cleaning the cesspits of
Darkhold. She returned to the journal. To Emperel's dismay, capturing his
quarry had proven more difficult than expected. Xanthon had proven
unbelievably quick and strong, and he seemed to drain the magic from any
enchanted weapon that was used against him. By the time the battle ended,
Emperel had lost most of his magic items, including his dagger, weathercloak,
and the signet ring he used to contact Vangerdahast-Tanalasta could not help
wondering how many others secretly carried the wizard's special rings. In the
end, Emperel had wounded his quarry severely enough that Xanthon killed his
pursuer's horse and fled. Emperel returned to Halfhap for a new horse and a
bolt of silk, then returned to take a rubbing from the fir tree and resume his
hunt. Tanalasta examined the silk rolls again, ascertaining from the bark
pattern that the fir had been Suzara's tree. It had taken Emperel a few days
to find Xanthon's trail again, but eventually he had crossed paths with an orc
tribe that had seen a shadowy figure racing toward a "devil tree" near the
Battle of Broken Bones. Emperel had quickly found the place and discovered a
gnarled elm with the same glyphs as the giant fir. Tanalasta studied the
rubbings and quickly determined that this had been Lady Merendil's tomb. She
skimmed the rest of the entries and quickly connected Emperel's next stops to
the two tombs she had visited, Boldovar's sycamore tree in the moorlands and
Melineth's buckeye in the goblin keep. The journal's last entry was a cryptic,
almost illegible reference to finally capturing Xanthon, followed by the
inexplicable exclamation: Helm save us! Their pride is our doom! When the
princess closed the book, she discovered that her concentration had given her
a pounding headache. Her hands were trembling, and she could feel trails of
sweat running down her body. She returned the journal to Emperel's satchel and
began to reroll the rubbings. It did not occur to her to wonder how long she
had been sitting in the tomb until Alusair's voice sounded from the entrance
passage. "Shave my bones!" It was a favourite curse among knuckle-bone
gamblers whose luck had run out. "What are you doing? I thought the fever had
taken you!" "I feel fine." Tanalasta looked up and noticed, for the first
time, the guttering flame atop her torch. It did not occur to her that her
aching and nausea were due to anything but the strain of reading by such dim
light, or the awful stench of the place. "I've been reading Emperel's account
of his death." "He recorded it for posterity?" Alusair dropped unsteadily into
the tomb, looking little better than Tanalasta felt. "That doesn't sound like
Emperel." "I never met the man, so I wouldn't know." Tanalasta motioned at
Emperel's message pouch, then said, "But I assure you, he was very thorough.
This account will save us a tenday's of investigation." "Investigation?"
Alusair scoffed. "There isn't going to be an investigation. With all these
ghazneths flying around, I'm not taking any chances with your life. We're
going home." Tanalasta shoved a silk roll into the pouch. "It's not me we
should be concerned with." "Not on your life!" Alusair shook her head
vehemently. Tanalasta had already given her sister their father's message,
only to be laughed at and roundly rebuked. "I told you not to drag me into
this. It's between you and the king." "It is between the king and whoever he
says it is." "What's he going to do? Order me to be queen?" Alusair staggered
over and kneeled down beside Tanalasta. "The next thing you know, he'll be
telling me to marry some buffoon with a long title and a short... sword." The
long crawl through the entrance passage had left Alusair coated with mold and
slime from Emperel's body, but she did not seem to notice. She grabbed the
torch and looked into her sister's eyes, then placed a palm to Tanalasta's
brow. "You're on fire!" She grabbed Tanalasta and pulled her roughly to her
feet, leaving more than a dozen silks unfurled on the floor. "I should never
have let you come in here." "Someone had to do it, Princess." Rowen slid out
of the entrance, crowding the little tomb to the point of bursting, "Tanalasta
is the most knowledgeable about what all is means." "She is also the crown
princess." Alusair pushed Tanalasta past Rowen toward the exit. "Help me get
out of here so Gaborl can see to her." "Wait!" Tanalasta stretched her hand
toward the silks. "We need those rubbings." "Not as much as we need to get out
of here. Come along." Alusair pushed her sister's head down and tried to shove
her into the exit, but Tanalasta countered by grabbing hold of the sides of
the wall. "You don't understand. They are our ancestors." "She must be
delirious," Rowen said. He picked up one the blank silks and inspected it.
"There's nothing on him." Tanalasta still refused to enter the passage. "I'm
not delirious. Some of the silks have rubbings of the tree glyphs, they name
the ghazneths-Suzara Obarskyr, King Boldovar, Mirabelle Merendil, Melineth
Turcasson." "Mirabelle Merendil is no ancestor of ours." Alusair tabbed
Tanalasta's arm and wrenched it around behind her back. "I don't have time for
this. The ghazneths will be back soon." She pulled the other arm free, then
shoved Tanalasta headlong into the passage. Tanalasta craned her neck around
and shouted, "And Xanthon Cormaeril is the one setting them free!" "We don't
have time for this." Alusair stopped nonetheless, then pulled Tanalasta out of
the hole and eyed her warily. "You're sure?" Tanalasta nodded, then dropped to
her knees and rifled through the silks until she found one with a rubbing. She
showed it Rowen. "You recognize the glyphs?" He nodded. "But what does Xanthon
have to do with them?" "Unless I miss my guess, he is the one digging the
ghazneths out of their tombs," Tanalasta explained. She went on to recount the
story of Xanthon's appearance in Halfhap and Emperel's subsequent efforts to
track him down, then completed the story by reading the journal's final
cryptic entry. "Their pride is our doom?" Alusair repeated. "What's that
mean?" "And who etched the glyphs in the first place?" Rowen added. "Certainly
not Xanthon." Tanalasta could only shake her head. "We won't know that until
we catch Xanthon-or find the rest of the trees." "Or until we let Vangerdahast
sort it out," Alusair said. "Which is exactly what we'll do. We'll head over
Marshview Pass to Goblin Mountain Outpost. Then, the instant we have a few
dragoneers to hold off the ghazneths, well do a sending and tell him to come
get us." Tanalasta and Rowen glanced at each other nervously-a gesture that
was not lost on Alusair. "What?" It was Rowen who answered. "During your uh,
discussion about who's really the crown princess, there was one thing we had
no chance to mention." Alusair frowned. "Are you going to tell me now?" "We
probably shouldn't count on Vangerdahast," said Tanalasta. "It might not be
safe to contact him." Alusair narrowed her eyes. "You said he had returned to
Arabel." "He did." Tanalasta summoned enough of her fading energies to raise
her chin. "But we didn't want to go with him." "And we pulled away at the last
second," said Rowen. "It was more by accident than-" "You what?" Alusair
whirled on Rowen like a lionar on an insolent underling. "You took it upon
yourself to endanger the life of the crown princess in defiance of the royal
magician?" "It was my decision." Tanalasta interposed herself between Alusair
and the ranger. "I was the one-" Alusair shoved Tanalasta aside, then
continued to berate Rowen. "Are you just stupid, or are you conniving with
Xanthon?" Rowen's face grew stormy, but he merely clenched his jaw. "You have
no right to talk to Rowen that way!" Tanalasta shoved Alusair away, then
stepped forward to stand toe to toe with her sister. "Vangerdahast was the one
who was out of line. He has no right to teleport me anywhere against my
wishes." Alusair studied her sister for a moment, then raised a brow and
looked to Rowen. "Don't tell me you two-" "Oh no!" Rowen said. "Nothing like
that." "Not that it's fitting for you to ask," Tanalasta said. "Anymore than
it is for Vangerdahast to pop me about the realm like some sort of pet blink
dog." Alusair studied Rowen a moment longer, then looked back to Tanalasta.
"So when did you desert poor Vangerdahast?" "Seven days ago," said Tanalasta.
"In the canyons below Boldovar's tomb." "The sycamore," Rowen
clarified. Alusair frowned. "You've been on foot. He should have teleported
back and caught up to you by now." "Unless ..." Tanalasta could not bring
herself to say it. "Unless what?" demanded Alusair. "Unless he followed our
horse," said Rowen. "There were two ghazneths hunting for us. We had to set up
a decoy, and Vangerdahast may have followed it instead." Alusair closed her
eyes. "Which way?" "South through the Mule Ears," said Rowen. "I believe that
would bring him out somewhere just west of Redspring." Alusair could only
shake her head in disbelief. "What were you two trying to do-elope?" She
glanced in Tanalasta's direction, then added, "That's not a suggestion." "I
wouldn't need one," said Tanalasta. 'That's what I'm afraid of," said Alusair.
She thought for a moment, then turned to Rowen. "The Mule Ears must be two
days out of our way." Rowen nodded grimly. "I understand." "What?" Tanalasta
demanded, sensing something had just happened she did not comprehend. "What do
you understand?" The ranger took her by the arms. "It's all right. I'll split
off tomorrow morning, then meet you at Goblin Mountain in a tenday or so." He
cast a weak smile in Alusair's direction, then added, "The way your sister
dawdles about, I'm sure I'll be waiting there when you arrive-if Vangerdahast
doesn't leave me strung up by my thumbs someplace." Tanalasta shook her head.
"No. I won't let you go." "That's not your choice," said Alusair. "It is. You
said yourself I'm still the crown princess." "But this is my company." Alusair
responded with surprising gentleness. "And I give the orders here." 16 From
the depths of a third floor arrow loop gleamed a pair of darting crimson eyes,
framed by a face of inky darkness and a halo of wildly tangled hair. The broad
band of a tarnished crown sat low on the figure's brow and seemed in danger of
slipping down over the eyes, and that was all Azoun could see of the creature
from his hiding place across the road. He waited until the thing's red eyes
shifted away, then pulled away from the curtain and closed the gap through
which he had been peering. "That is the ghazneth, most certainly." He shook
his head in wonderment, then turned to Merelda Marliir. "My thanks for your
sharp eye, Lady Marliir-and for allowing us the use of your home to spy upon
it." Merelda, adorned at midday in jewels and a chiffon ball gown, curtsied
deeply. "You are most welcome, Sire. After hearing Dauneth's description of
the fiend, I could scarcely believe my own eyes when I saw it landing atop the
White Tower." "And you are certain the queen was with it, Mother?" asked
Dauneth. Like Azoun and the rest of the company crowded into Lady Marliir's
spacious dressing chamber, the High Warden was dressed for battle. Merelda
scowled at her son. "I know the queen when I see her-even if she was not quite
as radiant as usual." She gave Azoun a concerned look, then said, "Of all the
places in Arabel, I can't imagine why it would be stupid enough to take her
there. I have heard that is the armory of the war wizards." "It would
certainly seem foolish for the ghazneth to show itself anywhere within the
citadel," said Azoun, dodging Merelda's half-asked question. Given her
kindness in volunteering her own dressing chamber as a staging area for an
entire company of Purple Dragons, he had no wish to insult the woman by lying
to her-but neither did he wish to confirm the armory's confidential location
to one of the biggest gossips in the realm. "But it would be a mistake to
think of our foe as stupid. He has, after all, been eluding us for nearly a
tenday now." Azoun caught Dauneth's eye, then glanced from Lady Marliir to the
door. Taking the king's hint, the High Warden turned to his mother. "I hate to
ask this of you, Mother, but I'm sure you will understand." Lady Marliir's
expression grew wary. "What is it?" "It's a small matter, really. We've been
discussing strategy all day and our throats are dry. I wonder if you would
fetch us something to drink?" Without waiting for an answer, the High Warden
took his mother by the arm and started toward the door. "I'd send for the
servants, of course, but we'll be making plans and can't have anyone of less
than the utmost trustworthiness near the room." "I should have thought of that
myself." Lady Marliir beamed at her son's flattery. "I'll have the entire wing
emptied." "Yes, we thank you for your prudence," called Azoun. He could barely
force himself to wait until the woman had left the room before turning to
Merula the Marvelous. "How many can you carry into the armory?" "At once?"
Merula glanced around the room, studying the heavy armor in which his
companions were adorned, then closed his eyes to do some quick addition. "No
more than four and myself, but I could summon-" "No!" said Azoun. "That would
take magic or time, and either could cost us the queen." The king turned to
the men at his back. Though he had not asked for volunteers, he saw in every
man's eye the fervent hope of being picked to enter the tower with Merula.
Azoun clasped Dauneth's shoulder, then waved forward two Purple Dragons he
knew to be excellent swordsmen-and even better marks with a crossbow. Azoun
turned to Merula. "How do these men strike you?" "As well as any others," said
the wizard. "But what of the fourth?" "You are looking at him, of
course." Merula's eyes grew as round as coins. "But Sire, there is every
risk-" "She is my queen," said Azoun. "More than that, she is my wife." "Yes,
but you pointed out yourself that the ghazneth is very cunning," he said.
"This may be a trap." "Merula, I am not asking your opinion." The wizard was
unfazed by Azoun's stern tone. "And even if it is not, there is the afterdaze.
For a moment, we will be almost helpless." "Merula!" Azoun barked. The wizard
fell silent, but looked less than contrite. Mungan Kane, one of Owden Foley's
Chauntean monks, stepped forward to speak. "Sire, if I may, there is much to
what Merula says." Merula narrowed his eyes in suspicion, and Azoun
glared. "Is everyone in this chamber determined to defy me?" "I wouldn't dream
of it." Mungan raised his palms to calm the king. "You have worked the Mystery
with Queen Filfaeril, and it is only fitting you go after her, but the
afterdaze will be a problem. If the ghazneth doesn't slay you or someone else
outright, he may flee." Azoun considered this, then nodded. "Right you are,
Mungan. My thanks." He pulled the weathercloak off Merula's shoulders, then
turned to his men. "I need a volunteer to stand atop the White Tower. It may
be that you'll face the ghazneth alone." Every hand in the chamber shot up.
Azoun nodded his thanks, then passed the cloak to a grizzled lionar he knew to
be as shrewd as he was quick with a sword. "You know how to use this?" The man
nodded. "Aye, I've served with a war wizard or two in my time." He flung the
cloak across his shoulders, then bowed deeply. "The ghazneth won't pass with
the queen. If it tries, I will be honored to die stopping it." Azoun nodded
grimly and clasped the lionar's shoulder, then turned to Merula. Mungan Kane
stepped to intercept him. "There is one other matter, Sire. I should be one of
those to accompany you." "To see that the Royal Temple is represented in the
battle?" mocked Merula. "To see that the creature's wickedness doesn't deprive
you of your wits-as it did Vangerdahast," countered Mungan. Merula's eyes
flashed. "I would not waste my magic-" "It is my magic," interrupted Azoun.
"Unless the war wizards no longer serve at the pleasure of the king." "That
could never be, Majesty." Merula bowed to Azoun, but continued to glare at the
priest. "I thank the king for pointing out the error of my assertion." "You
are quite welcome," said Azoun. "We must remember the service Harvestmaster
Owden and his assistants provided in restoring the royal magician and myself
to our wits-a service which they may need to provide again for the
queen." Merula's face only grew stormier. "Of course. If the king wishes to
exchange one of his dragoneers for a mere priest-" "The king does not." Azoun
turned to Mungan. "The battle will be won or lost in the first moments, and I
will have greater need of swords than sanity. I fear we must try to hold our
own wits long enough for you to take the long way around with the rest of the
company." Mungan's face fell, but he nodded his understanding. "If I cannot be
with you, then perhaps you will allow the All Mother to go in my place." He
reached into his robe and withdrew five wooden amulets carved in the shape of
a unicorn, handing one to Azoun and each of the men going with him. "These
will offer some protection until I can join you." Merula regarded the amulet
with a sneer, then thrust it back at the priest. "I have no use for
this." Mungan refused to accept it. "It is for the king's protection." "It is
to insinuate Chauntea into the royal graces." Merula dropped the amulet on the
floor, then turned to Azoun. "I trust my loyalty does not yet dictate my
faith?" The wizard's emphasis on the word yet was not lost on the king. He
looked at the men accompanying him. They were eyeing him expectantly, holding
their amulets in their palms and waiting to follow his lead. Azoun sighed
wearily. In his gratitude to Owden, perhaps he was beginning to favor the
Church of Chauntea more than was appropriate. "You men do as your own
consciences dictate." He returned the amulet to Mungan. "I think I can hold
onto my sanity until you arrive in person." "That may be so-but do you really
want to risk the queen's life on that chance?" Mungan tucked the amulet cord
through Azoun's sword belt, then stepped back. "It will be there if you need
it." The Purple Dragons nodded at the priest's wisdom and tucked their own
amulets into their sword belts, but Dauneth Marliir did not. The High Warden
tied his around his neck. * * * * * Filfaeril lay pressed to the naked
ghazneth's side, draped across his wing and garbed in some filthy piece of
gossamer pulled from a festhall trash bin. The room was beginning to seem less
an armory than a bedchamber, and she could not imagine what was taking Azoun
so long. Already, the pile of weathercloaks on which they lay felt like a
silk-covered featherbed, and lascivious carvings were beginning to appear in
the oaken cabinets along the walls. The queen suppressed a shudder. She had
learned through hard experience that Boldovar's illusions always reflected his
inner desires. Nevertheless, she took a deep breath, then cooed softly into
his pointed ear and ran her fingers through the lice-infested bristles on his
chest. It had taken days of subtle manipulation to lure her captor into the
one place she knew the war wizards could take him by surprise, and she would
do anything to keep the ghazneth distracted until Azoun arrived. Boldovar
opened his lips and gargled out a mouthful of rings, all gray and dull now
that he had absorbed their magic. Filfaeril forced a light giggle-it was not
difficult to sound slightly demented-then took a commander's ring from the
huge pile of magic beside her and held it over the ghazneth's
mouth. "Another?" Boldovar's crimson eyes shifted toward the arrow loop
overlooking Marliir House, and Filfaeril knew he was still too skittish for
her plan to succeed. "You don't want it?" She slipped the ring down between
her breasts, planting it just deep enough so that the tourmaline winked up
from her cleavage like a pale blue eye. "Then I'll keep it for myself." The
ghazneth's gaze darted back to her chest and fixed on the magic ring. He
stared at it for a long time, his face an expressionless mask, and Filfaeril
wondered if she had been too obvious. Over the past few days, she had grown
steadily more congenial through a conscious effort of will, but never before
had she tried to beguile him. Perhaps she had been too bold. Whatever else he
was, Boldovar was also cunning and intelligent. He had proven that many times
over the past tenday, moving her from one hiding place to another daily and
ambushing the war wizards almost twice that often. At first, Filfaeril had not
been able to figure out why her captor remained in Arabel. If all he wanted
was a real queen to sit on his delusionary throne, he could have established a
far more peaceful palace in any number of dark wilderness lairs. Then she
began to notice a peculiar pattern. If the ghazneth went even half a day
without being attacked, the tangibility of his illusions began to fade. After
giving the matter some thought, the queen had realized that her captor was
feeding off the magic used to attack him. She started telling him where to
find items of increasingly powerful magic- both to ensure her own survival and
to prepare him for the day when she could lure him into the White Tower. Now
that day had come, and where was her rescue party? A stream of lunatic
thoughts, an unavoidable consequence of consorting with Boldovar, coursed
through Filfaeril's mind. Perhaps her husband had finally given up on her,
persuaded by her inability to escape that she preferred life with Boldovar.
After all, the ghazneth was far more powerful than Azoun, and, having survived
more than a thousand years himself, he could certainly offer her things beyond
the grasp of even the wealthiest human king-but no, that could not be, Azoun
loved her. Or did he? He was a king and she a queen. Theirs had been as much a
political marriage as a romantic one, and Filfaeril was neither deaf nor
blind. She had heard rumors of noble children who bore an uncanny resemblance
to her husband, and she had seen for herself that some of them were
well-founded. Filfaeril shook her head, trying to drive Boldovar's delusions
from her mind. Whatever else he had done, Azoun would never abandon her-not in
a hundred life times. "Is something wrong, my dear?" The ghazneth smiled,
baring his yellow fangs. "Are you a little nervous about our consummation
night?" Boldovar's red tongue shot down between Filfaeril's breasts and
flicked the ring back into his gruesome mouth. * * * * * Azoun and his
companions emerged from the timeless darkness to find themselves not in the
White Tower's magic armory, but in a murky boudoir lined by debauched carvings
of unspeakable violations against woman and nature. The king's first thought
was that Merula the Marvelous had teleported them into the secret playroom of
some deranged noble-one of the Illances or Bleths, most likely. Then he saw
the ghazneth, lying on a silk-sheeted bed at the far end of the room, its face
all but buried in the chest of a gossamer-clad figure cradled in the palm of
its wing, and he grew even more confused. That could not be Filfaeril. The
woman did not seem to be struggling, and the queen would never allow such a
thing-not to any man but her husband! Then someone yelled, "Move, Sire!" Azoun
felt a pair of hands shove his shoulder. He recalled their plan and hit the
floor rolling, confident that everything would make sense again when he
recovered from the afterdaze. He came up holding his royal shield in one hand
and his new cold-forged sword in the other-Vangerdahast had warned him not to
use an enchanted sword against the ghazneth-and turned back toward the
silk-covered bed. The phantom seemed to be struggling with its companion. She
was sitting on its wing, clinging to its neck and shrieking at it to protect
her from the assassins. Burdened as it was by the hysterical woman, the
creature was hardly able to rise, much less launch itself at the king or his
men. A series of golden bolts shot across the room toward the ghazneth's
abdomen, but it brought its free wing around as fast as always and prevented
them from striking. The woman turned toward Merula and thrust out her hand,
crying, "No ... no magic!" And that was when Azoun recognized her, all but
naked beneath a shift of sheer gossamer filthy enough to shame any trollop in
Arabel. He was so stunned that he nearly let the sword drop from his hand.
That woman was, indeed, his wife. Dauneth and the Purple Dragons started
across the room at a charge, and the ghazneth finally peeled the queen off its
neck and dropped her to the floor. Azoun rushed forward, confused and angry
and hardly able to believe that Filfaeril had betrayed him for... what, some
sort of demon? Dauneth and the dragoneers slammed into the ghazneth at a full
charge, their iron swords arcing in from all angles. The first blade bit deep
into the creature's arm, beating down its guard and clearing the way for the
High Warden to open a deep slit up the thing's bulging abdomen. The third
attack came in high, sweeping in toward its neck with enough power to separate
even an ogre's head from its shoulders. Filfaeril was cowering at the
ghazneth's side, staring up at the battle in horror. Azoun angled toward her,
blood boiling and ears pounding with the fury of a jealous
rage. "Harlot!" Filfaeril's eyes widened, and as she began to scramble away
backward, the ghazneth's black talons swept past her head to catch the second
dragoneer's arm. The sword slipped from the man's grasp and bounced off an
oaken cabinet without coming anywhere near the phantom's neck, then the
ghazneth tore the limb off at the elbow and slammed it into the first
dragoneer's helmet. Both men dropped instantly, one howling in pain and the
other as silent as death. Azoun stepped past Dauneth, trying to slip around
the melee to get at Filfaeril, and found a huge black wing coming down to
block his way. He ducked beneath it, then heard the ghazneth roar as the High
Warden's blade bit deep into its abdomen. As the king stepped behind the
creature, he brought his sword around to slash at the creature's back. Though
the blow would have cleaved a man's spine, it cut no deeper than a finger's
width into the ghazneth's tough hide. A soft patter sounded ahead. Azoun
looked down to see Filfaeril cowering on the floor, tears welling in her eyes
and her filthy harlot's shift drawn up around her waist. "Azoun?" she
gasped. "Traitorous whore!" The king wrenched his sword free of the ghazneth's
back and started toward her-then saw a wall of darkness sweeping toward him.
There was no time to duck or raise his sword before the wing caught him in the
face and launched him across the room. He slammed into an open oaken cabinet
and dropped to the ground, weathercloaks and battle bracers tumbling down all
around him. Dauneth disappeared around the other side of the ghazneth, trying
to reach Filfaeril, only to go tumbling past her when the creature caught him
in the helm with a lightning back fist. The High Warden came to a rest against
a debased wall tapestry, groaning and shaking his head, but alive. Now that
there was no one in contact with the ghazneth, Merula cut loose with a
deafening thunderbolt. The creatore's wing swung around to shield itself The
spell struck with a blinding spray of light and dissipated across the leathery
appendage in a brilliant fan of silvery forks, but the blast still carried
enough force to knock the ghazneth off its feet. Filfaeril sprang to her feet
and rushed the wizard with her hands out, crying, "No-you can't use
magic!" "Watch her, Merula!" Azoun cried. "She's betrayed us." This was enough
to stop Filfaeril in her tracks. She turned to face Azoun-then suddenly
vanished inside a cocoon of sticky white strands. "That'll hold the trollop!"
the wizard declared. The ghazneth leaped up and flung itself across the room,
placing itself between Filfaeril and the others. Merula instantly clapped his
hands together and struck two long fans of magic fire, which he directed at
their foe. The phantom raised a wing and turned sideways. When the flames
touched the wing's surface, they simply sputtered and died, and the leathery
appendage started to glow with a luminous crimson light. The ghazneth began to
inch toward Merula, taking care to keep both itself and the queen
well-shielded. Azoun staggered to his feet and circled around to flank it,
only to have Dauneth stagger over and grasp his arm. "You look none too
steady, Warden. Merula and I will keep this devil busy. You see to the
harlot." Azoun gestured at his wife's sticky white form. "Harlot? Majesty,
have you lost your ..." Dauneth's gaze dropped to Azoun's waist, then the
warden reached down and jerked the unicorn amulet from his belt. "Put this
on!" Azoun shook his head. "This is no time-" "Do as I say!" Without awaiting
permission, Dauneth looped the amulet's leather string over the king's helm
and jerked it down over his neck. "Now say 'Chauntea save us!'" Azoun scowled.
"Who do you think-" "Say it!" Dauneth's eyes widened at his own tone, then
Merula called out from across the room. "Majesty? Some help, perhaps?" Azoun
looked toward the wizard's voice and saw nothing but the interior of the
ghazneth's wing. He turned to help, but Dauneth grabbed the collar of his
breastplate. "Please, Sire." "Very well!" Azoun knocked Dauneth's hand away,
then sprang after the ghazneth, crying, "Chauntea save us!" And instantly,
even as he raised his sword to strike, the room changed from a bedchamber to
an armory, and the debauched carvings vanished from the faces of the oaken
cabinets, and he saw the beauty of Filfaeril's plan, and how she had used the
only weapon she had to buy her rescue party a few precious moments to reorient
themselves after teleporting into the room-and how it must have hurt to have
her own husband call her a harlot and traitor. "Dauneth, the queen!" Azoun
stopped just inside the reach of ghazneth's wingtip and ducked a wild attempt
to bat him away, then darted forward to meet the slashing claws at the ends of
its arms. "Save the queen!" With the king beyond its first line of defenses,
the ghazneth was forced to turn its attention away from Merula to attack.
Azoun parried slashes from first its wounded arm, then its good arm and
brought his iron blade down on its collarbone. The ghazneth roared and hurled
itself forward, determined to bowl him over and overwhelm his defenses. No
longer being a fool, the king hurled himself at the creature's feet and
rolled, his armor filling his ears with a clamorous din. He crashed into a
wall cabinet and brought the contents down on top of himself Convinced his foe
would be on him before he could rise, he flung the debris away from his chest
and raised his sword in a blind block. The expected blow never came. Instead,
a strange gurgle erupted from the creature's mouth, and the king scrambled to
his knees to find the thing only a pace away. Merula was draped over its
shoulder, struggling to draw his iron dagger across the ghazneth's leathery
throat. Azoun brought his sword around and lunged forward and drove the blade
a mere finger's length into the monster's bloated abdomen. The ghazneth
stumbled back, roaring and trying to shake Merula from its back. Azoun
glimpsed Dauneth rushing toward the queen with a war wizard's weathercloak
wrapped around his shoulders. According to their plan, it should have been the
High Warden or a dragoneer attempting to slit the creature's throat and Merula
preparing to escape with the queen, but the king was happy enough to see
Dauneth grab hold of Filfaeril's cocoon and reach into the cloak to find its
escape pocket. The metallic clamor of armor began to knell up from somewhere
lower in the tower, drawing the ghazneth's attention toward the armory's stout
oaken door. It was barred from the inside, but the creature knew as well as
Azoun that the door would last only as long as it took a magic-user to utter
his spell. Spewing a filthy curse, the phantom brought a hand up and slammed
the heel of its palm into Merula's brow. There was a sharp snap, then the
wizard's eyes rolled back, and he dropped out of sight. The ghazneth turned
toward Dauneth. Azoun gathered himself to intercept-then the High Warden
finally found the right pocket and vanished with Filfaeril. Azoun turned
toward the barred door, but the ghazneth sprang across the chamber and beat
him to it. "Queen stealer!" it hissed. "Usurper!" Azoun leveled his sword and
circled around so that he would not be directly in front of the door when
Mungan arrived. Though a steady flow of dark, rancid smelling blood was oozing
out of the ghazneth in half a dozen places, the dark thing looked little the
worse for the wear. "Who are you?" Azoun asked. "What are you?" "Boldovar,
King of Cormyr." The answer was as mad as the ghazneth itself, but there was
no time to argue. The clamor reached the landing outside the door and stopped.
Azoun threw himself to the floor. "Now, Mungan!" Mungan's voice rang out from
the stairwell, and an instant later a terrific lightning bolt blasted the door
into splinters. The ghazneth spun to face the rescue party and bellowed, and
the room went dark. The tumult of anguished voices began to fill the air.
Azoun leaped to his feet and pressed his back to the wall, his sword weaving a
blind defensive pattern before him. He was not fool enough to believe he could
block one of the ghazneth's blows with a mere sword, but perhaps it would buy
him enough time to dodge or roll away. The cacophony continued to grow louder
for the next few moments-it seemed like forever, though it could have been no
more than seconds. The thud of falling bodies reverberated across the floor
with alarming regularity, and twice Azoun danced away when his sword brushed
against some unseen menace. He kept expecting to feel the ghazneth's talons
ripping through his breastplate, but the blow never came. The battle din
merely subsided, then men began to crawl across the floor and call each
other's names, and finally someone stumbled across a commander's ring and
spoke the proper word, filling the chamber with light. The room lay littered
with wounded and dead-most felled by their own comrades, judging by the sword
gashes in their flesh and the narrow dents in their armor. Only Mungan and two
men behind him, all lying in the doorway with their throats ripped open,
appeared to have been slain by the ghazneth. There was no sign of the phantom
itself, but Azoun felt a cool breeze in the room and knew that someone had
opened the door to the roof. 17 Tanalasta lay in Rowen's arms, aching and
feverish, captivated by the sunlight filtering down through the twisted
buckeye boughs above. Alusair was readying the surviving horses for departure,
and one of the priests was overseeing Emperel's burial. Tanalasta was so
foggy-headed her thoughts kept running in circles. She held Emperel's message
satchel clutched to her breast and recalled dimly that she had to get it to
Alaundo. It was a struggle to remember why-and she was too weak to struggle. A
steel gauntlet appeared above Tanalasta, floating in the air above her eyes.
Taking it for an apparition-the hand of Iyachtu Xvim coming to pull her into
his Bastion of Hate-she gasped and clutched at Rowen's arm. "Stay with me."
She pushed the message satchel into his hands. "Then take this to Alaundo.
Tell him about the glyphs ... and about Xanthon." "You are not that ill,
Princess." Rowen refused to accept the satchel. The gauntlet drew closer,
warming Tanalasta's face and obstructing her view. She was too frightened to
look away. "Don't argue." Tanalasta tipped her chin back. "Kiss me. I want to
die." "You are hardly dying, Princess." Rowen sounded almost insulted. "And
certainly not in my arms. Now hold still, and Seaburt will have you feeling
better in a minute." "Seaburt?" Tanalasta saw the thick wrist protruding from
the collar of the glove, and it slowly came to her that the gauntlet was not
the hand of Iyachtu Xvim. It was the symbol of Torm the True, Alusair's
favored god and the one revered by both priests in the company. Seaburt laid
the glove upon Tanalasta's forehead and uttered a quick prayer to his god,
beseeching Torm to aid "this dutiful daughter of Cormyr." Recalling her
arguments with Vangerdahast and the king, Tanalasta worried that the Loyal
Fury might not find her deserving of his magic and continued to press the
satchel on Rowen. Her skin started to prickle with the familiar sensation of
magic, then the glove grew cold and dry against her brow. Her head began to
throb more fiercely than ever, and she let slip an involuntary groan. "Have
strength, Princess," said Seaburt. With a month-old beard and black circles
under his sunken eyes, the priest looked no better than Tanalasta felt. "Torm
is drawing the fever out, but there will be some pain as it passes from your
body." Some pain? Tanalasta would have screamed the question, had she the
strength. It felt as though someone had cleaved her head with an axe. She
closed her eyes, listened to her pulse drumming in her ears, and begged
Chauntea for the strength to endure Torm's cure. The throbbing only grew
worse, and she thought her brain must be boiling inside her skull. She did her
best to hold still, and finally the gauntlet grew warm and moist against her
skin. The glove blossomed into white-hot light, turning the interior of her
eyelids red and bright, and then a wave of cool relief spread down her entire
body. Tanalasta opened her eyes and found herself gazing up through the
gauntlet's veil of pearly brilliance. Seaburt's jaws were clenched tight, his
vacant stare fixed someplace far beyond the keep's dilapidated walls. Beads of
sweat rolled down his face, dripping out of his beard to splash against the
searing gauntlet and hiss into nothingness. Tanalasta grew stronger. The fog
vanished from her mind, and she no longer felt quite so queasy. She struggled
to sit up, but Seaburt pressed her down and held her there until the glow
faded completely from his gauntlet. When the priest finally lifted the glove
and took his hand from inside, his skin was red and puffy. "You'll still be
weak," he said. "Drink all you can, and you'll feel better." "I feel better
already. Thank you." Tanalasta sat up, then nearly blacked out when she tried
to gather her legs beneath her. "Though I see what you mean about still being
weak." A whistle sounded from across the bailey, where her sister stood waving
at them from the gate. With Alusair stood all that remained of her company-the
second priest, a dozen haggard knights, and fifteen sickly horses. Though the
horses still had halters and reins, the poor beasts had been stripped of their
saddles to lighten their burden. "Time to go." Rowen slipped an arm under
Tanalasta's arm and pulled her to her feet. "I'm sorry, but it looks like
you'll be walking. The horses are too weak to carry even you." As they
approached Alusair and the others, Tanalasta eyed the languishing beasts with
a sympathy born of her own haggard condition. "Why are we making these poor
beasts come along at all?" she asked Alusair. "They'd have a better chance if
we just left them to rest-and if not, at least they'd die in peace." "And how
would that help our cause?" asked Alusair "If they die on the trail, we've
lost nothing. If they recover, they'll save us a good five or six days of
walking." Alusair turned to lead the way out of the gate, but Tanalasta was
too alarmed to follow. Saving five or six days would mean reaching Goblin
Mountain well ahead of Rowen, and she had no illusions about what would follow
if that happened. Alusair would have a war wizard teleport Tanalasta back to
Arabel at once, and her parents, regarding any courtship with a Cormaeril more
of a political disaster than Dauneth's rejection, would see to it that Rowen
never came within fifty miles of her. Rowen offered a supporting hand. "What's
wrong? If you are too weak to walk, I'll carry you." "No." Tanalasta held him
back until the others were a few paces ahead. "Rowen, you can't leave me
tomorrow." "But I must." He made no effort to keep their conversation quiet.
"Vangerdahast has no idea-" "Vangerdahast will figure it out soon enough,"
Tanalasta whispered. "Even if he doesn't, Old Snoop is certainly capable of
taking care of himself." Rowen cast a nervous glance at Seaburt's back.
"Perhaps we should talk about this later. You're still weak." "No!" Tanalasta
took his hands. "Rowen, you must know I have feelings for you-and that I hope
you have feelings for me." "Of course." He gave her a sly smile. "I didn't
think you were the kind of princess who kisses just any man who happens to be
there when you decide to bait a ghazneth." Tanalasta did not return his smile.
"I'm not, and you are avoiding my question." Rowen looked away. "You are above
my station-but yes, I do see you more as a woman than a princess." Tanalasta
furrowed her brow. "Am I to take that as a yes?" When Rowen nodded, she
continued, "Then we can't let Alusair separate us. You know what she's trying
to do." "I doubt we are all she's concerned about." "Of course not," said
Tanalasta. "She's also concerned that when the king hears of our affections,
the weight of the crown may land on her head instead of mine." Rowen's
expression grew enigmatic. "And that fear is not well founded?" Though
Tanalasta sensed the pain in his question, she did not hesitate to answer
honestly. He deserved that much. "Your family's disgrace would cause a
difficulty for the throne, yes. The loyal houses would see any favor shown you
as an affront to their allegiance, and the neutral houses might take it to
mean the throne has a short memory." "Then the king would have no choice in
the matter," Rowen surmised. "He would be forced to name Alusair his
heir." Tanalasta shrugged. "It is not for us to predict the king. He can be a
surprising man, and he knows that it's better to retreat than to lose. Our
chess games have taught him that." As Rowen considered this, Seaburt glanced
back from the end of the line. "If the princess is too weak to walk..." "The
princess is strong enough to walk," Tanalasta said. "Pay us no mind. We'll ask
if we need help." "Of course." Seaburt cocked his brow and turned away. "I
will be listening for your call." Experiencing a sudden dislike for the
priest, Tanalasta glared at his back. When he was out of earshot, she took
Rowen's arm and started after the rest of the company. "You know what will
happen when we reach Goblin Mountain," she said, speaking softly. "Alusair
will do a sending, and five minutes later a dozen war wizards will arrive to
whisk me back to Arabel." Rowen gave her a sidelong look. "And I should be
sorry to see you safely back in the city?" "Yes, if it means we'll never see
each other again." "Aren't you exaggerating? I should be capable of finding my
way to Arabel-and Suzail too, for that matter." "When? Between scouting
patrols into the Anauroch and spying missions in the Dun Plain? My father and
Vangerdahast will keep you so busy you won't see a Cormyrean city until I am
wed and fat with some other man's child." Though Rowen remained unmoved, at
least he showed the courtesy of wincing. "And if I disobeyed Alusair I'd spend
the next ten years in Castle Crag's dungeon instead-with no hope at all of
redeeming my family name." The company began to fan out across the flat
scrub-land, each man leading a horse more or less westward, laying a network
of false trails before they turned south. Tanalasta remained silent for a
time, knowing Rowen was right. She had no authority to countermand Alusair's
order, and Vangerdahast was certainly ruthless enough to have the scout locked
away under the pretext of disobedience. "You're right, of course. I can't ask
you to defy Alusair." Tanalasta kept her eyes on the ground as she spoke,
watching the brush for snakes and other hazards. "So I will come with
you." "What?" Rowen nearly shouted the question, drawing a curious-and rather
condemning-glance from Seaburt. The ranger lowered his voice, then continued,
"I'd like nothing better, but Alusair would never permit it." "Alusair can
command you to leave, but she cannot command me to stay," said Tanalasta. "She
is not my master." "Please, Tanalasta-I can't. Doing as you ask would make me
the same as Gaspar and Xanthon." "You could never be the same as those
two." "I would be, if I put my own desire above my oath as a Purple Dragon."
Rowen guided Tanalasta away from a red catclaw bush, pulling her safely beyond
the striking range of a half-hidden pixie-viper. "We all have our duties. I am
a scout, and my duty is to move swiftly and find Vangerdahast. You are the
learned one, and your duty is to return to Arabel and inform the king of what
you have discovered." "And I will," said Tanalasta. "In your company." Rowen
shook his head. "You will be safer with Alusair." "Really?" Tanalasta cast a
doubtful glance at her sister's sickly men. "I should think it would be easier
for the ghazneths to find a large company of sick men than two people moving
swiftly and stealthily?' "Perhaps." Rowen paused to think, then said, "That
would be so if you were healthy, but with the fever, you are too weak." "The
fever will improve. Seaburt said..." Tanalasta let the sentence trail off as
the significance of Rowen's pause struck her. He had been there when Seaburt
cured her, and he certainly should have heard what the priest had told her.
She stumbled along two more steps, then stopped and whirled on the scout. "You
don't want me to go with you." Rowen's expression fell, and Tanalasta saw she
had guessed correctly. She pulled her arm free and stumbled back. Rowen
stepped after her. "Please, Tanalasta, it's not what you think. I have every
confidence in your ability-" Tanalasta stopped him with a raised hand, then
lifted her chin and began to back away. "That is quite enough, Rowen. And you
may address me as Princess Tanalasta, if that will make you feel more
comfortable." * * * * * A muffled patter drummed down out of the pines,
reverberating down through the valley, bouncing from one slope to the other
until Vangerdahast could not tell whether the sound came from ahead or behind.
He reined Cadimus to a stop and raised his arm, and the Royal Excursionary
Company clattered to a halt behind him. The air filled instantly with the
swish and clank of wizards and dragoneers readying for battle. Over the past
day and a half, the company had lost dozens of men and horses to orc ambushes
and lightning-swift ghazneth strikes, and now even the dee-dee-dee of a
chickadee could send them diving for cover. Vangerdahast twisted around. "Will
you be quiet back there?" He glared until the company fell silent, then looked
forward again. The valley was one of those serpentine canyons with a
meandering ribbon of marshy floor and steep walls timbered in pines. He could
see no more than fifty paces ahead, and to the sides not even that far. As the
patter grew louder, the trees scattered it in every direction, and soon the
drumming seemed to be coming from all around. Sometimes it sounded like hooves
pounding grassy ground and sometimes like wings beating air. Cadimus nickered
and raised his nose to test the air, then a ginger mare galloped around the
bend, chest lathered and eyes bulging, reins hanging loose, stirrups flapping
empty. She came straight down the valley at a full run, barely seeming to
notice Cadimus and Vangerdahast, or the entire Royal Excursionary Company
behind them. Close on the mare's tail came a streaking ghazneth, its wings a
black crescent as it banked around the corner, its arms stretching for the
flanks of the ginger mare. Vangerdahast leveled a finger at the phantom and
uttered a single word, sending a dozen bolts of golden magic to blast the dark
thing from the sky. The impact hurled the ghazneth into the pines, snapping
branches and ripping boughs. In the next instant, the valley erupted into a
cacophony of thundering hooves and screaming voices as dragoneers and war
wizards urged their mounts to the charge. If the Royal Excursionary Company
had learned anything over the past two days, it was never to hesitate around a
ghazneth. Vangerdahast wheeled Cadimus around just as quickly and started
after the riderless mount. Tanalasta's horse had been a ginger mare. * * * *
* The horse did not snort, nor whinny, nor even groan. It merely dropped to
its knees and closed its eyes, then toppled over onto a thicket of smoke
brush. Tanalasta watched as Alusair, dazed with exhaustion and a relapse of
fever, idly yanked the beast's reins and tried to continue walking. When the
horse did not move, Alusair cursed its laziness and, without turning around,
hauled harder on the reins. Tanalasta said nothing, content to see someone
else make a fool of herself for a change. The princess could not believe how
she had misread Rowen's emotions. Their kiss had certainly felt sincere
enough, but she had read that men experienced such things more with their
bodies than their hearts. Was that the root of her mistake? Perhaps she had
mistaken simple lust for something more... permanent. The affection she sensed
had been no more than a man's normal carnal attraction, kept in check by
Rowen's honorable nature. The princess almost wished he had not been so
virtuous. Had he used her, at least she would have been justified in her
anger. As it was, all she could do was feel embarrassed and try to avoid him
until he went off to find Vangerdahast. Alusair finally stopped tugging on the
reins and stumbled around to scowl at the motionless horse-the second that had
died in only ten hours of walking. She muttered an inaudible curse, then
looked to Tanalasta. "You could have said something." Tanalasta spread her
hands helplessly. "I thought it might get up." Alusair eyed her sourly, then
called the rest of the company with a short whistle. As the troops gathered
around, she pointed to the dead horse. "Let's take off our helmets." The weary
men groaned and reluctantly started removing the leather padding from inside
their helmets. After the first horse died, they had spent nearly an hour
burying it so the body would not attract vultures and betray their route, and
no one was looking forward to repeating the experience-especially not with
night fast approaching and another thirteen horses ready to follow the first
two at any moment. As Rowen kneeled to help the others, Tanalasta at first
tried to avoid his eye-then realized she could not be so coy. With Alusair's
mind addled by fever and the rest of the company near collapse, a certain
amount of responsibility for their safety fell to her. Tanalasta caught Rowen
by the arm. "Not you." She pointed toward a hazy line of crooked shadow just
below the western horizon. "That looks like a gulch to me. See if there's a
stream in it-and a safe campsite." "Wait a minute." Alusair was so weak she
barely had the strength to signal Rowen to stay put. "Tanalasta, you don't
give orders to my company." "I do when you are in no condition to see to its
welfare." Tanalasta met her sister's gaze, which was more drained than angry,
and waved at the surviving horses. "If we don't water these creatures soon,
we'll have to bury them all by morning-and then we can start on your men." She
glanced meaningfully toward one warrior still struggling with his helmet's
chin strap. "Princess Tanalasta is right." Rowen's comment drew a glassy-eyed
scowl from Alusair, but he was not intimidated. "Had your wits been clear, you
would have had me looking for water two hours ago-and not only for the
horses." Alusair frowned, though her expression looked more pained than angry.
"That may be, but I am still commander of this company." "Then you would do
well to remember that and let Seaburt take care of your fever," said
Tanalasta. Because Seaburt and his fellow priest could cast only enough curing
spells each day to restore a third of the company to health, any one person
could be healed only once every three days. Unfortunately-as Alusair had
discovered while trapped in the goblin keep-the illness tended to recur on the
second day, and Alusair had steadfastly refused to deprive anyone else by
having a spell cast on her out of turn. "I may not know the military," said
Tanalasta, still addressing Alusair, "but I do know leadership. As the great
strategist Aosimn Truesilver wrote, 'If a man must send troops into battle,
then he owes it to them to be sober at the time.'" Alusair scowled and started
to argue, but Rowen cut her off. "Princess, you must let Seaburt see to your
fever. Everyone will stand a better chance of returning alive if you
do." Alusair looked from the ranger to the others. When they nodded their
consensus, she sighed. "Very well. Rowen, go and see about that water.
Everyone else-why isn't that horse buried?" The company began to scrape at the
hard ground with their helmets. Seaburt took Alusair aside and began to
prepare her for the spell-the last he would be able to cast until morning.
Rowen started toward the western horizon, but stopped a dozen steps away and
raised a hand to shield his eyes from the glare of the setting sun. "Princess
Tanalasta, I don't see that gulch you were talking about. Would you be kind
enough to show it to me?" Frowning, Tanalasta went to his side and pointed at
the hazy line. "It's there. You can see the shadow." "Of course. I see it
now." Tanalasta sensed Rowen watching her and turned to find him looking not
toward the gulch, but into her eyes. "Forgive the ruse," he said. "I wanted to
apologize." "Apologize?" Tanalasta kept her voice cold. "You have nothing to
apologize for." "I fear I have given you reason to think poorly of
me." "Nonsense. You've been most valorous. The king shall hear of your
service." Tanalasta paused, then decided a demonstration of her magnanimity
was in order. "In truth, I shouldn't be surprised if you were granted that
holding you desire." Rowen's face fell. "Do you think that's why I'm here?
Because I am chasing after a piece of land?" Tanalasta recoiled from the
bitterness in his voice, then lowered her chin to a less regal height. "I know
better than that. I only wanted you to know I wouldn't hold my own foolishness
against you." "Your foolishness, Princess?" "Mine." Tanalasta looked away. "I
have been throwing myself at you like a festhall trollop, and you have been
honorable enough not to accept my affections under false pretenses." She gave
Rowen a sideways glance, then added, "Though it would have been kinder to tell
me at the start I was behaving like a fool." "How could I do that? It would
have been a lie." Rowen dared to grasp her hand-and when she pulled it away,
dared to take it again. "If my feelings are different from yours, it is only
because they are stronger. I have been stricken from the moment I saw
you." Tanalasta was too stunned to pull her hand away. Once again, he was
telling her what she longed to hear, but how could she believe him when his
actions spoke otherwise? She shook her head. "That can't be true, or you would
never leave me with Alusair-not when Vangerdahast has the resources of an
entire kingdom to make certain we never see each other again." Rowen closed
his eyes for a moment, then looked toward the horizon. "Perhaps that would be
for the best." "What?" Tanalasta grabbed Rowen's arm. "I will not be taken for
an idiot. If you do not wish to court me, then have the courage to say so
plainly. I've heard doubletalk all my life, and you really aren't very good at
it." Rowen's eyes flashed at the slight. "I am speaking as plainly as I know
how, Princess Tanalasta. My feelings are as sincere as they are powerful, but
I am the son of a disgraced house. Any courtship of mine would only weaken the
crown." Tanalasta experienced a sudden lifting of the heart as her irritation
gave way to comprehension. She stood motionless for many moments, then finally
began to see how deeply her harsh words had to have cut the ranger. She
stepped closer and said, "Rowen, I'm sorry for the things I said to you. Now
that you've explained your reservations, I see you have been honest-brutally
honest, at least with yourself." "I'm sorry, Princess. It just wasn't meant to
be." Tanalasta cocked her brow. "Really? Then you are prepared to assert your
judgment over that of the Goddess?" "Of course not, but if you are speaking of
your vision, how are we to know I am the one?" "I know," Tanalasta replied.
"And so do you." Rowen looked torn and said nothing. "Certainly, there will be
those who resent my choice," Tanalasta said, sensing an opportunity to win him
over, "but that would be true no matter who I chose. If I picked a
Silversword, the Emmarasks would be angry. If I picked an Emmarask, the
Truesilvers would disapprove. If I picked a Truesilver, the Hawklins would
gossip, and anyone I choose will be a slight to the Marliirs. In the end, I
can only follow my heart and take the man I desire, one I know to be honest,
loyal, and trustworthy-and that man, Rowen, is you." "Even if it costs you the
crown?" he asked. "And though it does not, even if it costs you the loyalty of
the great nobles?" Tanalasta shrugged. "You are only one of the choices I have
made that may cost me the throne-but they are my choices to make, and I am
happy to live with the consequences." She gave him a steady gaze. "If the
crown is to rest on my head, having the strength of your character at my side
will far outweigh the loss of a noble family's shifting loyalties." Rowen
considered this for a moment, then asked, "But how many of those families can
one man be worth?" He shook his head. "Surely, not even half of them. It is
well and good for a royal to make her own choices, but she must not be blind
to the trouble that follows. People will think of me as no better than Aunadar
Bleth, taking advantage of your good nature to restore my family's
standing-and the crown will be the weaker for it." "Is your opinion of me that
low?" Tanalasta demanded. "Do you assume people think me capable of attracting
only frauds and sycophants?" Rowen's face went white. "That's not what I mean
to-" "What else could you mean? Perhaps it's just as well we haven't pursued
this further." Tanalasta pointed toward the horizon. "There is the gulch,
Rowen. Go and see if it has any water for us." * * * * * The mare neighed
three sharp times and scraped at the ground, nearly crushing Vangerdahast's
foot when one of her hooves caught him across the instep. He cursed and jerked
on the reins, forcing her head down below the height of his chest. Owden Foley
raised a restraining hand. "Gently, my friend. She has been through a
lot." "And she will go through a lot more, if she doesn't start making sense,"
Vangerdahast growled. "Tell her that." Owden scowled his disapproval. "I don't
think-" "Tell her," Vangerdahast ordered. "Perhaps it will clear her
thoughts." Owden sighed, but turned back to the horse and began to neigh and
nicker. The horse's ears flattened, and she fixed a single round eye on
Vangerdahast's face. He narrowed his own eyes and raised his lip in a snarl.
The mare looked away and began a quick succession of nickers, punctuated every
now and then by a sharp whinny or a neighed question from Owden. When the
conversation finally ended, Owden nodded and patted the beast's neck
reassuringly. "Well?" Vangerdahast demanded. "I coaxed a little more out of
her, but horses don't remember the same way we do." Owden took the reins from
Vangerdahast's hands. "All she can tell us is that the ghazneths have been
hunting her since 'the dawn before the dawn.'" "And?" Vangerdahast glared at
the priest. Owden slipped between him and the mare. "And that the princess is
gone with 'her stallion.'" "Her stallion?" Vangerdahast fumed. "What, exactly,
does she mean by that?" * * * * * The 'gulch' turned out to be a winding
riverbed filled with more willows than water, but there was a tiny ribbon of
creek meandering along beneath the bluffs on the far side, and Tanalasta could
hear the horses sloshing through its silty currents, doing their best to slurp
the rivulet dry. She was kneeling atop a slender tongue of high ground,
churning a pile of rotting leaves into a small plot of dirt she was preparing
for a faith planting. Though dead-tired from the day's walk, the work kept her
mind off Rowen, and it was well worth the effort to slow her whirling
thoughts. The princess was more disappointed in him than angry. She knew
better than anyone what people thought of her. Many nobles-perhaps most-would
accuse Rowen of taking advantage of her gullible nature. But they would think
the same no matter who she chose. The only way to change their minds was to be
patient and prove them wrong through good conduct, her own and that of her
chosen. She was hurt not because Rowen had pointed out how people would
perceive their relationship, but because he lacked faith in her to change
their minds. If he did not trust her to succeed, how could she trust
herself? Tanalasta pulled a fist-sized stone from the ground and turned to set
it aside at the edge of her plot, where she found a pair of soft-leathered
ranger boots standing beside her. Biting back a cry of surprise, she placed
the stone with the others, then spoke without looking up. "Come to tell me I
mustn't think poorly of you?" Tanalasta crumpled a handful of decaying leaves
between her hands, sprinkling them over the surface of her plot. "Or have you
decided to chase that holding after all?" "I suppose I deserve that." Rowen
kneeled beside her and began to work a handful of leaves into humus. "The
truth is, I've come to apologize. I spoke like a narrow-minded popinjay." "I
hope you don't expect me to disagree." "No. When I said those things, I was
being a coward. I was thinking only of myself-of how your favor would affect
my reputation." "You said you were thinking of the crown," Tanalasta reminded
him. Rowen shrugged. "Perhaps I was thinking of both-or perhaps I was not
thinking at all. Either way, I was wrong. It is not my place to decide what is
best for the crown. I pray you can forgive me." Tanalasta sank her fingers
into the dirt, turning it over and churning the leaf-humus into the soil. As
honest and humble as Rowen's apology was, it did little to quell her anger. He
had said nothing about having faith in her ability to win her subjects'
confidence, and what future could she have with a man who did not believe in
her? "Thank you for clarifying matters, Rowen." Tanalasta's voice was
sarcastic. "I was afraid that in making a fool of myself, I had also conveyed
to you the duties of my station." "Now you are twisting my words, Princess."
Rowen's face was growing stormy. "I came here to say I agree with you. Why do
you refuse to listen?" "I have been listening." Tanalasta started to suggest
she had not liked what she heard, then thought better of such an acid remark
and shook her head. "I don't see the point in continuing this, Rowen. Maybe
you should leave." Rowen stared at her in disbelief for a long time, then
dumped the humus in his hands and stood. "If you wish." "It..." Recalling that
dawn tomorrow would probably be the last time she ever saw him, Tanalasta
almost said it wasn't what she wanted-but what good would that do? He still
didn't believe in her. She summoned her resolve and said, "It is." Rowen
turned to leave, then suddenly stopped. "No." More confused than upset,
Tanalasta looked up. "No?" The scout spun on his heel and pulled her to her
feet. "The point, Tanalasta, is this." He kissed her hard, folding her into
his arms so tightly that he lifted her off the ground. The princess was too
astonished to be outraged. She had been imagining a moment like this almost
since she met Rowen, and he chose now to take matters into his own hands? His
timing was typically, wretchedly male-yet Tanalasta's body responded just as
fiercely as it had at the goblin keep. A sensation of joyous yearning shot
through her from lips to loins, and she wondered how such a powerful feeling
could be anything but a portent from the goddess. Before she knew it, her
hands were at his waist, pulling him closer, and a feeling of sacred warmth
flowed down through her body, dispelling her anger and draining her resolve.
She longed to embrace the moment, to run her hands over his body and kindle
their passion into full flame, but she could not release herself to carnal
abandon yet-not while her mind remained so at odds with her heart. Tanalasta
slipped a hand between them and pushed against Rowen's chest. The ranger
kissed her more deeply, running one hand up to her breast and filling her with
waves of seething pleasure. She closed her eyes for a single heartbeat, then
bit his lip-a little harder than necessary to make him stop-and managed to
push him away. "Rowen!" Tanalasta's voice had more passion and less anger in
it than she would have liked. She gulped down a breath, then gasped, "What was
the meaning of that?" "I think you know." Rowen touched a finger to his
bleeding lip, then gave her a lean and hungry look. "I wasn't thinking of the
crown princess, but of the woman I've come to know and love." "Love?" The word
did not feel as hollow as Tanalasta had expected-in fact, it felt all too
comfortable. She eyed him warily. "You are the one who has been worried about
the effect on the crown. What are we going to do about that?" Rowen shrugged
and shook his head. "I truly don't know, and I can't honestly say I care-as
long as you protect me from Vangerdahast." His tone was only half-joking. "I
don't fancy living out my life as a toad." Tanalasta looked at him a long
time, giving her mind time to come to the same conclusion her heart had
already reached. The princess knew him too well to believe the ranger had
suddenly forgotten his oath to the crown. He had simply come to the same
conclusion she had reached a long time ago. Tanalasta smiled. "If you think I
can protect you from Vangerdahast, you must be love-stricken!" She grabbed
Rowen by the front of his cloak and pulled his face close to hers. "But I have
read that a princess may kiss any toad she wishes." She licked the blood off
his lip, then slipped her tongue into his mouth and gave him a long, burning
kiss. He responded in kind, dipping her over backward and gently lowering her
to the ground. Tanalasta pressed herself against him, reveling in the waves of
desire shuddering through her body. His hands roamed over her shoulders and
breasts at will, igniting little blossoms of heat wherever they went, and the
last shadow of doubt vanished from her mind. Rowen was the man of her vision.
She could tell by the way her flesh came alive at his touch, and she wanted
never to be apart from him. She pulled her lips away from his long enough to
run a fevered line of kisses up his neck, then whispered, "Rowen…" She had to
stop to catch her breath. "We need a plan." "I have one." He loosened her
belt, then ran a hand up the bare skin beneath her tunic. She shivered in
delight and let her eyes roll back, feeling as though she would black out from
sheer pleasure. "No..." When Rowen's hand hesitated, she grabbed his wrist
through her tunic and guided his palm to her naked breast. "I mean yes," she
gasped. "But what about the future?" Rowen's fingers grew still. "I still
can't take you with me." He started to withdraw his hand-then stopped when
Tanalasta clamped her elbow across his arm. A wanton smile came to his lips,
but-somehow-he managed to keep his mind off his desire long enough to say,
"There's no telling how long it will take to find Vangerdahast, and-" "And I
must show the king what I've found as soon as possible-I know." Tanalasta
reached for his belt and began to fumble with the buckle. She was so
nervous-or was it excited?-that her hands were trembling. "How do you get this
thing off?" "Just like yours." Rowen arched his back to give her a better
angle, and the prong finally came out of the hole. Tanalasta grabbed the hem
of his tunic and lifted it to his shoulders. Her stomach filled with
butterflies, and she decided she was the luckiest princess in Faeriin. She
leaned over and kissed her way up toward his neck. Rowen moaned softly, then
fell silent and still. For a moment, Tanalasta feared she had done something
wrong-or, recalling her own trembling hands, thought perhaps he'd grown too
excited too quickly (having read in Miriam Buttercake's Treatise on Good
Wifery that men sometimes suffered such disappointments), but that turned out
not to be the case. As suddenly as he had fallen quiet, Rowen pulled her mouth
to his and gave her a long, lingering kiss. When he finished, he looked deeply
into her eyes and said, "There is one thing that even kings and queens may not
dictate, that only we may control." Tanalasta nodded eagerly. "I know." She
started to pull her tunic off over her head, but Rowen caught her arm. "No. I
mean there is a way to stop them from keeping us apart-but only if you are
sure about risking your crown." Tanalasta did not even hesitate. "I'm
thirty-six years old. If I can't make a decision by now, what kind of queen
would I be anyway?" Rowen smiled, then rolled to his knees and picked up the
seed bag that lay beside the plot of ground she had been preparing. He pulled
a single columbine seed from inside and placed it in his open palm. Tanalasta
stared at the kernel for a long time. She was more nervous than ever, with her
pulse rushing in her ears and her heart fluttering up into her
throat. Finally, she gathered her wits and asked, "The Seed Ceremony?" Rowen
nodded. "If you will have me." Tanalasta rose to her own knees. "Are you doing
this for me-or for the realm?" "Neither." Rowen continued to hold the seed in
his palm. "I am doing it for me." The rushing sound vanished from Tanalasta's
ears, and her heart settled back down into her chest where it belonged. "Good
answer." She placed her palm over the seed in Rowen's hand, and they began the
invocation. "Bless us, O Chauntea, as we bless this seed, that all we nurture
may grow healthy and strong." With their free hands, Tanalasta and Rowen dug a
single small hole in the plot she had prepared, then the princess grabbed her
waterskin and dampened the soil. "We prepare this bed with love and joy,"
Rowen said. Together, they placed the seed in the hole and covered it with
dirt. Tanalasta began the next part. "In the name of Chauntea, let the roots
of what we plant today grow deep ..." "And the stalk stand strong ..." "And
the flower bloom in brilliance ..." "And the fruit prove abundant." They
finished together, then poured more water the planting and kissed. This time,
it was Rowen who pulled Tanalasta's tunic over her head. 18 The royal wizard's
bones were acting their age. After more than a tenday of ghazneth-chasing, his
hips throbbed, his back hurt, and the last thing he wanted to do was crawl up
a rocky hillside on his hands and knees to spy on a tribe of swiners. That was
what Royal Scouts were for... but Vangerdahast was fresh out of Royal Scouts.
Owden Foley had found the last one earlier that morning-a bloated, blotchy red
corpse blanketed in stinging ants. There had been no question of touching the
thing. They had simply poured a flask of torch oil over the body, commended
the man's soul to Helm, and set him alight. Now the royal magician had to do
his own spying. Vangerdahast crested the hill and found himself looking across
the vast, fog-laced expanse of the Farsea Marsh. Stretching to the horizon, it
was a sweep of golden-green tallgrass with channels of bronze water meandering
past scattered copses of swamp poplar and bog spruce. The place teemed with
cormorants and black egrets, all as raucous as a band of goblins, and swarms
of black insects glided through the grass in hazy amorphous clouds. On the
near shore, several orc tribes were camped together on a rocky spur of land
that jutted out into the marsh perhaps a thousand paces. The males had broken
into four large companies and retreated to separate corners of the little
peninsula for formation drills and weapons training. The females and children
were clustered around tribal fires working, or wading through the shallows in
search of fish and crustaceans. A two-story keep of dried mud stood at the end
of the promontory, overlooking the marsh on three sides and guarded landward
by a timber drawbridge. Its blocky construction and rounded arrow loops were
evocative of ancient Cormyrean architecture. From the second-story windows
oozed a strange aura of darkness that clung to the place like a death
shroud. The water around the keep gleamed silver with floating fish. Clouds of
insects swirled through the orc camps, filling the air with a drone that was
enough to drive Vangerdahast mad even a hundred and fifty paces inland. A
strange network of tiny crevices stretched along the center of the peninsula,
discharging thick curtains of yellow-gray smoke into the sky. Every plant
within a hundred yards of the promontory had withered and died, and a carpet
of gray mold was fanning outward from its base. The slope between
Vangerdahast's hiding place and the shore was strewn with deer carcasses, all
so putrid that even orcs would not eat them. The royal magician waved to his
deputies, and he was joined presently by the acting commander of his Purple
Dragons and the interim master of the company's war wizards. Alaphondar and
Owden followed the pair uninvited, but Vangerdahast did not object. The Royal
Sage Most Learned would need to record what followed, while Harvestmaster
Foley's opinions were often worth the hearing-provided Vangerdahast did not
put himself in the position of seeming to elicit them. Vangerdahast pointed at
the mud keep and said nothing. "Tanalasta is inside?" asked Owden. "I'll know
that when I get inside." Owden nodded. "I suppose that's the only way to find
out." Vangerdahast's stomach sank. The truth was he could not even be sure the
ghazneths were inside, and he had been hoping Owden would suggest an easy way
to find out. Instead, it appeared they would have to storm the keep-and with
less than half the company remaining. Vangerdahast took a deep breath, then
said, "Here's my plan." He quickly outlined what he wanted, making both
commanders repeat their instructions. When they had done so, he turned to
Owden, giving the priest one last opportunity to make him look like a fool.
"I'm assuming the ghazneths are inside because orcs don't normally practice
drills." "Or share encampments, or build keeps fashioned in the style of
ancient Cormyr," added Owden, "and because we haven't seen them in the last
half-day. What are we waiting for?" "Nothing, it would seem." Vangerdahast
nodded to his subcommanders, who retreated twenty paces down the hill to
prepare their men. As soon as they were gone, Alaphondar asked, "You two do
realize there's more to this than meets the eye?" "Are you referring to the
keep?" asked Owden. "Its significance hasn't escaped me." "What significance?"
asked Vangerdahast. "What the keep means," explained Alaphondar.
"Historically, citadels built in such forlorn places are home to some
embattled, ever-watchful spirit." "I'd call that a fair description of the
ghazneths," said Vangerdahast. "And I would call it a description of their
master," said Owden. "We are entering the world of the phantom, my friend. You
would do well to listen to your soul." Vangerdahast regarded the priest
sourly. "My soul tells me that an ancient spirit would not inhabit a keep
built of mud. In this climate, such places tend to melt rather
quickly." "Which is why we must consider the ghazneths' reason for building
beside a rainy marsh in the first place," said Alaphondar. "Have you read Ali
Binwar's treatise, Of the Four Natures?" Vangerdahast rolled his eyes. "Sadly,
I have better things to do with my time than waste it on idle
reading." "Gladly, I do not," said Owden. "You are referring to the chapter on
elemental amalgamation?" A gleam came to Alaphondar's eyes. "Exactly. In the
marsh, we have the fusion of earth and water, but the absence of air or fire.
The idle elements combined, the vigorous excluded." "Perfect conditions for
spiritual decomposition," agreed Owden. "We will have to be careful." "Indeed,
but it's not you I was thinking about." Alaphondar waved a hand down the rocky
hillside. "There are plenty of stones about. Why build the keep of
mud?" Owden's eyes widened in alarm. "Because mud combines the nourishing
power of earth with the dissolving properties of water." "Yes-the perfect
medium for transformation." Alaphondar pointed to the mud tower. "Give it a
shape, add a little fire and some air, and a few days later you have a
keep." "Or give it a spark of life, and you have a ghazneth," said
Owden. Vangerdahast frowned. "What are you saying?" When no one replied, his
imagination supplied its own answer. "That they are trying to make a ghazneth
of Tanalasta?" "That might explain why the ghazneths have been working so hard
to keep us away from here," said Alaphondar. Vangerdahast felt a growing
hollow in the pit of his stomach. "Don't be ridiculous! Boldovar's crypt
wasn't anywhere near a marsh." "Marshes have been known to dry up," said the
sage. Vangerdahast started to counter that there had been no sign of a keep,
but a thousand years was a longtime. So many seasons of spring rains would
have destroyed any sign that the grave had ever been guarded by a mud
fortress. Instead, be asked, "What about the tree? I doubt we'll find any
elven poets in an orc camp." "The thought does strike me as something of a
self-contradiction," said Owden, "but there are many things we don't
know-" "Including the keep's purpose." Vangerdahast began to inch back down
the hill. "I'll hear no more of this philosophical nonsense. We could argue in
circles all day, and it would make no difference. If Tanalasta is in there, we
must rescue her." "And if she is not, we must make a ghazneth tell us where
she is," said Owden. The priest started down the hill after Vangerdahast, and
Alaphondar crawled toward his assigned hiding place in a jumble of boulders.
No one suggested using a spell to locate the princess. If she was not a
prisoner already, the magic would lead the ghazneths to her like an arrow. As
they parted ways, Alaphondar paused. "Good luck, my friends, and be
careful." "We'll be safe enough,"Vangerdahast assured him. "It's you who is
taking the risk, staying here alone. You remember my signal?" Alaphondar
nodded. "The shooting star." He gestured toward his weathercloak's escape
pocket. "I'll rejoin the company as soon as I see it." "Good. If we have the
princess, we can't wait around long," said Vangerdahast. "If we don't, there
won't be time to look for you." "And if matters go badly, Alaphondar, don't
even think of joining us," added Owden. "You won't be able to help, and
someone will need to inform the king." "Preferably in person." Vangerdahast
tapped the throat clasp on Owden's weathercloak. "So don't use this unless you
must. It would be nice if you lived long enough to chronicle what little we've
learned about these things." Alaphondar nodded reluctantly. "I know, I know-my
pen is my sword." He wished them luck again, then turned away. Vangerdahast
and Owden returned to their horses and mounted. What remained of the Royal
Excursionary Company sat ready and waiting, an unclasped weathercloak draped
over the shoulders of every rider. Though the cloaks were standard issue only
for war wizards, the company had lost so many men they now had one for even
the lowest-ranking dragoneer. Vangerdahast nodded, and the company closed
their throat clasps. The war wizards began to sprinkle powdered steel over
everyone in the company, filling the air with magic incantations as they cast
their spells of shielding. The royal magician did the same for himself and
Owden, then looked toward the top of the hill. Alaphondar was kneeling in the
midst of the boulder jumble, squinting down toward the keep and holding one
arm up to signal. "Be ready!" Vangerdahast started Cadimus up the hill at a
walk, motioning the company to follow. "Stragglers will pay dearly." They had
nearly reached the hilltop before Alaphondar's arm finally dropped.
Vangerdahast slapped his heels into Cadimus's flanks, urging the big stallion
into a run. The air began to resonate with the drumming of hooves. The clamor
of an alarm bell rang out across the marsh, followed by a tumult of grunting
and squealing. The royal magician crested the hill to see five hundred orcs
scurrying toward the neck of the peninsula. Ahead of the swiners flew five
streaks of darkness, their black wings mere blurs as they shot forward to meet
the Royal Excursionary Company. Vangerdahast's heart sank. They had never
before seen more than three ghazneths at a time. The charge started down the
front of the hill and picked up speed. Vangerdahast's old knees began to ache
from squeezing Cadimus so hard. The ghazneths continued to climb higher as
they approached, and they were a hundred feet in the air by the time the
company crossed the neck of the peninsula. The royal magician slipped one hand
inside his weathercloak and found the escape pocket, craning his neck to keep
watch on the rising phantoms. At last, when he judged them to be two hundred
feet above the ground, they wheeled around to fall on the company from
behind. Vangerdahast looked forward again and saw the orcs forming ranks along
the neck of the peninsula, their officers pushing and shoving frightened
warriors into short stretches of line. The swiners were armed with an odd
assortment of spears, swords, and pikes-whatever they happened to be holding
at the moment the alarm was sounded. Even without magic, it would have been an
easy matter to break through their defenses, but the royal magician was in no
mood to waste time in melee, especially with the ghazneths swooping down on
them from behind. Vangerdahast fixed his gaze on a tribal campsite about two
hundred paces shy of the keep, looking past a long line of orcs streaming down
the peninsula to meet the charge. He could barely make out the distant figures
of females and children, turning to stare after their warriors and shake their
arms in encouragement. They were in for a big surprise. Vangerdahast thrust
his hand into the escape pocket, and a large black square appeared directly
ahead of him. Cadimus whinnied and tried to veer off, but there was no time.
He hit the doorway at a full gallop, and Vangerdahast experienced that
familiar feeling of dark, endless falling. An instant later, he burst back
into the light, head spinning and ears ringing with astonished squeals and
grunts. Cadimus stumbled, something shrieked, and Vangerdahast took a blow
across the shin. He looked down, but his vision was still a blur, and he could
not imagine what might have happened. The sound of drumming hooves began to
build around him, and the world erupted into a cacophony of shrieking and
snorting. Cadimus ricocheted off something soft but sturdy, then bumped into
something just as soft and sturdy on the other side, and the round shape of a
horse's rear end came into focus ahead of Vangerdahast. The wizard shook his
head clear, recalling that he was in the middle of a cavalry charge. He began
to make out the shapes of dazed horses and glassy-eyed men all around, all
galloping forward at a full sprint, all oblivious to the blocky keep standing
at the end of the peninsula just fifty paces ahead. "Halt!" Vangerdahast
reined Cadimus in, being careful not to pull up so short that he caused a
collision with the horse behind him. "Stop! Stop!" Slowly, the rest of the
company began to heed his orders. By the time Vangerdahast reached the keep,
the charge had slowed to an amble, with horses stumbling about blindly and men
struggling to shake their heads clear. The ground at this end of the peninsula
was striped with hairline crevices, all spewing yellow fumes and fouling the
air with the acrid stink of brimstone. Clouds of mosquitoes, wasps, and flies
drifted back and forth through the smoke, biting, stinging, and filling
Vangerdahast's ears with their maddening drone. He wheeled Cadimus around and
found himself looking back at the remnant of an orc camp. There were hides and
half-cooked food strewn everywhere, and the terrified females were herding
their stunned young into the marsh. About two dozen grizzled males, and a like
number of husky females, were scuttling forward with crooked hunting spears
clutched in their hands. Vangerdahast maneuvered Cadimus through a tangle of
afterdazed dragoneers and waved his hand across the width of the peninsula,
uttering a long and complicated incantation. Unlike many spells, this one
required no material components, but it required half a minute of
tongue-twisting chanting. Before he finished, the swiner elders began hurling
spears in his direction, and the ghazneths appeared in the sky over the
promontory, streaking back toward the keep. Though he could not see the main
body of the orc army, he felt sure it would be charging up the peninsula to
defend the keep. When Vangerdahast finished his spell, a wall of flashing
color sprang up before him, stretching across the peninsula and well down into
the water. It would not stop the flying ghazneths, of course, but the orc army
would be forced down into the marsh to circumvent it. Any warrior foolish
enough to try scaling it would be spit back at his fellows, mangled beyond
recognition. By the time Vangerdahast turned back to the mud keep, a steady
drizzle of ore arrows was flying down from the arrow loops. The Royal
Excursionary Company was beginning to recover from its afterdaze and return
fire, but without much effect. The pall of darkness that seemed to cling to
the place prevented them from seeing their targets, and so their arrows were
about as effective against the swiners as those of the swiners were against
their magically shielded armor. Vangerdahast rode forward to his
subcommanders, who stood together taking orders from Owden. Scowling at the
priest's presumption, the wizard dismounted, leaving Cadimus with a young
dragoneer, and joined them. "Stop wasting time with this groundsplitter!"
Vangerdahast shoved the commander of the Purple Dragons toward the wall. "The
ghazneths will be here in two minutes. Get your archers ready." The man paled.
"As you command." He ran off to obey, shouting for the dragoneers to form
their squares. Vangerdahast turned to the master of his war wizards and
pointed at the keep's gate. To his surprise, it was coated in black iron. He
could not understand why he had failed to notice the dark metal from the
hilltop. "Can you tell me why that is still standing?" The young wizard paled.
"No. We've hit it with fire, lightning, and warping. Nothing works." "In fact,
spells only make the gates stronger. The iron was not there until your wizards
started their work," added Owden. "Then try the walls!" Vangerdahast stormed.
'We're in a hurry!" As he spoke, the royal magician pulled his lodestone from
his pocket and scraped a pinch of dust off Owden's weathercloak. He rolled the
lodestone in the dust, pointed to the base of the keep, and uttered his spell.
A ray of shimmering translucence shot from his finger, blossoming against the
building in a circle of rippling energy. The mud wall turned dark and smooth
and seemed to melt as the wizard's magic faded, finally coalescing into a
smooth disc of black marble. Vangerdahast cursed, then an orc's arrow
corkscrewed down to bounce harmlessly off his breast. "The same as the gate,"
said Owden. "I fear Alaphondar is more right about the nature of the keep than
he knows. It seems to be using your magic against you." "Obviously,"
Vangerdahast snarled. Deciding to try the opposite tactic, he waved his hand
at the wall and uttered a quick incantation to dispel the magic. The dark
circle only grew larger. A flurry of throbbing bowstrings proclaimed the
arrival of the ghazneths. Vangerdahast glanced toward his prismatic wall and
saw all five phantoms wheeling toward the marsh, their breasts and wings
peppered with iron-tipped arrows. Two of the creatures seemed to be flying a
little more slowly than usual, and one was trailing a syrupy string of black
blood. "If magic won't work, hard work will," said Owden. The harvestmaster
snatched an iron-tipped spear from a dragoneer and charged the keep, angling
away from the dark circle that Vangerdahast had created. A cloud of crooked
shafts wobbled down from arrow loops to meet his charge. Most missed broadly,
but even those that found him bounced off without causing harm. Vangerdahast
scowled, then finally realized what the priest was doing and waved a troop of
men after him. "Get over there and help the fool! Tanalasta will have my ears
if something happens to him!" A dozen dragoneers grabbed their spears and
rushed after Owden. They were joined by a handful of war wizards, who quickly
raised a floating ceiling above their heads to deflect the annoying deluge of
orc arrows. Vangerdahast remained a moment to watch the enemy response, but
the aura of darkness clinging to the keep precluded any possibility of seeing
inside. The only reaction was a slight slackening in the rain of crooked
shafts as the swiners within realized the futility of their attacks. Pulsing
volleys of bowfire began to sound from all directions. Vangerdahast glanced
around the peninsula to find the dragoneers arrayed in single ranks along the
shoreline, filling the air with arrows as the ghazneths came in low and fast.
Behind each rank of Purple Dragons stood a war wizard, pointing over their
heads and uttering the incantation of a wall spell. As the sorcerers' voices
fell silent, rippling curtains of force sprang up around the edge of the
peninsula, enclosing it in a castlelike perimeter of magic walls. A pair of
ghazneths slammed into these barricades headlong, filling the air with
blood-curdling shrieks and looking more surprised than hurt as they lay
splayed against the invisible walls. The other three phantoms streaked across
the shoreline just ahead of the spells, tearing through the single thin rank
of dragoneers in a dark flash and sinking their talons into the wizards
waiting behind. One sorcerer got off a quick web spell, binding himself and
his attacker together in a cocoon of sticky white filament. The other two
wizards were jerked from their feet, screaming and flailing as the ghazneths
arced into the sky. A cloud of arrows chased the phantoms over Vangerdahast's
prismatic wall, but that did not keep the creatures from dropping their
victims into the heart of the orc army. After a brief tumult of crackling
magic and screeching swiners, a round of raucous victory snorts announced the
fall of the wizards to superior numbers. On Vangerdahast's side of the wall, a
dozen dragoneers rushed over to the web-tangled ghazneth. The filaments were
already beginning to lose their color, and the men seemed uncertain quite how
to attack. Finally, one grabbed his sword with both hands and drove it into
the cocoon with all his might. The attack drew a muffled bellow, but when the
soldier tried to withdraw his weapon and attack again, it remained lodged in
the sticky filaments. He began to work the hilt back and forth, hoping to
enlarge the wound and cause as much damage as possible. When this evoked a
long roar, several of the warrior's fellows plunged their own blades into the
web and imitated his tactic. The ghazneth howled in rage and pain, thrashing
about so madly that the dragoneers had trouble holding their
weapons. Abruptly, the phantom stopped struggling. A tremendous boom knocked
the dragoneers off their feet, then the ground opened under their feet,
belching forth a column of stinking yellow fume that hurled them high into the
sky. They swirled about in a strange airborne dance, shrieking and flailing at
the phantom with blade and fist, bound to their foe by the web spell. Their
voices grew raspy and broken from inhaling acrid fumes. A pair of warriors
came free of the sticky tangle and crashed to the ground, and the smoke
vanished as suddenly as it had appeared. The cocoon plummeted into the abyss
with its tangle of men and weapons, only to reappear a moment later when a
pillar of flame hurled it back into the air. The web spell dissolved in a
flash of crimson. The dragoneers disintegrated into lumps of scorched armor
and howling ash and plunged back into the chasm. The ghazneth erupted into a
flaming silhouette of itself and remained in the air, spreading its wings and
letting out a long, spiteful cackle. It wheeled around trailing tongues of
crimson fire and streaked down to catch the nearest war wizard in its burning
talons, then disappeared over Vangerdahast's prismatic wall. The other
ghazneths came swooping over the walls from four different directions, talons
extended and trails of dark blood dribbling from their wounds. A flurry of
spells and iron-tipped arrows drove them away almost instantly, then the
ground started to tremble. Small curtains of flame sprouted along the spine of
the peninsula. The stench of brimstone grew suffocating, and men began to
cough and choke and clutch at their throats. The company's panicked horses
broke free of their holders and galloped madly along the shoreline, bouncing
off the invisible walls and searching in vain for some way to escape the
peninsula. The war wizards cleared the air with a flurry of magic winds, but
that did not prevent Vangerdahast from cursing. Until now, the ghazneths had
never used such powers against the Royal Excursionary Company, and he could
not help wondering what other surprises they had in store. His whole strategy
had been predicated on holding the creatures at bay long enough to enter the
keep, but it was beginning to look like even that modest goal was not
achievable. Vangerdahast glimpsed a blazing ghazneth arcing over the prismatic
wall and drove it back with a magic ice storm, then rushed forward to join
Owden and the others at the keep. The harvestmaster and two other men were
standing side-by-side, madly jabbing their spears into the dried mud and
scraping loose small sprays of material. They had already managed to tunnel
more than two feet into the base of the tower, and the wall flexed each time
they struck. Determined that the first rescuer to enter the keep would not be
a priest of Chauntea, Vangerdahast reached into the tunnel and pulled Owden
back. "Let the Purple Dragons lead the way," said the royal magician.
"Tanalasta would never forgive me if something unfortunate befell
you." "Indeed, that would be almost as unfortunate as letting it be known that
someone else had freed her." Owden pulled free of Vangerdahast's grasp, but
shrugged and made no move to return to his digging. "Play your games if you
wish. They make no difference to the princess." Vangerdahast resisted a sharp
reply, knowing that a stinging retort would only confirm how much he feared
the priest was right. Tanalasta had always been a perceptive woman, now that
she had become a stubborn one, it would take more than a simple rescue to make
her reconsider her convictions. The diggers broke through with a hollow
clatter, opening a pair of head-sized holes into the swirling darkness inside.
The musty scent of damp earth filled the air. A strange drone echoed out of
the keep, then the dragoneers screamed and stumbled back, their heads lost
under a cloud of black wasps. Vangerdahast raised a hand and blew across his
palm, scattering the wasps with a quick wind spell-standard defensive magic
for any war wizard. The two dragoneers fell and lay on their backs, covering
their eyes and screaming in agony. Owden and several dragoneers managed to pry
their hands away from their faces, revealing a swollen mass of red boils. The
priest called on Chauntea's mercy and began to pray. Vangerdahast caught him
by the shoulder. "Save your spells for Tanalasta. As much as I hate to share
her gratitude, the princess may have need of your healing more than these
soldiers." Owden looked torn. Vangerdahast gave the priest no choice in the
matter, pulling him to his feet and turning to face the keep, where a steady
cloud of wasps was pouring from the two holes. A half-dozen dragoneers pulled
their weathercloaks over their heads and charged into the swarm at a sprint,
hurling their armored shoulders against the weakened wall. The holes collapsed
into a single windowlike portal nearly four feet across. Two warriors fell
headlong into the darkness, their shins resting across the bottom edge of the
breach. Wherever their legs touched the wall, little circles of dark marble
began to fan outward as the keep absorbed the magic in their weathercloaks and
shielding spells. The wasps descended on them, and the men began to scream and
thrash about. A war wizard directed a magic gale into the hole. The edges
turned to black marble, but enough of the wind endured to drive the wasps into
the depths of the tower. Several dragoneers rushed forward and grabbed their
screaming comrades by the ankles. A tempest of orcish arrows flew out of the
darkness to meet them. The shafts clattered harmlessly off the rescuers, but
the two victims cried out in pain as they suffered hits. When their comrades
jerked them from the keep, one man had an arrow lodged in his shoulder, the
other in his neck. Vangerdahast pulled a commander's ring from his pocket and
slipped it on long enough to activate its light magic, then removed it and
tossed it inside. The ring passed through the breach still glowing, then hit
the stone floor and began to fade. The light lasted long enough for
Vangerdahast to see a cloud of wasps swirling along the far wall and a dozen
orc archers edging toward a door. When Vangerdahast detected no sign of
Tanalasta in the room, he commanded, "Fireballs!" "Fireballs?" Owden gasped.
"But that's what they want! That kind of magic will turn the whole tower to
stone." Vangerdahast shrugged. "What do we care? We've already breached
it." As his war wizards prepared their spells, Vangerdahast saw that the
battle on the peninsula was turning against him. A dense cloud of smoke,
glowing in a hundred places with scarlet fire curtains, blanketed the
battlefield. Dragoneers lay on the ground by the dozen, clutching at their
throats or not moving at all. The few who remained on their feet could barely
be seen through the flames and the fumes, standing along the shoreline in
ragged lines, coughing and gagging on the poison air. There was no sign at all
of the sorcerers assigned to support them, and the company horses were
galloping along the shoreline more madly than ever. Cadimus, of course, was
leading the charge. When Vangerdahast did not see any ghazneths swooping down
from the sky, he dared wonder if the phantoms had finally fallen to his
dragoneers' iron weapons. That hope was shattered when he noticed the magic
shimmer of a force wall beginning to fade. Though his own troops blocked his
view of the other side, he felt certain that the ghazneths were pressing
themselves against the wall, absorbing its magic into their own bodies. Behind
them, there would be a horde of orcs milling about, waiting to wade ashore and
slaughter what remained of the Royal Excursionary Company. Vangerdahast did
not think the swiners would find the battle difficult. There would be a moment
of confusion as Cadimus and the other horses charged through the opening, then
victory would come quickly for the orcs. There were not enough dragoneers left
to hold longer than it would take the swiners to trample them. The rumble of a
tremendous fireball erupted from the keep. Vangerdahast looked back to see a
long tongue of flame licking out of the portal. The mud walls were instantly
transformed to black marble as high as the second story. He took a small scrap
of parchment from his cloak, then rolled it into a small cone and held it to
his lips. He whispered a quick incantation and turned toward the survivors of
the battle. "Retreat to the keep!" Though even he could barely hear his voice
over the battle rumble, the remaining dragoneers broke ranks and ran for the
keep at their best sprints. Half a dozen fell almost immediately to tendrils
of poison fume or curtains of leaping flame. Vangerdahast guessed that half
their number, perhaps twenty soldiers, would survive long enough to reach the
keep. The royal magician grabbed the nearest war wizard. "When I enter the
keep, you are to take command. Block the breach with an iron wall-not touching
it, mind you, but only a hair's breadth away-then take the survivors and
teleport back to Arabel." The sorcerer's relief was obvious. "As you
command." "What about Alaphondar?" asked Owden. "You haven't sent up the
shooting star." Vangerdahast glanced at the carnage around him. "Alaphondar's
safer in his hiding place. We'll teleport from Arabel and fetch
him." Vangerdahast returned his attention to the keep, where the last flames
of the fireball were just dying out. He pulled a crow feather from his cloak
pocket and brushed the vane up and down his body, uttering a low incantation.
A warm prickle crept up his arms. He started to feel very light, then his feet
left the ground, and he was floating. As Vangerdahast completed his spell, the
first dragoneers staggered in from the shoreline, stinking of brimstone and
coughing violently. To a soldier, their faces were swollen and red with insect
bites, and many had the glassy-eyed expressions of men ill with the ague.
Seeing Vangerdahast floating in the air, one warrior stumbled forward to
clutch at his robes. "Where are you going?" The man's voice was shrill and
unbalanced. "The Royal Excursionary Company doesn't desert!" "Coward!" accused
another. "Come back and make your stand!" Several more took up the cry and
lunged forward, all reaching up to grab hold of the wizard's cloak.
Vangerdahast tore his arm free and flew out of their reach with a quick flick
of his hands. "Who are you calling a deserter?" Vangerdahast demanded, growing
furious. He pulled a wand from inside his cloak. "How dare you!" Owden stepped
forward, raising his hands to stop the attack. "Vangerdahast, it's ghazneth
madness!" The priest waved at their swollen faces. "They're wounded and sick,
just as you were in Arabel." "Then get them under control!" Vangerdahast
snapped, feeling foolish-and more than a little frightened by all he did not
know about the ghazneths. "I'll see you in Arabel." "Me?" Owden looked
shocked. "What do you mean? You need someone to watch your back." "How?"
Vangerdahast flapped his arms and floated toward the smoking breach in the
keep's black wall. "Unless you can fly, you'll only slow me down-and lose your
weathercloak's magic to the keep." "Wait!" It was the wizard to whom
Vangerdahast had given command. "I can help." The royal magician looked back
to see the war wizard and Owden scurrying after him, the sorcerer brushing the
vane of a pigeon feather over the harvestmaster's arms. A handful of mad
dragoneers were stumbling along behind them, cursing Vangerdahast for a coward
and promising to take vengeance in the afterlife. Behind them, on the near
shore of the peninsula, the ghazneths had finally drawn all of the magic out
of the force wall. Cadimus charged through the gap, leading the rest of the
horses along behind him and bowling the astonished ghazneths over
backward. Owden rose unsteadily into the air, blocking Vangerdahast's view of
Cadimus's mad charge. "Ready!" "I'll be the judge of that." Vangerdahast
turned away and glided into the keep's marble darkness. 19 From the hilltop
where Alaphondar lay hiding, the keep appeared as a mere thumb-sized box at
the heart of a slow-swirling spiral of brownish marsh haze. The men of the
Royal Excursionary Company-what remained of them-were tiny stick figures
glimpsed occasionally through the smoke and flame at the peninsula tip. The
orcs were a frothing mass waiting in the water, while the ghazneths looked
like four shadows and a single tongue of flame pressed to the face of the
invisible wall. Now and again, Alaphondar's hill would vibrate with the low
rumble of an explosion, or the air would smell briefly of brimstone or
scorched flesh. Otherwise, the battle had drawn in on itself, leaving him
blind to the events below and frightened for his companions. The one thing he
could see clearly-the marsh mist spiraling in toward the keep-worried him more
than anything. Aside from seeming rather unnatural, it suggested an ominous
gathering of forces, as if the tower were drawing inward the Royal
Excursionary Company, the ghazneths and orcs, even the corrupting energies of
the marsh itself. Alaphondar felt quite certain that Vangerdahast wouldn't
notice the pattern, or appreciate its significance even if he did. The royal
magician was a man of many strengths, but philosophical insight was not among
them-and especially not in the midst of battle. Alaphondar started to reach
for his throat clasp, then pulled his hand away and rose from his hiding
place. Even if he were to contact Vangerdahast, what would he say? I've
noticed a suspicious pattern? The old wizard would only bark at him for
drawing the ghazneth's attention to himself-and rightly so. To be any help to
his friends, the old sage needed more information. Alaphondar descended the
hill at the best pace his old legs could manage, then retrieved his spyglass
from his saddlebags and started back up the hill. When he had first shown his
invention to Vangerdahast, decades before, the old curmudgeon had mocked it as
a "four-foot monocle" and asked why anyone would suffer such a blurry jumpy
image when a simple clairvoyance spell could produce a perfectly clear vision.
Alaphondar had accepted the criticism gracefully and muttered something about
improving the opticals. When Alaphondar reached the crest of the hill and
raised the spyglass to his eye, the image was not blurry at all-nor was it
jumpy, so long as he steadied the end of the viewing tube on a boulder. The
keep now appeared as tall as his arm, and even through the gauzy yellow smoke,
he could see Owden Foley flying behind Vangerdahast through a windowlike
breach. Strangely, the timber gate now seemed to be sheathed in dark iron,
while the building's lower story had taken on the glossy appearance of black
marble. A series of silver flashes silhouetted Vangerdahast in the dark
portal, waving a wand around the chamber's dark interior. Outside, another six
inches of wall darkened from mud to marble, and the sage had a sinking feeling
he had guessed right about the significance of the keep's location. It had
been built to protect something coming out of the marsh, and Vangerdahast's
magic was hastening matters along. A war wizard stepped into view and began to
gesture at the portal as though casting a spell. To Alaphondar's astonishment,
a dozen dragoneers swarmed the sorcerer at once. An iron wall appeared over
their heads and fell on them all. Several warriors near the edges crawled from
beneath the slab in various states of injury, then staggered to their feet and
limped off with raised weapons. One pair turned to scramble into the keep and
they were promptly blasted out of the portal by a lightning bolt. The others
rushed off in the opposite direction. Alaphondar shook his head at the
madness, then noticed the company horses racing into the marsh. He swung the
spyglass over to the charge and was astonished to find the terrified beasts
stampeding into the orc horde, barreling into the front rank and forcing those
behind to retreat or be trampled. The royal magician's brave mount, Cadimus,
was leading the assault, rearing up to slash both front hooves at any swiner
between him and the open marsh. So fierce was the stallion's assault that
Alaphondar wondered if Vangerdahast had used some spell to drive the poor
beast into a battle frenzy. His curiosity vanished a moment later, when a
ghazneth rose from the water behind Cadimus. The phantom spread its wings and
raised an arm to point in the stallion's direction, then slipped and nearly
fell as another horse ran into one of its wings. The ghazneth spun around,
spraying a long arc of crimson fire from its fingertip, and pointed into the
oncoming stampede. A dark rift opened down the center, swallowing half a dozen
beasts in the blink of an eye. A moment later, their smoking carcasses
reappeared atop a blinding curtain of crimson fire. A second ghazneth shot out
of the water, then launched itself into the air with nebulous ribbons of
darkness trailing from its wings. It began to circle back and forth over the
stampede, dragging the black streamers across the heads of the charging
horses. The beasts went wild, turning to bite at the others around them, or
stopping to buck and kick at the beasts pressing them from behind. The charge
began to falter. A third ghazneth rose from the water and launched itself over
the orcs, yelling and gesturing wildly into the stampede. To a warrior, the
swiners turned and flung themselves against the charge, hacking and slashing
with their primitive weapons and paying no heed to their own lives. The horses
responded in a like manner, stopping in the middle of the horde to bite and
kick, or even wheeling around after they had cleared the fighting to wade back
into the fray. Only Cadimus and a handful of sturdy beasts in the front part
of the charge escaped the ghazneth's influence and continued forward. The
fourth and fifth ghazneths rose together from a spreading circle of browning
marsh grass. One launched itself after the escaping horses, swooping in from
behind to sprinkle them with brown droplets from its wet wings. The beasts
slowed almost at once, flecks of white foam spewing from their nostrils. Only
Cadimus escaped, hurling himself into the marsh on his side and disappearing
beneath the water. Not waiting to see whether the stallion surfaced again,
Alaphondar swung his spyglass back to the last ghazneth. The creature had
alighted on a powerful bay that was rearing up in the middle of the battle,
jaws clamped around one foe's neck and forefeet slashing at two more. The
ferocious beast split one orc's skull, pinned the second beneath the water,
bit through the third one's spine, and went to work on its unwelcome rider,
bucking and whirling and biting in a mad effort to tear the phantom from its
back. The horse tired only a moment later. Its coat suddenly grew dull and
grizzled, its face became gaunt, and the muscle melted from its body. The
beast dropped to its side and rolled, trying one last trick to unseat its
rider. The ghazneth merely leaped to another mount, leaving the bay to drown
in the marsh. Alaphondar lowered the spyglass and sank behind the boulder, his
veins running cold at what he was seeing: fire and fury, darkness, disease and
decay-five primal forces wielded by five dark phantoms Emperel had been
chasing when he disappeared. The implications were manifest. Emperel guarded
the Lords Who Sleep, a secret company of Cormyrean knights hibernating against
the day when a prophesy uttered by the great sage of Candlekeep, Alaundo the
Seer, came true: Seven scourges-five long gone, one of the day, and one soon
to come-open the door no man can close. Out come the armies of the dead and
the legions of the devil made by itself to sweep all Cormyr away in ruin,
unless those long dead rise to stand against them. Boldovar was a scourge long
gone, now returned bearing darkness and lunacy. Alaphondar did not know the
names of the other ghazneths, but it seemed reasonable to assume they might
also be scourges from Cormyr's past. He could list a dozen eligible names off
the top of his head, and those were just kings. That left only two scourges,
"one of the day" and "one soon to come," to open the "door no man can close."
Alaphondar's next thought made his chest tighten. Tanalasta might well be one
of those scourges. Certainly, Vangerdahast had predicted dire consequences for
the realm if the princess proceeded with her plan to establish a royal temple,
and the Royal Sage Most Learned knew enough history to realize that royal
magicians were seldom mistaken about such things. Alaphondar forced himself to
stand. Cadimus was creeping toward the shore, having eluded the orcs and
ghazneths by circling into the marsh and ducking into a thicket of high grass.
The rest of the horses lay near the peninsula, floating in the shallows or
piled high along the shore, thwarting the orcs' progress as they clambered
ashore. The ghazneths seemed to be hanging back to urge the horde onward,
apparently unconcerned that Vangerdahast had entered their keep. Of course,
they had little reason to worry, since every spell the wizard cast transformed
another few inches of mud into hard marble. Alaphondar raised the spyglass to
his eye. The tower was already black to three-quarters of its height, with the
marsh's brown haze swirling around it in tight spirals. Close to the ground,
the cloud was so thick he could no longer see the wall itself only the silver
flicker of Vangerdahast's battle spells flashing through the gaping breach.
Alaphondar was disheartened to see his friend had made so little progress. By
the time he reached Tanalasta, the tower would be solid marble and completely
swaddled in brown fog. What remained of the Royal Excursionary Company had
gathered about twenty paces in front of the keep. Incredibly, the small force
was trying to ready itself for a charge. The dragoneers were holding their
iron swords and pushing and shoving each other into a rough semblance of a
double rank. The two surviving war wizards stood together in the center of the
second line, facing each other and gesturing angrily. Alaphondar could not
imagine what the dragoneers expected to accomplish, but their jerky motions
and comical efforts at organizing themselves suggested they had fallen prey to
Boldovar's dark madness. The sage was about to lower the spyglass and start
down the hill when a cloud of insects rolled over the company from behind. The
men flew into a frenzy, breaking ranks to slap wildly at themselves and each
other- sometimes with the flats of their iron blades. The two wizards pulled
spell components from their pockets and spun around, gesturing toward the top
of the keep. Neither managed to complete his spell. One suddenly covered his
eyes and fell writhing, and the other dropped when an errant sword caught him
across the back of the neck. Alaphondar turned his spyglass toward the keep,
tracing the black cloud to a second story arrow loop. Though the tower
interior remained dark and impenetrable, he had little doubt what he would
have found inside, had he been able to see: the sixth ghazneth, master of
swarms and Scourge of the Day. Leaving his spyglass where it lay, Alaphondar
stepped from behind the boulder and started down the front of the hill, then
thought better of rushing into danger with no backup plan. He took his note
journal from his weathercloak pocket and fished out a writing lead, then
scrawled a message on a blank page. You who read this, I pray you be loyal to
the Purple Dragon and perform a vital service to your king. If you be one of
the few who know the Sleeping Sword, then go and awaken it at once-the
scourges have come, and the door is opening. If this be nonsense to you, then
I pray you carry this note to the king in all haste and present it to him at
once. May wise Oghma watch over this message and see it delivered to the right
hand, Alaphondar Emmarask, Sage Most Learned to the Royal Court of
Cormyr Alaphondar tore the page from its book and did a quick signet rubbing,
then opened his spyglass and slipped the message inside. If all went well, he
would retrieve the note himself. If not, then whoever the king sent to
investigate his absence would see the message when he found the device and
looked inside. The sage slipped the spyglass down between two boulders,
leaving enough exposed to attract the attention of someone searching the area
for hints as to the fate of the Royal Excursionary Company, and started down
toward the marsh. Judging by the location of Vangerdahast's prismatic wall, he
needed to reach the bottom of the hill before he used his weathercloak's
escape pocket, and that would give him the time to do a quick sending. He
closed his throat clasp and pictured Tanalasta's face in his mind. * * * *
* When Tanalasta noticed the trail, Alusair's company was stumbling down into
one of those narrow, steep canyons that meandered aimlessly through the Storm
Horns, making any journey through the mountains a maddening exercise sweat,
and so when she looked down through the pines and glimpsed a swath of churned
earth running up the center of the marshy valley, she at first took the dark
stripe to be a product of delirium. It had been six days since her last
healing spell, and she knew from experience that such hallucinations became
common as a person grew sicker. Five days after her wedding-it seemed like she
had married Rowen years ago, though she thought the actual time was something
little more than a tenday-they had dared to cast a round of healing spells and
lost three men to a ghazneth attack. Since then they had resorted to magic
only when they grew too ill to continue moving, and the ghazneths never failed
to extract a heavy toll. Finally, Tanalasta staggered out of the trees onto a
grassy ribbon of valley floor and heard the lilting trickle of running water.
A dozen paces ahead stood a tall stand of willows, screening the creek from
view. Thirty paces beyond the creek rose the canyon's southern wall, blanketed
in pines and as steep as a rampart stairway. Drawn on by the promise of cold
water to quench their fevers, the entire company lurched through the willows
at a near run and dropped to their bellies on the stream bank and began to
palm cool clear water into their throats. Tanalasta was swallowing her third
mouthful when she caught a faint whiff of the familiar, too-sweet odor of
horse manure. She took one more drink, then rose and forded the creek across a
series of stepping stones. Pushing through the willows on the other side, she
found herself looking at the same swath of churned ground she had glimpsed
earlier. The trail was close to ten feet wide, with a generous coating of
dried manure and a distinct trio of paths worn shoes, and a single set of
smooth-soled boot prints lay superimposed over the center line of horseshoe
tracks. Rowen. Tanalasta turned to call the others and found her sister
already stepping out of the willows. Alusair dropped to her haunches and
crumbled some of the horse manure between her fingers. "It's been a while,"
she said. "Maybe a tenday." "But it was Vangerdahast." Tanalasta pointed to
the three trails. "According to the Steel -Princess's Field Guide to Tactics
of the Purple Dragon, that's the standard riding formation for a company with
a heavy complement of war wizards. Warriors shielding sorcerers." "You read
that?" Alusair replied, lifting a brow. "I doubt half the lionars in the army
have cracked the cover." "Perhaps because your style was stiff," said
Tanalasta. "I'll be happy to help you liven it up in a revision." Alusair's
tone grew as terse as her syntax. "There isn't going to be a revision-there's
going to be an order." She pointed at the boot print. "I suppose you've read
my little book on tracking as well?" "Of course, though it was clear that you
hadn't read Lanathar Manyon's." Ignoring the curl that came to her sister's
lip, Tanalasta squatted beside the print. "I think it's safe to assume this
track is Rowen's. Because it's on top of the horses, we know he was following
them. He seemed to be in good health." Tanalasta pointed to the broadest part
of the boot print, where a slight depression implied a swift, powerful
stride. Alusair inclined her head. "Very good. That should make you
happy." "I'll be happy when I see him again." Tanalasta stood and looked up
the dark strip of churned ground. She couldn't see Rowen, of course, but it
comforted her to know she stood on the same ground he had. "In his book,
Lanathar claimed a careful observer could tell the age of a track by nothing
more than its deterioration." "Roughly," growled Alusair. "And if he claimed
more, he was a damned liar." Tanalasta remained silent and allowed her sister
to study the tracks. As she waited, the rest of the company forded the creek
and came to stand with them. Two of the men wandered down the trail to make an
evaluation of their own, but they were still crumbling manure when Alusair
stood. "I'd say the company came through eight to fifteen days ago. Rowen's
tracks are harder to place, but I'd guess about eight days." "Then it's
possible he has caught them by now," surmised Tanalasta. Alusair studied her a
moment, then scowled and shook her head resolutely. "Don't even think it!
We're going to Goblin Mountain, and that's final." She turned to her men.
"Drink up and fill your waterskins. We've got a hill to climb before
dark." "Why?" Tanalasta demanded, truly surprised. "Vangerdahast is bound to
be closer." "Vangerdahast could be anywhere by now. And so could Rowen." "No,
Rowen's going to bring the company back this way. That's what he's trying to
tell us," Tanalasta said. When her sister frowned, she knew she was making
progress and pointed at the boot prints. "Rowen isn't this careless. If he
left a trail, he wanted us to see it." Alusair shook her head. "He couldn't
know we'd cross here." "He knew we'd be coming over Marshview pass, and we're
only two days south of there," Tanalasta said. "We're going south, while the
trail runs west. We had to cross it somewhere." Several men dared to murmur
their agreement. Alusair shot them a warning scowl, then looked back to
Tanalasta. "You're reading an awful lot into one set of boot prints. If you're
mistaken-" "I'm not," Tanalasta insisted. "I know Rowen." It was the wrong
thing to say. Alusair's face hardened, then she uncorked her waterskin and
turned to fill it from the stream. "I've made up my mind. I won't take these
men chasing across the Storm Horns just because you've got an itch to share
someone's bedroll." Tanalasta's jaw fell, and not only because she was not
accustomed to having the affairs of her heart discussed in such a manner. "Now
we are cutting to the core of the matter, I think." She followed her sister
down to the stream bank. "Are you really so frightened of me finding a man
that you would subject your company to another tenday of fever just to keep us
apart?" "If you're talking about Rowen Cormaeril, I wouldn't need to bother!"
Alusair retorted. Her men quickly began to finish filling their waterskins and
retreat onto the shore, where they stood staring at their feet or gazing into
the woods. The princess ignored them and continued to address Tanalasta.
"Vangerdahast won't let that little dalliance go any further than it has
already." "It is not a dalliance!" Tanalasta spat. A wave of cold anger rose
up inside her, and she decided the time had come to let Alusair know there
were two stubborn princesses in the Obarskyr line. "Vangerdahast can't do a
damn thing about it." Alusair's lip rose. "Has the fever consumed your wits?
If you keep pushing this, Vangerdahast will see to it that Rowen Cormaeril
spends more time in Anauroch than a Bedine camel-milker." "Vangerdahast no
longer has that authority," said Tanalasta. "At least not over Rowen." "What
are you talking about? Formal or not, Vangerdahast has that authority over
everyone in Cormyr-except maybe the royal family." "Exactly." Tanalasta took a
deep breath, then said, "I suppose the time has come to tell you." "Tell me
what?" Alusair narrowed her eyes. "What did you do?" "Come now, Alusair.
Aren't you the worldly one?" Not quite able to keep a smug smile off her face,
Tanalasta turned to Alusair's men. "Let it be known that the princess has
married. Rowen Cormaeril is now a Husband Royal." Alusair stepped in front of
Tanalasta. "You may disregard my sister-and I'm sure you're all wise enough to
know what will happen if her words are ever repeated." The men shut their
gaping mouths and looked more uncomfortable than ever. Alusair eyed them a
moment longer, then spun on her sister. "And you!" she demanded. "Eloping?
With a Cormaeril? That marriage will last until about thirty seconds after
Father hears of it-and then it will be too bad for poor Rowen. He doesn't
deserve to be banished." "And he won't," said Tanalasta. "Not unless the king
cares to inflict the same punishment on me-and that's what it would take. I
won't renounce Rowen. I'm in love with him." "Love?" Alusair's face reddened
with fear. "You're the crown princess, you selfish witch! Think of the
kingdom!" "Selfish?" An unexpected calm came over Tanalasta, and she spoke to
her sister in a composed-even serene-voice. "Alusair, you really aren't the
one to be calling others selfish. The fear in your face is plain to see. Would
you really sacrifice my happiness so you can keep gallivanting around the
Stonelands and sleeping with any young noble who happens to catch your
eye?" The alarm drained quickly from Alusair's face. She managed an unexpected
smile, then spoke in a softer voice. "Of course not. People expect that from
me. I wouldn't have to stop." She slammed the toe of her boot into a horse
apple, kicking it into the stream. "What scares me is that I won't be any
good. You'd make a far better queen." "If that were true, why would you be
trying to keep me away from Rowen? Wouldn't you trust me to do what is right
for myself-and Cormyr?" "It's not Rowen,"Alusair said, meeting her sister's
gaze. "I've had a go at him myself-" "Alusair!" Alusair raised a silencing
hand. "I know-he's spoken for. All I'm saying is, he's a fine fellow-but,
Tanalasta, the politics of the thing. His cousin tried to overthrow the king,
for heaven's sake." "Don't you think I know the politics?" "Sure, if they're
in a book somewhere, but..." Alusair shrugged and let the sentence trail off.
"Look, all I'm saying is I'm not going to be queen. If you can work this out
with Vangerdahast and the king, I'm happy." "But you won't help me." Alusair
spread her hands in a gesture of helplessness, then took Tanalasta's waterskin
and kneeled down to fill it from the stream. "Fine." Tanalasta was about to
remark that Alusair would have to live with the consequences when an image of
Alaphondar Emmarask appeared in her head. The old sage was staring downward
and huffing for breath, and Tanalasta had the distinct impression he was
frightened silly. The words of a sending began to hiss through her
mind. Tanalasta, open no doors! Ghazneths are scourges. Devil making himself
Vangerdahast and Owden inside, everyone else dead. Wait, or jump into marsh!
Answer, please, please... "Tanalasta?" Now it was Alusair's voice, and
Tanalasta felt her sister holding her arm. She motioned Alusair to wait, then
concentrated on Alaphondar's voice and sent her reply. Alaphondar, safe with
Alusair in mountains, two days from marsh. Understand ghazneths are scourges.
Know four names: Suzara, Boldovar, Merendil, Melineth. Xanthon Cormaeril
released them. "Tanalasta!"Alusair was not quite shaking her sister. "What is
it?" "I think we'd better risk a few curing spells," said Tanalasta. "That was
a sending from Alaphondar." "What?" "He seems to be at the Farsea Marsh with
Vangerdahast and Owden Foley." Tanalasta quickly repeated the message, then
said, "He seemed to think Alaundo's prophecy is coming to pass. You know,
'Seven scourges...'" "'Five long gone, one of the day, and one soon to come,'"
Alusair finished. "Of course I know. I looked it up as soon as I heard we were
looking for Emperel." "We should inform the king," Tanalasta said, closing her
weathercloak's throat clasp. "You'd better ready the men. It sounded like all
the ghazneths were busy with Vangerdahast, but we'd better not take a
chance." Alusair nodded and turned to start barking out orders, then paused
and looked back to Tanalasta. "See what he wants me to do. My company can
probably follow Vangerdahast's trail and reach the marsh in two days. That may
be the best anyone can do." "I'll ask." Tanalasta took a moment to compose as
succinct and complete a message as she could in a few words, then closed her
eyes and pictured her father's face. When the image suddenly pulled off its
crown and looked to one side, she sent her message. Father, Alaphondar reports
seven scourges here. Vangerdahast's company destroyed at Farsea Marsh, Vangey
and Owden alive. Alusair and I two days away, going to aid. The king's face
betrayed first his relief at hearing his daughters were alive, then his shock
at the unthinkable news. He shook his head urgently. No, can't risk crown
princess. War wizards and dragoneers will find battlefield soon enough. Return
to Arabel at once. Your mother safe but shaken. The image faded, and Tanalasta
found herself staring at her own feet. "Well?" Alusair demanded. Tanalasta
ignored her, pretending she was still in contact with the king, and took a
moment to plan out her next few actions. Alusair came and stood beside her
impatiently. Tanalasta looked up. "He says mother is safe but shaken." "What
does that mean?" Tanalasta shrugged. "He seemed to think we would
know." Alusair considered this a moment, then shook her head helplessly.
"Well, I suppose that's good news. What were his orders for me?" Tanalasta
answered quickly, not giving herself time to reconsider " 'The realm can't
afford to be without Vangerdahast and Alaphondar at this time of crisis.' " It
was more of an opinion than a lie. " 'You must do what you can to save them.'
" Alusair closed her eyes for a moment, then nodded and looked to her sister.
"And what am I to do with you?" Tanalasta spread her hands helplessly. "Take
me along, I suppose. He didn't have time to say." 20 The chamber was darker
than a grave and so thick with orc stench it sickened Vangerdahast to breathe.
Tangles of snakes slithered across the floor in wet, hissing snarls, while
clouds of droning insects hovered just beyond the light, kept at bay by some
magic Owden had worked. The corpses of charred swiners lay strewn along the
walls, shrouded under blankets of clicking beetles and humming flies. Ribbons
of yellow fume swirled through the air, hot, acrid, and moist with the smell
of the swamp. When no more orcs presented themselves for execution,
Vangerdahast fluttered his arms and led the way slowly forward. The darkness
of the place seemed to compress the light around his glowing wand, squeezing
what would normally be a twenty-foot sphere into a misshapen egg barely a
quarter that size. A low, constant groan rumbled through the keep, as though
the unnatural radiance were an affront to the building itself. The terrible
heat made Vangerdahast sweat heavily, and a steady stream of perspiration
dribbled from his old brow to the floor. The snakes hissed and struck at the
salty beads. As they drew nearer to the doorway, Vangerdahast saw that the
lintel and hinge post were rotting apart, while the surrounding walls were
covered with the ashen residue of some foul-smelling fungus. The door itself
hung open into the next room, dangling by the tattered remnant of a single
leather hinge. Vangerdahast motioned for Owden to be ready, then floated
through the doorway. He found himself in the corner of a narrow corridor, one
branch turning left toward a marble stairwell and the other leading straight
ahead toward a closed door. The walls were coated with the same white moss he
had seen in the blighted fields of northern Cormyr. A steady flow of
sweltering yellow fume poured down the stairs to swirl around the corner and
disappear down the dark hall, and the air was even warmer and more fetid than
in the previous room. Vangerdahast drifted down the passage and tried the
door. The latch came off in his hand, tearing a gaping hole in the rotten
wood. Brown scorpions began to swarm through the cavity and drop onto the
floor. Vangerdahast discarded the latch. "Perhaps we'll try upstairs
first." "It would seem more likely," agreed Owden. Neither of them mentioned
the obvious fate of anyone trapped in a room full of scorpions. The royal
magician drifted around the corner into the stairwell. It was cramped and
narrow and just as slime-caked as the keep's lower level, and so filled with
hot fume that Vangerdahast heard Owden gag on its rotten smell. The wizard
covered his own mouth and floated up the stairs without breathing. Even then
the stench made him feverish and dizzy. As Vangerdahast neared the top, a pair
of crude arrows hissed out of the darkness to ricochet off his magic shielding
and thud into the moldy walls. A guttural voice barked a command, and
bone-tipped spears began to poke their way through a dozen fungus-choked
murder holes hidden along the inner wall. Though the points snapped off
against the wizard's weathercloak, the attacks did threaten to shove him into
the stairwell wall and drain his magic. Vangerdahast touched his wand to the
nearest spear and sent a fork of lightning crackling into the murder hole. The
thunderbolt ricocheted down the ambush passage, filling the stairwell with
blue flashes and muffled squeals as it danced from orc to orc. The air grew
thick with a smell like scorched bacon, and the offending spears clattered
harmlessly out of sight. If any swiners survived the wizard's reprisal, they
were wise enough to fall silent and conceal the fact. "Watch above!" Owden
cried. Vangerdahast looked up to find the last two swiners leaping down the
stairs into the light. He kicked himself closer to the ceiling and let them
stumble past below, dispatching one with a quick dip of his wand. The other
fell to a crushing blow from Owden's iron-flanged mace. "This seems a little
more promising," said Vangerdahast. "At least they're trying to stop us." He
led the way upstairs and found himself in a large chamber, floating above a
square table strewn with moldering drawfish, eels, and whatever else the orcs
could dredge from the swamp. The place hummed with the sound of untold
insects, giving rise to a maddening din that made Vangerdahast's head throb.
The radius of his light spell was too small to illuminate all the walls, but
next to the stairwell, the iron door of a small cell hung open. Motioning
Owden up behind him, the royal magician floated over to inspect the
interior. Along one side lay a straw sleeping pallet and a dozen miscellaneous
rings, chalices, and weapons. Though all were of exquisite craftsmanship,
their condition was now dull and lusterless. Opposite the sleeping pallet, the
acrid smoke of charred flesh was wafting out of a small trap door opening down
into the ambush passage. The far wall of the tiny chamber was occupied by the
splayed recess of an arrow loop, through which Vangerdahast could see the
company horses beginning their mad charge into the astonished orc horde out in
the marsh. The ghazneths were nowhere in sight. Vangerdahast backed out of the
door and inspected the rest of the room. On the two flanking walls, they found
four more open cells, each with a sleeping pallet and an assortment of leaden
treasures that had once been enchanted with magic. At the opposite end, only
one of the iron doors hung ajar. The other was closed fast. The royal magician
readied a web spell, then gestured for Owden to open the closed door. Owden
pushed the latch, and it did not budge. He tried pulling. The door still did
not open, but a muffled clatter sounded inside the cell. "Tanalasta?"
Vangerdahast could barely hear his voice over the sound of his drumming heart.
"It's Vangerdahast." Owden glowered, then turned back to the door. "And
Owden." There was no reply. The two men exchanged worried glances. "Tanalasta,
we must open this door," said Vangerdahast. "If you're unable to answer, give
the royal knock. Otherwise, I fear Owden may be somewhat overanxious." "I can
answer." The voice was somewhat lower and rougher than
Tanalasta's. Vangerdahast narrowed his eyes and whispered, "That doesn't sound
like her." Before Owden could reply, Tanalasta answered, "And I doubt Owden is
the overanxious one." Owden shot Vangerdahast a smug smile. "That's
her!" Vangerdahast scowled, then motioned for the priest to wait above the
door with his mace. "Better to be safe." "So it will look like I'm the
suspicious one?" Owden shook his head. "She has been their captive for how
long? Of course she sounds a little hoarse." Vangerdahast continued to point
toward the ceiling. "It is no insult to be cautious." Owden rolled his eyes
and reluctantly floated up to hover above the door. Vangerdahast pointed at
the latch, then uttered a single magic word. The door creaked open, but
Tanalasta did not emerge. "Tanalasta?" Owden called, negating any possible
surprise bestowed by his position. "Come along-we don't have much
time." "No." "What?" Owden dropped down from the ceiling and started to push
the door open Vangerdahast caught him by the arm and pulled him back.
"Princess? Is something wrong?" "I don't want you to see me like this," came
the reply. "You can't help me, so leave me alone. I command it." "You know I
can't do that." Vangerdahast pushed the door open and saw a dark figure
crouching in the darkness, staring up at him with red-tinged eyes and a
slender face framed by a cascade of jet-black hair. So harsh were the
features-the sharp cheeks, the dagger-blade nose, the beestung mouth-that it
took the wizard a moment to recognize them as Tanalasta's. Even then, he could
not help bringing his wand up between them. The princess spun away, revealing
a pair of small, fan-like wings running alongside her spine. "I warned you!
Now leave me to the fate I deserve." Owden was far faster to recover than
Vangerdahast. He pushed the wand aside and floated into the cell. "You don't
deserve this." The priest spread his arms and reached to embrace the princess.
"What makes you think that?" "Don't touch me!" Tanalasta leaped away as
quickly as a striking snake, then was suddenly squatting in the arrow loop at
the back of her cell, naked, trembling, and glaring at them with wild red
eyes. Her figure was a gaunt, heinous mockery of the one Vangerdahast had
glimpsed at Orc's Pool, and he could not help feeling sick. She crossed her
arms in front of herself and looked down. "If you touch me, I'll absorb your
enchantments." She pointed her chin at the slithering floor. "You know what
will happen then." "Yes, we do." Vangerdahast started to unclasp his
weathercloak, then recalled what would become of all the magic stored in its
pockets and thought better of it. "We can't leave you here. Come what may,
you're coming with us." He jerked the weathercloak off Owden's shoulders and
held it out for the princess, but she made no move to accept it. "Tanalasta
Obarskyr! I did not lose an entire company of the king's soldiers to let you
become a ghazneth." Vangerdahast threw the cloak at her. "Now put that on and
come along. Whatever becomes of you, it will become of you in Cormyr-even if I
must teleport you back to Arabel in a web." Tanalasta's eyes flared red. "I
doubt you are that fast, old man." Despite her words, she slipped the cloak
over her nakedness and closed the throat clasp. The sheen immediately faded
from the brass clasp, and she stepped down to the floor. The insects and
snakes paid her little attention, save to scurry aside or slither across her
bare foot. "Lead on, Snoop." So relieved was the royal magician to have
Tanalasta back-in any condition-that he would have liked to grab her and
teleport back to Arabel that instant. Attempting such a thing from inside the
keep did not seem wise, however. Given the building's magic-absorbing nature,
they might well end up trapped inside its walls. Vangerdahast returned to the
main room and floated up toward the murky ceiling. "Do you know if there's a
door up here?" he asked. "There must be some way onto the roof." "No!"
Tanalasta barked the word as though it were a command. "I mean, we can't use
it. That's their door." She pointed to the far corner of the room, and
Vangerdahast soon saw the problem. The door was centered above the stairs, so
that the only way to use it was to fly. If he tried to hold Tanalasta long
enough to carry her through the opening, she would drain the magic from his
flying spell and trap them both. "We can use the marsh door." Tanalasta passed
beneath Vangerdahast and started downstairs. "They won't expect that." As they
descended, Tanalasta's weathercloak began to disintegrate, the fabric turning
dingy and dusty, the edges fraying and the seams opening. Vangerdahast noted
the decay and decided it would be prudent to arrive in a secluded part of the
palace and gave no more thought to the matter. The excitement of finding the
princess was fading, and his headache had returned with a vengeance. His
temples pounded and his vision was blurring. His joints ached and his stomach
had turned qualmish. By the time they reached the bottom of the stairs, he
felt as weak as an old woman. "Is anyone else feeling sick?" he asked. "It's
the keep," said Tanalasta. "This place holds the ghazneths' evil like a
closet-the swarms, the darkness, the plague, all of it." Owden laid a hand on
Vangerdahast's arm. "If you are not averse to a little help from the goddess,
I can help." "Later." Vangerdahast started around the corner "Let's get
out-" A frightened voice cried out from the next room, "Vangerdahast, help!
Are you there?" Owden withdrew his hand. "That sounded like-" "Alaphondar!"
Vangerdahast finished. Forgetting his headache for the moment, Vangerdahast
flew around the corner and peered across the chamber through the breach in the
keep wall, where he saw Alaphondar's gaunt figure standing outside,
silhouetted against the bright exterior light. The sage was swatting wasps
away and turning in blind circles as he tried to shake off the afterdaze of
using his weathercloak's escape pocket. A few dozen paces beyond him, the last
remnants of the Royal Excursionary Company lay on the ground writhing beneath
black blankets of wasps-easy prey for the orcs and ghazneths rushing across
the peninsula toward them. Vangerdahast pushed Owden toward the breach. "Get
him in here!" As the priest flew to obey, Vangerdahast jammed his glowing wand
into one pocket and fished a small square of iron from another. He rubbed the
sheet between his palms and began a long incantation. Owden entered the breach
behind Alaphondar, and the wasps scattered instantly. The priest reached down
and touched the sage's shoulder. "Here we are, my friend." Alaphondar turned
toward his savior. The sage's venerable face was a mottled mass of wasp
stings, already so red and distended that his eyes were swollen completely
shut. "Owden?" Alaphondar asked. Outside, the ghazneths sensed what was
happening and launched themselves into the air. "Tell me Vangerdahast is with
you!" "He is, and he's not the only one," Owden answered. This drew a puzzled
frown from Alaphondar, but the expression quickly changed to astonishment as
Owden plucked him off the ground and retreated into the keep. By the time
Vangerdahast took their place in the breach, the ghazneths were streaking past
the remnants of the Royal Excursionary Company and angling down toward the
keep. Vangerdahast turned the iron sheet edge-down and dropped it, then spoke
the last word of his spell. The peninsula vanished behind an iron wall, then a
series of deafening clangs reverberated through the chamber. Vangerdahast
retreated into the room with his ears still ringing and one eye fixed on the
iron wall. The barrier was illuminated inside by a few stray light rays
filtering down between its dark surface and the keep wall, but the space was
far too tiny for a ghazneth-or so he hoped. When no more sounds came from the
other side, he withdrew his glowing wand from his pocket and turned to the
others. "Could they have broken their necks?" Owden asked. "The wall was
iron." "Do you really believe we'd be that lucky?" Tanalasta asked. "The wall
is also magic. They are only… drinking it." "Tanalasta?" Alaphondar gasped.
"What are you doing here?" "The idea was to rescue me." Tanalasta's tone was
acid. "You do remember-or have you gone daft?" Vangerdahast raised his brow.
He had heard the princess address him in such a manner often enough, but never
Alaphondar. The sage was like a father to her. Alaphondar's hurt showed even
in his swollen face. His white eyebrows tilted inward, and he started to
explain himself-then he hesitated. "My mistake." He looked around the room
blindly. "I thought you were with Alusair for some reason. She just told me
that she has learned the names of the ghazneths from the glyphs at the other
crypts." "Really?" Vangerdahast asked. Being careful not to look in
Tanalasta's direction, he slipped a hand into his pocket and fished for a
scrap of silk. "I didn't know you had taught her to read elven
glyphs." Alaphondar nodded. "Oh yes, of course. Post Thaugloraneous glyphs are
a standard for well-bred princesses these days." Tanalasta's red eyes
flickered about the chamber, studying each man in turn. Vangerdahast was
careful to keep a neutral expression. Alusair wouldn't know a glyph from a
rune, and he had a pretty good idea what Alaphondar was trying to tell
him. But Owden was not as quick to appreciate the situation.
"Post-Thaugloraneous glyphs?" he asked, incredulous. "As in the dragon
Thauglor?" "A groundsplitter wouldn't understand," growled Vangerdahast.
Continuing to look at Alaphondar, he casually drew the silk scrap from his
pocket. "Did she say anything else?" "She wanted to know the words of
Alaundo's prophecy." The sage's eyes shifted in Tanalasta's direction. He
hesitated a moment, giving Vangerdahast a somewhat more obvious cue than
necessary, then said, "You know the one, don't you, Xanthon? 'Seven scourges,
five that were, one of the day...' " "Xanthon!" Vangerdahast spun instantly,
flinging the silken scrap in the direction of the ghazneth imposter. Had he
not been slowed by a pounding head and aching joints, he might have been quick
enough to catch the phantom. As matters were, however, Xanthon was already
gone. Vangerdahast's magic web spattered across the floor and wall, encasing
dozens of snakes and an untold number of insects. Alaphondar shrieked in pain,
and Vangerdahast swung his glowing wand around to see the imposter clinging to
the sage from below, claws sunk deep into the old man's flanks. The extra
weight was slowly dragging both Alaphondar and Owden down toward the poisonous
tangle on the floor, but Xanthon was not content to wait for his swarms to
finish the job. He drew his head back and stretched up to bite Alaphondar's
neck. Vangerdahast leveled his wand at Xanthon's temple and uttered his
command word. There was a deafening crack and a blinding flash, then the thud
of a body slamming into a wall. Still blinking the blindness out of his eyes,
the wizard reached out and caught Owden by the back of the cloak. "Are you
still flying?" he asked. "For now," came the reply. As Vangerdahast's vision
cleared, he saw that his lightning bolt had knocked Xanthon into the morass of
sticky filaments strewn across the far side the room. The imposter hung
sideways on the wall, struggling against his bonds and spewing foul curses on
Azoun's name. He still bore a faint resemblance to Tanalasta, but the illusion
was no longer strong. The ghazneth had suffered no damage, of course, and the
sticky filaments of web were fast growing translucent, but he would remain
trapped for at least a few moments. Vangerdahast turned to check on
Alaphondar. The old sage hung limp but breathing in Owden's arms, the long
gashes in his flank already puffy and red with purulence. The wizard laid a
gentle hand on his friend's arm. "Tanalasta is safe?" "For now," Alaphondar
replied. "She is with Alusair." "You are sure?" When the sage nodded,
Vangerdahast drew his iron dagger and looked back to Xanthon. The phantom's
eyes turned orange with fear, and he began to struggle even more fiercely than
before. One arm came free, and he began to hack at the web with the sharp
talons at the ends of his fingers. "Not this time, traitor," hissed
Vangerdahast. "Now you pay." The royal magician uttered a quick incantation,
then hurled his iron dagger across the room. The weapon took Xanthon square in
the chest, splitting the sternum and sinking to the hilt. The ghazneth
thrashed about madly, shrieking in anguish and trying to jerk free of the web.
When the struggle continued for several moments with no sign of abating,
Vangerdahast realized he would have to help matters along. Already, Xanthon
had torn his back and one leg free. The wizard passed his glowing wand to
Owden, then reached for the priest's weapon belt. "I need a hammer. Let me
borrow your mace." That was enough for Xanthon. He plucked the iron dagger
from his chest and began to slash, hacking at his own flesh in his haste to
escape. Vangerdahast fumbled frantically with Owden's mace, struggling to free
the weapon and pull it past Alaphondar's groaning form. By the time he had the
head loose, Xanthon was standing upright on the floor, black blood pouring
from the gaping hole in his chest. The phantom hurled the iron dagger at
Vangerdahast, then turned and fled through the door. Only the wizard's magic
shielding kept the knife from opening his skull. Vangerdahast cursed, then
caught Owden's eye and glanced at Alaphondar. "Can you save him?" Owden
scowled, clearly insulted by the question. "Of course, but I will need a safe
place to work-and for him to rest." "Then I will give you one." Leaving
Owden's mace hanging half out of its belt ring, Vangerdahast reached into
Alaphondar's weathercloak. "Pardon me, my friend." He grabbed a pocket by the
outside lining and tore it free, then held the resulting pouch in the air.
Keeping one eye on the door lest Xanthon return, he spread the pocket and
spoke a long incantation. When he finished, the pocket mouth expanded to the
size of a trap door. Vangerdahast released the pouch, and it continued to
hover in the air. "You can take refuge in there. Pull the mouth in after you
and no one can touch you-they won't even know you're there." Vangerdahast drew
the mace from Owden's belt. "And don't come out until you hear me calling-even
if it seems like tendays. Time will be strange inside, so it may be that only
a matter of seconds has passed out here." Owden glanced at his mace and cocked
a brow. "And what are you going to do?" "Avenge a betrayal," Vangerdahast
said. "And stop a scourge." "No!" Alaphondar's voice was barely a whisper "The
door no man can close... you'll open it!" "It appears Xanthon has already
opened that door." Vangerdahast looked away, peering through the chamber's
profane darkness into the adjacent passageway. "And I am going to slam it in
his face." 21 The sliver rotated in Vangerdahast's palm, pointing around the
corner into the swarming darkness of the lower keep. The wizard floated to the
far wall to peer into the next section of corridor. When he found nothing
lurking in ambush except more snakes and insects, he eased forward and
continued down the passageway. With three different spells shielding him from
harm, he was not overly concerned about being attacked-but a wise hunter
treated his prey with respect. The corridor continued past another half a
dozen doors, all as rotten and slime-caked as the first. The air was warmer
and more fetid than ever, though thankfully it no longer made the royal
magician feel quite so ill. Before parting ways, Owden had insisted on casting
a few spells of his own, calling upon Chauntea to guard the wizard against the
disease, poison, and evil of the place. To Vangerdahast's surprise, his
strength had quickly returned, and even the doors seemed to swirl away from
him as it passed. This small service could not make him embrace Tanalasta's
royal temple, of course-but he would not be above saying a prayer or two of
thanks when everyone returned to Suzail. As Vangerdahast approached the next
corner, the sliver in his palm stood on end. This perplexed him, until he
rounded the bend and the tiny piece of wood fell flat again, then swiveled
around to point back into the corner. The wizard turned around and drifted
lower to inspect the area. He had traded his glowing wand for Alaphondar's
commander's ring so his hands would be free to fight, but the ring's light was
even more limited than that of his wand. He had to descend to within an arm's
length of the floor before he noticed the ribbons of yellow fume spiraling
down through a tangle of red-banded snakes. Vangerdahast pressed his borrowed
mace to the floor. There was a slight shimmering and a momentary resistance,
then the head of the weapon passed out of sight. Vangerdahast frowned,
wondering if this was the "marsh door" Xanthon had referred to while
impersonating Tanalasta. Clearly, the ghazneth had been trying to lure his
"rescuers" into some sort of trap, and the royal magician suspected that had
been the purpose of the entire band for some time now-at least since his
return from Arabel. But why? The reason seemed painfully obvious: Tanalasta's
royal religion was the seventh scourge of Alaundo's prophecy, "the one that
will be," and only Vangerdahast could stop the princess from opening the "door
no man could close." Determined to be rid of the only one who could stop them,
the ghazneths had lured the wizard into an ambush. The explanation made
perfect sense to the royal magician, and he was determined that the ghazneths
would never have a chance to make the princess one of their own. Vangerdahast
pulled the mace out of the floor and jammed it into his belt, then plucked an
apple seed from his cloak pocket and let it fall. As it dropped, he made a
quick twirling motion and spoke a few words of magic. A small whirlpool formed
in the shimmering floor, then abruptly opened into a dark, man-sized hole.
Vangerdahast selected a wand from inside his cloak, flung a quick firebolt
through the opening to discourage thoughts of a surprise attack, and followed
the flames down into the darkness. The firebolt seemed to plummet forever,
growing steadily smaller as it streaked away. Though Vangerdahast never
touched any walls, he had the sense of descending a narrow shaft into a hot,
murky depth, an impression compounded by the yellow fume swirling so closely
around him. Finally, when the firebolt had shrunk to a mere thumbnail of
light, it hit bottom and fanned out into a crimson disk, briefly illuminating
a lopsided plaza ringed by walls of rough-stacked stone and little square
tunnel mouths. With the sliver still standing in his palm, Vangerdahast
continued his descent until the mordant odor of his own fire spell came
faintly to his nostrils and the yellow fume started to swirl away into the
darkness. He stopped and found himself hovering a few feet above a smoking mud
flat, the plink-plink of dripping water echoing through a constant insect
drone. Above his head, there seemed to be nothing but featureless darkness,
with no sign of the shaft through which he had descended. He reached up and
touched something spongy. When he pushed, it gave way beneath his hand, not
quite water and too resilient to be mud, yet far more solid than the passage
he had come down. "There are many ways to enter, but only one way to leave,"
hissed Xanthon Cormaeril, sounding as angry as he did pained, "but why worry?
Surely a great wizard you can find a way home!" Vangerdahast spun toward the
voice and saw a coarse net flying into the tiny radius of his light spell. He
reacted instantly, lowering his wand and speaking the command word. The fire
bolt flashed through the net and exploded against the chest of a dark
silhouette, hurling the figure into a wall of stacked stone. A tremendous
clattering filled the chamber, then the remains of the net entangled the
wizard, bouncing him off the ceiling and dragging him down to rebound off a
wall. Vangerdahast landed face down on the muddy floor, bent backward with his
feet resting against a wall behind him-a rather painful position for a man of
his age. He wasted no time rolling out of it, then pushed his wand through the
net and swiveled around, spraying fire. The flames missed Xanthon, but they
did illuminate the entire plaza. It was a muddy circle no more than ten paces
across, full of humming insects and ringed by the ramshackle houses of a
long-abandoned goblin warren. The compact buildings presented a nearly solid
facade of stacked stone, broken only by crooked rows of squinting windows and
tilted doorways no higher than a man's belt. In the heart of the plaza lay a
shallow depression filled with stagnant water. As the glow of Vangerdahast's
fire bolts began to fade, Xanthon rose from the rubble of a demolished
building and peered over the jagged remains of a wall. All semblance to
Tanalasta had vanished completely. Xanthon's face had become a skeletal
monstrosity, with an arrow-shaped nose and a slender tuft of coarse beard
nearly hidden beneath his aura of flying insects. The dagger wound
Vangerdahast had inflicted earlier was barely visible, a puffy-edged slit
whose edges had already closed. "Awfully free with that magic, aren't you old
fellow?" Xanthon called. Vangerdahast leveled his wand and sent another fire
bolt streaking across plaza. Xanthon raised his hand and caught the bolt in
his palm, disappearing behind the wall as the impact spun him
around. Vangerdahast drew his iron dagger and began to slice at the net and
finally noticed that the thing had been made of living snakes. Though their
fangs were incapable of penetrating his protection magic, the survivors were
striking at him madly. He could not help crying out in shock. Across the
plaza, Xanthon stepped out of the ruins, Vangerdahast's dying fire bolt
displayed in the palm of his hand. "You do know this is ambrosia to
me?" Xanthon tipped his head back and poured the rest of the fire into his
mouth. Vangerdahast gave up slashing at the net and pushed off the ground,
praying this place did not absorb magic as did the keep. Much to his relief,
he rose into the air and bounced lightly off the ceiling. "Magic will not save
you, old fool," Xanthon said, allowing a stream of excess fire to spill down
his chin. "Come down here, and we will settle this like men." "One of us is no
longer a man. One of us is a traitor... and not only to his country." Xanthon
shrugged. "I am what the king made me." The ghazneth started forward.
Vangerdahast raised his iron dagger and, blood boiling in anger, began the
enchantment that would send it streaking into the traitor's eye. This time,
Xanthon was ready for him. The ghazneth dived into one of the little tunnels
opening off the plaza and disappeared, leaving the wizard with no target. The
royal magician let the incantation trail off half-finished, then cursed
profanely. He could use this spell only three times a day, and he had just
wasted a casting. Vangerdahast pulled the mace from his belt and spent the
next quarter hour circling the plaza, waiting for Xanthon to return. Finally,
he realized the ghazneth's earlier challenge had been an empty taunt and grew
more confident about his chances of success. The traitor was frightened, or he
would have returned to finish the battle. The wizard spent another quarter
hour finding the sliver he had been using to track his prey, then floated down
and followed it into the same cockeyed passage through which the phantom had
fled. The portal led into the confines of a goblin street-a crooked little
tunnel not much wider than Vangerdahast's shoulders and barely half his
height. He had to float through the passage head-first, ribbons of yellow fume
streaming past so thick he could see only a few paces ahead. The floor stank
of mildew and mud, and the walls resonated with scurrying insects. The wizard
tried not to think about the red stuff that dangled down from the ceiling and
brushed over his back. Vangerdahast pursued his quarry around a dozen corners
and past a hundred cockeyed doorways, then came to another plaza and realized
he did not need to watch his sliver quite so carefully. Unable to fly, Xanthon
was leaving a clear trail in the mud. Moreover, some unfelt breeze was drawing
the yellow fume through a particular set of tunnels, and the ghazneth seemed
to be following the fume. The wizard put the sliver away and crossed the
circle into the next passage, holding a wand of repulsion in one hand and his
iron dagger in the other. Xanthon tried to ambush him three plazas later,
dropping off a wall to land on Vangerdahast's back as he exited a tunnel. The
wizard simply touched the tip of his wand to the ghazneth's flank and sent him
flying, then followed behind. The second time, he landed a bone-crushing blow
with his borrowed mace. Xanthon barely managed to scuttle into the next
tunnel. After that, Vangerdahast was able to remain within earshot of his
quarry, following the ghazneth by the slurping sounds he made crawling through
the muddy passages. As the chase continued, the sound grew slower and less
steady. Finally, it ceased altogether, and when the wizard stopped to consult
his magic sliver, the ghazneth's arm came snaking out of a nearby door and
snatched the wand of repulsion from his hand. Vangerdahast was so startled
that he flew backward half a dozen paces. By the time he finally comprehended
that the ghazneth was not attacking, Xanthon was slurping down the tunnel
again, now moving faster. The wizard found his wand a few hundred paces later,
lying dull and brittle in the mud. All the magic was gone, and the phantom was
no longer close enough to hear. After that, the wizard left his magic tucked
safely inside his cloak, and the chase continued. Eventually, Vangerdahast had
to renew his flying spell, then his protection enchantments, and he realized
the hunt was turning into a trek. He almost decided to give up and teleport
back to the mud keep, but he could not allow Xanthon to go unpunished for such
a vile betrayal. The pursuit continued until Xanthon began to tire again and
Vangerdahast began to hear slurping steps once more. Determined not to make
the same mistake twice, the wizard took the initiative and streaked up the
passage behind the crawling phantom. He slammed down on its back and reached
around to draw his iron dagger across its throat. As weary as Xanthon was, he
was still far faster than the royal magician. He clamped down on
Vangerdahast's arm and dropped face first into the mud, driving the dagger
deep into his own collar, but sparing himself the fatal slash across the
throat. A strange tingling came over Vangerdahast as the magic began to leave
his protective enchantments. He grabbed Xanthon's hair and tried to pull the
traitor's head up to free his arm, but his strength was no match for a
ghazneth's. A pair of jaws closed around his forearm, then clamped down. The
phantom's teeth could not penetrate his protective spells, but the wizard knew
that would change once his spells were drained. Vangerdahast rolled to the
side, relieving some of the strain on his trapped arm and giving himself room
to maneuver. He slipped his hand into his cloak and grabbed a small rod from a
pocket, then pressed the tip to the ghazneth's head and spoke a single mystic
word. A silent flash of golden magic filled the air, momentarily blinding
Vangerdahast and hurling him against the tunnel wall. He felt the ghazneth go
slack and jerked his arm loose, opening a long gash along Xanthon's collarbone
as he ripped the iron dagger free. Praying that his flying spell had enough
magic to hold one more instant, he pushed himself up to the ceiling. Still
trying to shake the magic from his vision, Xanthon rolled onto his back, his
arms weaving a black blur as he lashed out blindly mere inches under
Vangerdahast's nose. The phantom's new wounds were already beginning to
heal-thanks, no doubt, to the glut of magic he had just absorbed.
Vangerdahast's protective enchantments were fading fast and his flying spell
would soon follow, and he would not be able to renew those particular spells
until he had rested and studied his spellbook. Realizing he had lost all hope
of defeating the phantom in physical combat Vangerdahast decided the time had
come to declare wisdom the better part of valor. He closed his eyes and
brought to mind an image of the courtyard in the Arabellan Palace. Tomorrow he
would return for Alaphondar and Owden, then resume his hunt with a fresh
company of Purple Dragons. It was sometimes possible to delay the King's
Justice, but never to escape it-not when the royal magician had decided it was
his business to dispense it. A little growl of astonishment suggested that
Xanthon's vision had finally cleared, and Vangerdahast cast his teleport
spell. He experienced that familiar sensation of timeless falling, then felt
something soft and squishy around his boot soles. The air seemed remarkably
stale and musty, and he had a terrible suspicion that he knew the source of
that irritating drone in his ears. The wizard shook his head clear and found
himself standing in a muddy depression, looking across a dark, stagnant pool
of water toward the shadowy facade of a ramshackle goblin building. He thought
for a moment he had returned to the same plaza through which he had entered
the abandoned city, but a quick circuit of the area revealed no sign of the
wall through which he had blasted Xanthon. The royal magician was lost. "Many
ways to enter, but only one to leave." The ghazneth's voice rasped out from
all the tunnels ringing the plaza, as soft and sibilant as a snake's hiss. "It
is you or me, old fool... and now I am the hunter." * * * * * From somewhere
inside the marble keep came a muted thud, then the iron-clad gate swirled
open, spinning little whirlpools into the fetid water and sweeping aside the
bloated corpses of half a dozen Purple Dragons. The smell of mildew and stale
stone filled Tanalasta's nostrils, giving rise to an unexpected urge to vomit.
The need had been coming over her at the oddest times for the last two
days-when they found Alaphondar's horse tethered behind the hill, for
instance, but not when they waded into a marsh full of stinking corpses. The
princess was beginning to think that lying to Alusair had affected her nerves
more than she realized. Despite the return of the fever, no one else in the
company seemed to be experiencing such odd bouts of queasiness. Alusair
appeared in the gateway, standing atop a short flight of black stairs and
silhouetted in gleaming silver against the tower's murky interior. "Nothing…
they're not in here." "Empty?" Tanalasta slapped Alaphondar's broken spyglass
against the surface of the marsh, then said, "None of this makes any
sense." They had found the spyglass on a boulder not far from Alaphondar's
hungry horse, the broken halves lying neatly side-by-side. It appeared the
sage had been watching the keep, which stood not quite a mile from shore, half
sunken in the marsh and surrounded by the floating corpses of Vangerdahast's
rescue company. A lengthy examination of the surrounding area had produced no
hint of what killed them. Almost as puzzling, the search had failed to produce
the bodies of either Vangerdahast, Alaphondar, or Owden. It was as if the trio
had simply vanished. Tanalasta climbed the stairs into the keep and found the
mossy, dank place she had expected, with a cramped staircase ascending to the
left and a narrow corridor turning a corner to the right. There were plenty of
insects and more than a few snakes, but no more than normal in such a place,
and none that appeared particularly dangerous. Alusair's men were everywhere,
banging on walls and inspecting floors for secret passages. Tanalasta started
down the hallway to the right. Alusair followed close behind, her armor
clanking as she brushed against the stone walls. "There's a common chamber and
seven sleeping cells upstairs, and half a dozen storage rooms on this floor.
We haven't been able to find a dungeon entrance-but it would probably be
flooded anyway." Tanalasta rounded the corner and peered into the first room.
Warm afternoon light poured through a large, windowlike breach in the opposite
wall. The edges were smooth with age and draped with moss. Not looking at her
sister, and trying to keep her voice casual, Tanalasta asked, "Any sign of
Rowen?" "Rowen can take care of himself." Though Alusair's tone was neutral,
she clapped Tanalasta's shoulder briefly and said, "He's probably waiting for
us at Goblin Mountain with Vangerdahast and Alaphondar." "If Vangerdahast is
there, I doubt Rowen still is," Tanalasta remarked wryly. As the princess
turned away from the room, a sharp hiss sounded behind her. "Tanalasta?"
called a familiar voice. Tanalasta spun back toward the room only to find her
sister already charging through the door, sword in hand. "Name yourself,"
demanded Alusair. Tanalasta rounded the corner to find her sister standing in
the center of the room, reaching up to press the tip of her blade to a
disembodied head protruding from a tiny circle of darkness near the ceiling.
It was such an odd sight that it took a moment for Tanalasta to recognize the
face as that of Owden Foley. Owden's eyes remained fixed on the tip of
Alusair's sword. "H-harvestmaster Owden F-foley, at your s-service." Tanalasta
grabbed Alusair's arm. "He's a friend!" Alusair lowered her sword, but
continued to eye the priest suspiciously. Tanalasta stepped forward, placing
herself between the two, and Owden finally exhaled in relief. "Thank you, my
dear." He smiled at Tanalasta, then tipped his chin to Alusair. "I'm honored
to make your acquaintance, Princess Alusair. Please consider me at your
service." Owden pushed an arm out of the floating circle and turned his palm
up. Alusair eyed the disembodied limb coldly and did not offer her
hand. "What, exactly, are you?" she demanded. Owden flushed and looked down,
then finally seemed to realize what he must look like. "Forgive me!
Vangerdahast told us to wait inside until he returned." The black circle
behind Owden's head suddenly grew larger, revealing itself to be the interior
of a large pocket floating in midair. The priest withdrew into the interior,
then reappeared feet-first and dropped to the floor. He bowed again and turned
to Tanalasta. "By the seed, it is good to see you again!" He embraced her
warmly, then looked past her into the hallway. "Where is the old grouch?" "We
were hoping you could tell us." Owden's expression fell. "He went after
Xanthon Cormaeril, to stop him from opening Alaundo's door." "How long ago?"
Alusair demanded. Owden shrugged, gesturing vaguely at the dark pouch hanging
above his head. "A few minutes after Alaphondar contacted Tanalasta." The two
sisters exchanged worried glances, then Tanalasta said, "Two days ago." "What
now?" asked Alusair. "Assume he is lost, and hope that we are wrong," said a
familiar voice. A moment later, Alaphondar's old head appeared in the mouth of
the floating pouch. His eyes were sunken and weary, his skin as pale as
alabaster. "What other choice is there? You have read my note." "Note?"
Tanalasta asked. "In the tube." He gestured at the spyglass. "Telling whoever
found it to awaken the Sleeping Sword." "There was no note." Tanalasta pulled
the two pieces of the spyglass apart. "This was how we found it." Alusair took
the two halves of the tube from Tanalasta and inspected them. "At least we
know what happened to Rowen. This was hacked open with a sword." "And this
Rowen knows where to find the Sleeping Sword?" asked Alaphondar. Alusair
cocked an eyebrow at Tanalasta, who shook her head. "I had no reason to
mention it." "Then he will be on his way to inform your father," sighed
Alaphondar. "And with Vangerdahast lost, the delay could well mean Cormyr's
doom. We must inform the king." The sage's withered hand appeared briefly,
then reached for his throat clasp. "Alaphondar, wait!" Tanalasta said,
realizing her deception would be revealed if the sage conversed with the king.
"I reported your fears to His Majesty two days ago." "And did he say he would
awaken the Sleeping Sword?" asked Alaphondar. Tanalasta's stomach sank, for
she knew what the sage would say when she answered-and also that there was too
much at stake to try to talk him out of it. "No, not exactly." "Then we must
make certain." Alusair barked a handful of commands out the door, ordering to
company to prepare itself in case the sending drew a ghazneth, then looked
back to Alaphondar. "Contact the queen instead of the king," Alusair said.
"She'll know his plans, and we don't want to draw ghazneths to him if he's
already in the Stonelands. If he hasn't left already, tell her I can take your
horse and be there in a day." Tanalasta watched Alaphondar's eyes close, then,
cringing inwardly, turned to her sister. "Alusair, there is something I should
tell you." Alusair waved her off. "Not now, Tanalasta. This is important." "So
is this." Tanalasta steeled herself for the coming storm. "I may have given
you the wrong impression-" "Later!" Alusair stepped away, precluding any
further attempts to admit the truth, and Alaphondar opened his eyes a moment
later. "The queen assures us that King Azoun will reach the Sleeping Sword
first." The sage turned to Alusair looking rather confused. "She was quite
upset. She seemed to think you should be somewhere near Goblin Mountain by
now." "Goblin Mountain? Why would she think that? The king himself told us to
investigate..." Alusair let the sentence trail off and whirled on Tanalasta,
her face turning white with anger. "I'll cut out your tongue, you lying
harlot!" * * * * * Vangerdahast snapped awake without the pleasure of even a
moment's confusion about his whereabouts. He knew the awful truth as soon as
he heard the humming swarms and smelled the dank air. His emergency spellbook
lay opened to the last spell he had been studying, a powerful wind enchantment
he had been hoping to use to clear the insects away so he could sleep in
peace. Apparently, it had been unnecessary. The wizard had no way to tell how
long he had slept, but judging by his stiff joints and the cold ache in his
bones, it had been a good while. His stomach was growling with hunger and he
was almost thirsty enough to drink the stagnant swill in the center of the
plaza, but at least the sleep had rejuvenated him mentally. No longer did he
feel as dispirited or confused as he had after attempting to return to Arabel,
and he had even begun to develop a few theories about how to find his way
home. He had either followed Xanthon into a separate plane or through some
sort of magic-dampening barrier that prevented his teleport spell from folding
space. All he had to do was figure out which, then he could start work on the
problem of determining either where he was, or how to bypass the barrier. And
failing that, he always had his ring of wishes to call upon-but wishes were
tricky spells to use, and he had learned through bitter experience that it was
wiser to avoid them in all but the most controlled of circumstances. If a
simple teleport spell would not work down here, he could only imagine what
might happen if he attempted to use a wish. Vangerdahast closed his spellbook
and returned it to his weathercloak, then checked his iron weapons and hoisted
his stiff body to its feet. As he rose, an unexpected clatter sounded from the
other side of the wall against which he had been leaning. He jumped in fright
and spun around to see a pair of red eyes peering out through a cockeyed
goblin window. "All rested?" hissed Xanthon. Vangerdahast forgot about his
aching bones and dashed across the plaza, hurling himself headlong into the
nearest tunnel. He landed flat on his belly and slid a good five paces on the
muddy floor, then spun instantly onto his back. The wizard continued to squirm
down the passage as fast as his old legs could propel his ample weight, at the
same time hurling a magic blast high and well behind him. The ceiling
collapsed with a deafening crash, filling the tunnel with a black cloud of
billowing dust. Vangerdahast started to cough, then caught himself and managed
to cast a flying spell before he broke into a fit of hacking. He pushed
himself off the ground and flew down the narrow corridor as fast as he dared
without his shielding spells. It did not even occur to him until the next
plaza that had there been any real danger, he would already have been
dead. One of the last things Vangerdahast had done when he felt himself
nodding off last night-or whenever it had been-was to cast a simple
enchantment to protect himself from evil, prolonging its duration with a
couple of extension spells. He had been counting on the simple enchantment to
keep his foe at bay long enough for him to awaken and escape, but the spell
had apparently prevented Xanthon from touching him at all, and even a ghazneth
could not drain what they could not touch. Beginning to see how he might
defeat the phantom, Vangerdahast stopped to cast another spell to make the
protection permanent. No sooner had he fetched the ingredients from his cloak
pocket, however, than he heard Xanthon sloshing toward him. The wizard put the
ingredients away and fled into another tunnel. "Wait!" Xanthon called. "We
have something to-" Vangerdahast blasted the ceiling down as he had before,
drowning out the ghazneth's protest in midsentence. He started down the
passage toward the next plaza. Fifty paces later, Xanthon appeared in the
intersection ahead. He rolled to his haunches and raised his clawed hands in a
grotesque mockery of a truce sign. "Hold your attack and hear me out. We can
always resume fighting in a minute." "You have nothing to say I would be
interested in hearing." Despite his retort, Vangerdahast made no move to
attack or flee, instead, he quietly began to move his fingers through the
gestures for a prismatic spray. "I doubt you are here to yield to the king's
justice." "Hardly-and we'll have none of that." Xanthon waved a talon at the
magician's moving fingers, then waited until the magician ceased his gestures.
"I was thinking of something quite the opposite." "Me, surrender to you?"
Vangerdahast scoffed. "I thought Boldovar was the mad one." This actually drew
a smile from Xanthon. "Actually, it wouldn't be surrender. We have need of a
seventh, and Luthax claims-" "Luthax?" Vangerdahast gasped. Luthax had been an
early castellan of the War Wizards of Cormyr-and the only high-ranking member
of the brotherhood to ever betray the kingdom. "You have raised him?" "Me?"
Xanthon chuckled. "Hardly. The master... let us say I am but a tool." "Of
what?" Xanthon rolled his eyes. "You know the prophecy, 'Seven scourges, five
long gone, one of the day, one soon to come..? Do I really have to spell it
out?" "And you want me?" Unable to believe what he was hearing, Vangerdahast
glanced over each of his shoulders in turn. This whole conversation had to be
some unbalanced attempt to divert his attention. "This is an insult." Xanathon
shrugged. "I'd rather kill you, but it you say no, there'll be someone else.
There is no shortage of traitors to Cormyr-you've seen to that." "Traitor?
Me?" Vangerdahast nearly reached for a wand, but forced himself to contain his
anger. There was only one explanation for Xanthon's behavior, he was
attempting to goad Vangerdahast into a rash act. "What happened to 'you or me,
old fool'?" "You're forgetting 'many ways to enter, only one to leave,'"
Xanthon replied. "You had to see how hopeless it is. There's only one way out
of here-and that's with us." "Or past your dead body!" Vangerdahast hissed, no
longer able to stand the insults to his integrity. "You have my answer." The
wizard retreated down the tunnel, though only because he did not dare attack
until he had cast the rest of his shielding magic. Assaulting the ghazneth
would dispel the enchantment protecting him from evil, and despite his anger,
he remained determined to emerge from this battle alive. When he reached the
previous intersection, he picked a tunnel at random and streaked into it at
top speed. It hardly mattered to him which direction he fled. He was lost no
matter what way he turned. But it mattered to Xanthon. The ghazneth began to
stay close enough for Vangerdahast to hear at all times, yet just beyond the
range of the wizard's glowing ring. Every so often, the phantom would emerge
in an intersection to taunt Vangerdahast with saccharin pleas to reconsider.
The wizard never bothered to reply. He simply retreated to the previous
intersection and tried another path. Xanthon was careful to keep him moving,
so that he would have no time to stop and cast spells, and to keep him away
from plazas and other places where he would have room to fight with anything
but magic. Vangerdahast tried several times to slow his pursuer by bringing
the ceiling down on his head, but Xanthon always sensed these ambushes and
rushed ahead to absorb the spell. The sorcerer soon realized he was only
feeding his enemy's magic thirst and put his wands away, concentrating instead
on raising his shielding spells. He lost two enchantments to interruption-one
defending him from poison and the other from blunt attacks-but he did manage
to cast the spell that protected him from fang and claw. He considered it a
major victory. Eventually, the protection from evil spell expired. Xanthon
began to grow more bold, sometimes attempting to ambush Vangerdahast as he
passed through intersections, sometimes rushing up from behind to repeat his
'invitation.' The wizard resisted the temptation to renew the spell. He could
sense the ghazneth's growing excitement and knew the battle was about to come
to a head. When that happened, he would need a couple of surprises to win the
advantage. Vangerdahast sensed his chance when the cramped corridors finally
intersected a true goblin boulevard, a muddy passage broad enough to hold
three men abreast and fully twelve feet high-as the wizard discovered when he
climbed skyward and suddenly smashed into the formless black ceiling. Xanthon
paused at the mouth of one of the smaller tunnels and glared up at the royal
magician with ill-concealed hatred. "Hide up there as long as you wish," he
hissed. "When you begin to starve, perhaps you will join us." "I'm afraid I'm
going to disappoint you." Vangerdahast began to fish through his weathercloak.
"I was thinking the time had come to punish your treason." The wizard pulled a
pinch of powdered iron from his pocket and sprinkled it over his own head, at
the same time uttering the spell. Xanathon's eyes flared scarlet, then he
withdrew into the tunnel, hissing and spraying a cloud of droning wasps out
into the boulevard. The wizard chuckled and descended to the ground to renew
his protection from evil spell-the enchantment required sprinkling a circle of
powdered silver on the ground-then added a couple of extensions for good
measure and shot into the tunnel after Xanthon. It was his turn to be the
hunter. Xanthon tried twice early in the chase to leap on Vangerdahast and
drain the magic from his protective enchantments. Each time, the phantom was
thwarted by the protection from evil spell, which prevented him from touching
the wizard at all. Vangerdahast stayed close on his quarry's tail, keeping up
a constant patter about punishing him for his betrayals. Within the space of
half an hour, Xanthon was reduced to mere fleeing. An hour after that, he was
beginning to stumble. He grew desperate and tried to slow his pursuer with
insect swarms and snake nets, but this took energy, and the wizard simply
brushed them aside with a wave of the appropriate wand. Finally, Xanthon
returned to the goblin boulevard and sprinted straight down the middle in a
desperate attempt to simply outrun Vangerdahast. The strategy might have
worked, had the parkway not fed into a huge plaza in the middle of the city.
The circle was by far the grandest in the city, surrounded by crookedly built
edifices with marble pillars and sandstone porticos that had ceilings nearly
eight feet high. In the center of this plaza lay a grand pool, fully five
paces across and rimmed in a broad band of golden sand. It was filled with
black, shimmering water so stagnant that when Xanthon ran onto it, he did not
even sink. The surface merely rippled like obsidian jelly, and his feet stuck
to the surface as soon as they touched it. Two paces later, he came to a dead
halt in the center of the basin. Vangerdahast did not even slow down as he
passed. He simply pulled Owden's mace from his belt and swooped down to slam
it into the back of the ghazneth's head. There was a crack and a spray of dark
blood. Xanthon pitched forward onto his knees. Vangerdahast passed over the
pool's golden rim and wheeled around to find his foe still kneeling in the
center. Xanthon's skull had been half-shattered, with a halo of jagged black
bone protruding up at wild angles and one eye dangling out on his cheek and
his dark lip twisted into a smug sneer. "Last chance," said Xanthon. "If you
let me go, you can change your mind." "What makes you think I'd ever let you
go?" Vangerdahast streaked down for another strike. Xanthon smiled and dived
forward, disappearing into the tar headfirst. Vangerdahast managed to knock
one foot off at the ankle as the phantom's legs vanished from sight, then the
surface of the dark pool returned to its syrupy tranquility. Vangerdahast
circled around and considered the dark pool for a moment, more angered by
Xanthon's escape than astonished by it. He had already seen the ghazneth
vanish through a stone floor, so he supposed he should not be surprised when
the creature disappeared into a pool of tar. Vangerdahast did not even
consider letting the phantom go. Xanthon Cormaeril was a traitor of the vilest
kind, and, almost as importantly, he was the royal magician's best chance to
find his way back to Cormyr before the scourges ruined it. He fished two rings
from his weathercloak, one to let him breathe water-if that was what the black
stuff was-and the other to allow him free movement, then streaked headlong
toward the center of the pool. The wizard was just inches above the surface
when a pearly skin of magic appeared over the dark liquid. He barely had time
to tuck his chin and twist away before he slammed into it. A terrific jolt
shot up his spine, filling him with anguish from neck to knees, and he
careened back into the air. Vangerdahast brought himself slowly under control,
then took a moment to shake the shock from his head and inspect himself The
impact had left his old body shaken and sore, but relatively unscathed, aside
from one slightly separated shoulder. He circled back to the pool and
descended more slowly. When he came to within a foot of the water, the pearly
barrier appeared again-no doubt some sort of enchantment designed to repel
beings of honorable intents and loyal persuasions. "It won't be that easy,
Xanthon! Do you hear me?" Vangerdahast was already summoning to mind the words
that would dispel the magical barrier. "I'm coming for you!" * * * * * After
three solid days in the saddle, Azoun could not quite believe his eyes when he
rode into the narrow confines of Scimitar Canyon and found a trailworn
stallion standing in the open entrance of the secret cavern of the Sleeping
Sword. The big horse was glassy-eyed and haggard from many days on the trail,
and he was still covered with foam from a hard ride that had left him barely
able to stand, but the king would have recognized the noble beast
anywhere. "Cadimus!" Azoun reined his own hard-ridden mount to a stop, then
leaped out of the saddle, passed his reins to one of his weary dragoneer
bodyguards, and rushed up to the royal magician's horse. "How have you been
old boy?" He patted the stallion fondly on the neck. Cadimus nickered softly,
then swung his nose around as though to point to his saddle. There was blood
on it-a lot of blood, mostly brown and crusted, but some new enough that it
was still sticky and red. "Kuceon!" Azoun cried, yelling for one of Owden
Foley's young priestesses. "Come quickly!" The girl trotted her horse to the
head of the company and slipped from the saddle while the beast was still
moving. Leaving the reins for someone else to collect, she came to Azoun's
side and touched her fingers to the bloody saddle. "A seeping wound. Probably
purulent, no doubt serious." The king started to ask if the victim could have
cast a teleport spell, then realized that Vangerdahast would never have done
such a thing from this particular location-not with the ghazneths at large.
With a sinking heart, he selected a dozen dragoneers and two war wizards to
accompany them into the cavern, then motioned for a man to strike the torches
they had brought along to light their way. He was tempted just to slip on a
Purple Dragon commander's ring and call upon its magical light, but they had
spent the last three days riding night and day precisely because he did not
want to use any magic that might lead the scourges to the Sleeping Sword.
Whatever lay inside, it could wait long enough to strike a fire. Once the
first torch was lit, the king took it and led the way around a recently-moved
boulder into the narrow mouth of the cavern. The air reeked of rot and decay,
and Azoun knew before he had taken his third step that something terrible had
become of the Lords Who Sleep. "Vangerdahast?" he called. No answer came, and
they rounded the corner into the main chamber of Scimitar Cave. The place
looked like any other crypt he had ever seen, full of moldering bones and
shards of rusty armor and tattered bits of cloth-all that remained of five
hundred valiant knights who had volunteered to lay in hibernation against the
time when they were needed. Only one piece of equipment, the tattered and
bloody cloak of a Royal Scout, lay in anything resembling one piece. "Sire!"
gasped Kuceon. She seemed unable to say any more than that. Conscious of the
effect his reaction would have on those around him, Azoun bit back his despair
and snatched the bloody cape, then turned to the young priestess at his
side. "See to it that these men have a proper burial," he said. "Though they
never fought, they were heroes all." * * * * * Vangerdahast slowly circled the
basin, arms trembling and voice cracking as he waved his hands over the pool's
skin of pearly magic. He had not fought a good death match in decades, and now
that victory was near, he found himself so excited he could barely twine his
fingers through a simple dispel magic spell. Xanthon was hurt badly, or he
would never have fled into the pool and risked showing Vangerdahast how to
escape the goblin city. The ghazneth was too smart to trap himself, so there
had to be a portal hidden beneath the surface. With any luck at all, the other
end would open into Cormyr, and it would be there that Vangerdahast would
visit the king's justice upon his quarry. The wizard paused above the center
of the basin and spread his hands, repeating his spell's arcane syllables over
and over again, calling into play his deepest reserves of magic power. The
mystic barrier flickered, hissed, and began to lose its luster, giving
Vangerdahast a glimpse into the abyssal darkness of the black waters below. He
spoke the incantation one more time and flung his arms wide. The magic skin
vanished. The wizard brought his hands together and dived after Xanthon. A
yellow membrane slid across the basin, bringing Vangerdahast's plunge to a
crashing halt. A long series of dull pops resonated through his skull, then he
rebounded into the air and found himself tumbling pell-mell back toward the
ceiling. His neck and shoulders erupted in pain, his hands turned tingly and
weak, and the mace began to slip from his grasp. "By the purple fang!"
Vangerdahast cursed. He willed his numb fingers to close around the hilt of
his weapon and slowly spread his limbs, bringing himself back under
control-then he noticed the pit of his stomach reverberating to the pulse of a
strange rumbling he could not even hear. At first, he took the sensation to be
the aftereffects of crashing into the yellow membrane, but he began to feel
the vibrations in his bones and teeth and soon recognized them as a powerful
rumbling, too deep and sonorous for a human ear to detect. Vangerdahast felt
hollow and sick. He craned his neck upward, expecting the cavern to come
crashing down on him even as he looked. The rumble continued to grow, until it
finally became an ominous, barely audible growl that reminded him faintly of a
purring cat-or of a distant earthquake. He flew up to the ceiling and found
his way blocked by the same spongy substance as before. He touched it. It was
as still and motionless as the air in a coffin. Epilogue Tanalasta rinsed the
sour taste from her mouth, then splashed her face with cool stream water. She
was no longer suffering from the fever-under Owden's care, the health of the
entire company had been restored-but it was the third occasion that morning
that some innocuous smell had triggered a bout of retching. This time it had
been mountain bluebell, the time before that a field of fleabane. She was
beginning to wonder if her journey into the Stonelands had given her some
strange aversion to flowers. "Feeling better, my dear?" Alaphondar asked from
behind her. Tanalasta nodded. "I haven't been feeling bad-it's all these
mountain flowers." She rinsed her mouth again, then rose and faced the sage.
"Their perfume is so cloying." "A strange affliction for one of Chauntea's
faithful." The old sage was sitting astride his horse, eyeing Tanalasta
thoughtfully. "Very peculiar indeed." "I'm sure it will pass with prayer."
Tanalasta's reply was almost sharp, for she had noticed the sage watching her
with that same peculiar expression many times since departing the marsh. She
gestured at his bandaged ribs. "And how are you?" "Well enough to walk, which
is looking increasingly necessary," He nodded toward a little meadow at the
edge of the valley, where Alusair and the rest of the company stood clustered
amidst the bed of bluebells that had triggered Tanalasta's latest bout. "Help
me down, will you?" The princess offered a shoulder, then the sage slipped
from the saddle and led the way back to the small gathering. Tanalasta's
qualmishness returned as they approached the bluebells, but with her stomach
already emptied, it was not so bad she felt it necessary to
retreat. "...definitely Cadimus's hoof prints," Alusair said, making a point
of ignoring Tanalasta's return. "Why Rowen would turn north when he was so
close to Goblin Mountain is beyond me." After hearing Alaphondar's description
of Cadimus's escape from the marsh battle, they had concluded that Rowen had
taken the stallion and ridden off to carry the sage's note to the
king. "Perhaps he had no choice," Owden said. He rose from the middle of the
group holding a small sheaf of brown-crusted flower stems. "This is
blood." "No!" Tanalasta forced her way through the circle. "Let me see." Owden
allowed her to take the stems, but caught her hands between his. "There isn't
much, and we don't know what it means." "I do," Tanalasta said. Despite a
flurry of spellcasting back at the keep, they had seen no sign of the
ghazneths, and the entire company had been wondering for the last three days
where the phantoms had gone. "We've got to go after him." "Not we-me," said
Alusair. "You'll return to Goblin Mountain with the others." "No," Tanalasta
said. "Rowen is my husband, and-" "My scout." Alusair glared at Tanalasta.
"Don't argue. If you were anyone else, you'd be returning to Arabel in chains
after that stunt you pulled... and I still might change my mind about
that." Tanalasta returned her sister's glare evenly. "If I were anyone else, I
wouldn't have had to 'pull' any stunts." Though the princess was boiling
inside, she forced herself to continue in a calm and even voice. "Alusair, I
apologize for deceiving you, but the time has come for you-and Vangerdahast
and the king-to grant me the same privilege you have always claimed for
yourself." Alusair frowned. "What privilege would that be?" "The privilege to
run her own life, of course," said Alaphondar. The old sage took the sisters
by their arms and guided them away from the others-and, mercifully, also away
from the bluebells. "My dears, Cormyr is entering a time of crisis. If the
realm is to survive, it will need both of its princesses." "And I will be
there," said Alusair. "Good, but you cannot do this alone," said Alaphondar.
"If the realm is to survive, you and Tanalasta must work together… a thing you
cannot do if you don't trust each other." Alusair eyed her sister coldly. "I'm
not the one who's been lying." Alaphondar's retort was sharp. "But you are the
one responsible. If you do not grant your sister the respect she deserves and
trust her to do as she must, what choice do you leave her except to rebel or
manipulate you?" "Or to leave," Tanalasta added pointedly. As a youth, Alusair
had grown so weary of the burdens of her royal station that she had fled the
kingdom altogether. "And now is not the time." Alusair shot her sister an
annoyed look, but pursed her lips and nodded. "Fine. You can come with me, but
the rest of the company-" "I am not done," Alaphondar said. He lifted a hand
to silence Alusair, then turned to Tanalasta. "As for you..." "I know. My
value to the kingdom does not lie in my sword arm." Alaphondar raised his
brow. "Very astute, but actually, I was going to say that as a worshiper of
Chauntea, I should think you would realize by now it simply won't do to have
you gallivanting off into the Stonelands with your sister." "What does
Chauntea have to do with it?" Tanalasta asked, confused. Alaphondar rolled his
eyes. "The retching, my dear. This morning it was flowers, the day before my
horse, and once it was even the smell of pine trees." "I've been nauseous,"
Tanalasta said. "Of course I have. If you had been fighting the ague and
gripes for the last tenday, you might feel a little qualmish, too." Alaphondar
said nothing, and Alusair simply stared at Tanalasta with a furrowed
brow. "What is it?" Tanalasta demanded. "Why are you looking at me that
way?" The answer came to her even as she asked. She was the only one from
Alusair's company still showing signs of illness, and she really wasn't
feeling feverish or achy, or even very tired. Her stomach had simply grown
unpredictable, turning queasy and rebellious at the oddest times-especially in
the morning. "By the plow!" she gasped. "Yes, I suppose that is one way to
describe how it happened," said Alaphondar. "You really shouldn't be running
around the Stonelands in that condition." Tanalasta barely heard him, for her
mind was whirling with the ramifications of her "condition." The timing could
hardly have been worse. With Vangerdahast missing and the Scourges about to
descend on the kingdom, it would be important for Cormyr to stand as one in
the coming months. News of her pregnancy would only make that more difficult.
If she named the father, the loyal nobles would be insulted and might prove
reluctant to support the crown. If she didn't name the father, people would
doubt the child's legitimacy and question its status as a royal heir. No
matter what she did, the king might well be forced to name Alusair his
successor-just when the realm most needed her in the field to battle ghazneths
and reassure the people. Somehow, Tanalasta was surprised to discover, none of
that mattered to her. She felt blessed and happy and flooded with warmth, and
in her heart she knew she had done the right thing for herself, for her
kingdom, and for her people. She had been given the strength to see Cormyr
through its crisis, not despite the child growing inside her, nor even because
of it-but through it. That had been the true meaning of her vision. "Why are
you smiling like that?" asked Alusair. She laid a hand on Tanalasta's
shoulder. "When the king hears of this, you'll wish you were in the Stonelands
dodging ghazneths."
This eBook was created using ReaderWorks®Publisher 2.0, produced by OverDrive, Inc.About this Title
For more information about ReaderWorks, please visit us on the Web at
www.overdrive.com/readerworks